BIOGRAPHIA LITERARIA
by Samuel Taylor Coleridge
CONTENTS
CHAPTER
I Motives to the present work--Reception of the Author's first
publication--Discipline of his taste at school--Effect of
contemporary writers on youthful minds--Bowles's Sonnets-
Comparison between the poets before and since
II Supposed irritability of genius brought to the test of
facts--Causes and occasions of the charge--Its injustice
III
The Author's obligations to Critics, and the probable
occasion--Principles of modern criticism--Mr. Southey's
works
and character
IV
The Lyrical Ballads with the Preface--Mr. Wordsworth's
earlier poems--On Fancy and Imagination--The investigation
of the
distinction important to the Fine Arts
V On the law of Association--Its history traced from Aristotle
to
Hartley
VI
That Hartley's system, as far as it differs from that of
Aristotle, is neither tenable in theory, nor founded
in
facts
VII
Of the necessary consequences of the Hartleian Theory--Of
the
original mistake or equivocation which procured its
admission--Memoria technica
VIII The
system of Dualism introduced by Des Cartes--Refined
first
by Spinoza and afterwards by Leibnitz into the
doctrine of Harmonia praestabilita--Hylozoism--Materialism
--None
of these systems, or any possible theory of
Association, supplies or supersedes a theory of
Perception, or explains the formation of the Associable
XI
Is Philosophy possible as a science, and what are its
conditions?--Giordano Bruno--Literary Aristocracy, or the
existence of a tacit compact among the learned as a
privileged order--The Author's obligations to the Mystics-
To
Immanuel Kant--The difference between the letter and
The spirit
of Kant's writings, and a vindication of
Prudence in the teaching of Philosophy--Fichte's attempt
to
complete the Critical system-Its partial success and
ultimate failure--Obligations to Schelling; and among
English writers to Saumarez
X A Chapter of digression and anecdotes, as an interlude
preceding
that on the nature and genesis of the Imagination
or Plastic
Power--On Pedantry and pedantic expressions--
Advice to
young authors respecting publication--Various
anecdotes of
the Author's literary life, and the progress
of his
opinions in Religion and Politics
XI
An affectionate exhortation to those who in early life feel
themselves
disposed to become authors
XII
A Chapter of requests and premonitions concerning the perusal
or omission
of the chapter that follows
XIII On
the Imagination, or Esemplastic power
XIV
Occasion of the Lyrical Ballads, and the objects originally
proposed--Preface to the second edition--The ensuing
controversy,
its causes and acrimony--Philosophic
definitions
of a Poem and Poetry with scholia
XV
The specific symptoms of poetic power elucidated in a
Critical
analysis of Shakespeare's Venus and Adonis, and
Rape of
Lucrece
XVI
Striking points of difference between the Poets of the
present age
and those of the fifteenth and sixteenth
centuries--Wish expressed for the union of the
characteristic merits of both
XVII
Examination of the tenets peculiar to Mr. Wordsworth--
Rustic life
(above all, low and rustic life) especially
unfavourable
to the formation of a human diction-The
best parts
of language the product of philosophers, not of
clowns or
shepherds--Poetry essentially ideal and generic--
The language
of Milton as much the language of real life,
yea,
incomparably more so than that of the cottager
XVIII Language
of metrical composition, why and wherein essentially
different
from that of prose--Origin and elements of metre
--Its
necessary consequences, and the conditions thereby
imposed on
the metrical writer in the choice of his diction
XIX
Continuation--Concerning the real object, which, it is
probable,
Mr. Wordsworth had before him in his critical
preface--Elucidation and application of this
XX
The former subject continued--The neutral style, or that
common to Prose
and Poetry, exemplified by specimens from
Chaucer, Herbert,
and others
XXI
Remarks on the present mode of conducting critical journals
XXII The
characteristic defects of Wordsworth's poetry, with the
principles from
which the judgment, that they are defects,
is deduced--Their
proportion to the beauties--For the
greatest part
characteristic of his theory only
SATYRANE'S LETTERS
XXIII Critique
on Bertram
XXIV
Conclusion
So wenig er auch bestimmt
seyn mag, andere zu belehren, so wuenscht er
doch sich denen
mitzutheilen, die er sich gleichgesinnt weis, (oder
hofft,) deren Anzahl aber
in der Breite der Welt zerstreut ist; er
wuenscht sein Verhaeltniss
zu den aeltesten Freunden dadurch wieder
anzuknuepfen, mit neuen es
fortzusetzen, und in der letzten Generation
sich wieder andere fur
seine uebrige Lebenszeit zu gewinnen. Er
wuenscht der Jugend die
Umwege zu ersparen, auf denen er sich selbst
verirrte.
(Goethe. Einleitung in die Propylaeen.)
TRANSLATION. Little call as he may have to instruct
others, he wishes
nevertheless to open out
his heart to such as he either knows or hopes
to be of like mind with
himself, but who are widely scattered in the
world: he wishes to knit
anew his connections with his oldest friends,
to continue those recently
formed, and to win other friends among the
rising generation for the
remaining course of his life. He wishes to
spare the young those
circuitous paths, on which he himself had lost
his way.
BIOGRAPHIA LITERARIA
CHAPTER I
Motives to the present
work--Reception of the Author's first
publication--Discipline of
his taste at school--Effect of contemporary
writers on youthful
minds--Bowles's Sonnets--Comparison between the
poets before and since
Pope.
It has been my lot to have
had my name introduced both in
conversation, and in print,
more frequently than I find it easy to
explain, whether I
consider the fewness, unimportance, and limited
circulation of my
writings, or the retirement and distance, in which I
have lived, both from the
literary and political world. Most often it
has been connected with
some charge which I could not acknowledge, or
some principle which I had
never entertained. Nevertheless, had I had
no other motive or
incitement, the reader would not have been troubled
with this exculpation.
What my additional purposes were, will be seen
in the following pages. It
will be found, that the least of what I
have written concerns
myself personally. I have used the narration
chiefly for the purpose of
giving a continuity to the work, in part
for the sake of the
miscellaneous reflections suggested to me by
particular events, but
still more as introductory to a statement of my
principles in Politics,
Religion, and Philosophy, and an application
of the rules, deduced from
philosophical principles, to poetry and
criticism. But of the
objects, which I proposed to myself, it was not
the least important to
effect, as far as possible, a settlement of the
long continued controversy
concerning the true nature of poetic
diction; and at the same
time to define with the utmost impartiality
the real poetic character
of the poet, by whose writings this
controversy was first
kindled, and has been since fuelled and fanned.
In the spring of 1796,
when I had but little passed the verge of
manhood, I published a
small volume of juvenile poems. They were
received with a degree of
favour, which, young as I was, I well know
was bestowed on them not
so much for any positive merit, as because
they were considered buds
of hope, and promises of better works to
come. The critics of that
day, the most flattering, equally with the
severest, concurred in
objecting to them obscurity, a general
turgidness of diction, and
a profusion of new coined double epithets
[1]. The first is the
fault which a writer is the least able to detect
in his own compositions:
and my mind was not then sufficiently
disciplined to receive the
authority of others, as a substitute for my
own conviction. Satisfied
that the thoughts, such as they were, could
not have been expressed
otherwise, or at least more perspicuously, I
forgot to inquire, whether
the thoughts themselves did not demand a
degree of attention
unsuitable to the nature and objects of poetry.
This remark however
applies chiefly, though not exclusively, to the
Religious Musings. The remainder
of the charge I admitted to its full
extent, and not without
sincere acknowledgments both to my private and
public censors for their
friendly admonitions. In the after editions,
I pruned the double
epithets with no sparing hand, and used my best
efforts to tame the swell
and glitter both of thought and diction;
though in truth, these
parasite plants of youthful poetry had
insinuated themselves into
my longer poems with such intricacy of
union, that I was often
obliged to omit disentangling the weed, from
the fear of snapping the
flower. From that period to the date of the
present work I have
published nothing, with my name, which could by
any possibility have come
before the board of anonymous criticism.
Even the three or four
poems, printed with the works of a friend [2],
as far as they were
censured at all, were charged with the same or
similar defects, (though I
am persuaded not with equal justice),--with
an excess of ornament, in
addition to strained and elaborate diction.
I must be permitted to
add, that, even at the early period of my
juvenile poems, I saw and
admitted the superiority of an austerer and
more natural style, with
an insight not less clear, than I at present
possess. My judgment was
stronger than were my powers of realizing its
dictates; and the faults
of my language, though indeed partly owing to
a wrong choice of
subjects, and the desire of giving a poetic
colouring to abstract and
metaphysical truths, in which a new world
then seemed to open upon
me, did yet, in part likewise, originate in
unfeigned diffidence of my
own comparative talent.--During several
years of my youth and
early manhood, I reverenced those who had re-
introduced the manly
simplicity of the Greek, and of our own elder
poets, with such
enthusiasm as made the hope seem presumptuous of
writing successfully in
the same style. Perhaps a similar process has
happened to others; but my
earliest poems were marked by an ease and
simplicity, which I have
studied, perhaps with inferior success, to
impress on my later
compositions.
At school, (Christ's
Hospital,) I enjoyed the inestimable advantage of
a very sensible, though at
the same time, a very severe master, the
Reverend James Bowyer. He
early moulded my taste to the preference of
Demosthenes to Cicero, of
Homer and Theocritus to Virgil, and again of
Virgil to Ovid. He
habituated me to compare Lucretius, (in such
extracts as I then read,)
Terence, and above all the chaster poems of
Catullus, not only with
the Roman poets of the, so called, silver and
brazen ages; but with even
those of the Augustan aera: and on grounds
of plain sense and
universal logic to see and assert the superiority
of the former in the truth
and nativeness both of their thoughts and
diction. At the same time
that we were studying the Greek tragic
poets, he made us read
Shakespeare and Milton as lessons: and they
were the lessons too,
which required most time and trouble to bring
up, so as to escape his
censure. I learned from him, that poetry, even
that of the loftiest and,
seemingly, that of the wildest odes, had a
logic of its own, as
severe as that of science; and more difficult,
because more subtle, more
complex, and dependent on more, and more
fugitive causes. In the
truly great poets, he would say, there is a
reason assignable, not
only for every word, but for the position of
every word; and I well
remember that, availing himself of the
synonymes to the Homer of
Didymus, he made us attempt to show, with
regard to each, why it
would not have answered the same purpose; and
wherein consisted the
peculiar fitness of the word in the original
text.
In our own English
compositions, (at least for the last three years of
our school education,) he
showed no mercy to phrase, metaphor, or
image, unsupported by a
sound sense, or where the same sense might
have been conveyed with
equal force and dignity in plainer words [3].
Lute, harp, and lyre,
Muse, Muses, and inspirations, Pegasus,
Parnassus, and Hippocrene
were all an abomination to him. In fancy I
can almost hear him now,
exclaiming "Harp? Harp? Lyre? Pen and ink,
boy, you mean! Muse, boy,
Muse? Your nurse's daughter, you mean!
Pierian spring? Oh aye!
the cloister-pump, I suppose!" Nay certain
introductions, similes,
and examples, were placed by name on a list of
interdiction. Among the
similes, there was, I remember, that of the
manchineel fruit, as
suiting equally well with too many subjects; in
which however it yielded
the palm at once to the example of Alexander
and Clytus, which was equally
good and apt, whatever might be the
theme. Was it ambition?
Alexander and Clytus!-Flattery? Alexander and
Clytus!--anger--drunkenness--pride--friendship--ingratitude--late
repentance? Still, still
Alexander and Clytus! At length, the praises
of agriculture having been
exemplified in the sagacious observation
that, had Alexander been
holding the plough, he would not have run his
friend Clytus through with
a spear, this tried, and serviceable old
friend was banished by
public edict in saecula saeculorum. I have
sometimes ventured to
think, that a list of this kind, or an index
expurgatorius of certain
well-known and ever-returning phrases, both
introductory, and
transitional, including a large assortment of modest
egoisms, and flattering
illeisms, and the like, might be hung up in
our Law-courts, and both
Houses of Parliament, with great advantage to
the public, as an
important saving of national time, an incalculable
relief to his Majesty's
ministers, but above all, as insuring the
thanks of country
attornies, and their clients, who have private bills
to carry through the
House.
Be this as it may, there
was one custom of our master's, which I
cannot pass over in
silence, because I think it imitable and worthy of
imitation. He would often
permit our exercises, under some pretext of
want of time, to
accumulate, till each lad had four or five to be
looked over. Then placing
the whole number abreast on his desk, he
would ask the writer, why
this or that sentence might not have found
as appropriate a place
under this or that other thesis: and if no
satisfying answer could be
returned, and two faults of the same kind
were found in one
exercise, the irrevocable verdict followed, the
exercise was torn up, and
another on the same subject to be produced,
in addition to the tasks
of the day. The reader will, I trust, excuse
this tribute of
recollection to a man, whose severities, even now, not
seldom furnish the dreams,
by which the blind fancy would fain
interpret to the mind the
painful sensations of distempered sleep; but
neither lessen nor dim the
deep sense of my moral and intellectual
obligations. He sent us to
the University excellent Latin and Greek
scholars, and tolerable
Hebraists. Yet our classical knowledge was the
least of the good gifts,
which we derived from his zealous and
conscientious tutorage. He
is now gone to his final reward, full of
years, and full of
honours, even of those honours, which were dearest
to his heart, as
gratefully bestowed by that school, and still binding
him to the interests of
that school, in which he had been himself
educated, and to which
during his whole life he was a dedicated thing.
From causes, which this is
not the place to investigate, no models of
past times, however
perfect, can have the same vivid effect on the
youthful mind, as the
productions of contemporary genius. The
discipline, my mind had
undergone, Ne falleretur rotundo sono et
versuum cursu, cincinnis,
et floribus; sed ut inspiceret quidnam
subesset, quae, sedes,
quod firmamentum, quis fundus verbis; an
figures essent mera
ornatura et orationis fucus; vel sanguinis e
materiae ipsius corde
effluentis rubor quidam nativus et incalescentia
genuina;--removed all
obstacles to the appreciation of excellence in
style without diminishing
my delight. That I was thus prepared for the
perusal of Mr. Bowles's
sonnets and earlier poems, at once increased
their influence, and my
enthusiasm. The great works of past ages seem
to a young man things of
another race, in respect to which his
faculties must remain
passive and submiss, even as to the stars and
mountains. But the
writings of a contemporary, perhaps not many years
older than himself,
surrounded by the same circumstances, and
disciplined by the same
manners, possess a reality for him, and
inspire an actual
friendship as of a man for a man. His very
admiration is the wind
which fans and feeds his hope. The poems
themselves assume the
properties of flesh and blood. To recite, to
extol, to contend for them
is but the payment of a debt due to one,
who exists to receive it.
There are indeed modes of
teaching which have produced, and are
producing, youths of a
very different stamp; modes of teaching, in
comparison with which we
have been called on to despise our great
public schools, and
universities,
in whose halls are hung
Armoury of the invincible knights of old--
modes, by which children
are to be metamorphosed into prodigies. And
prodigies with a vengeance
have I known thus produced; prodigies of
self-conceit, shallowness,
arrogance, and infidelity! Instead of
storing the memory, during
the period when the memory is the
predominant faculty, with
facts for the after exercise of the
judgment; and instead of
awakening by the noblest models the fond and
unmixed love and
admiration, which is the natural and graceful temper
of early youth; these
nurslings of improved pedagogy are taught to
dispute and decide; to
suspect all but their own and their lecturer's
wisdom; and to hold
nothing sacred from their contempt, but their own
contemptible arrogance;
boy-graduates in all the technicals, and in
all the dirty passions and
impudence of anonymous criticism. To such
dispositions alone can the
admonition of Pliny be requisite, Neque
enim debet operibus ejus
obesse, quod vivit. An si inter eos, quos
nunquam vidimus,
floruisset, non solum libros ejus, verum etiam
imagines conquireremus,
ejusdem nunc honor prasentis, et gratia quasi
satietate languescet? At
hoc pravum, malignumque est, non admirari
hominem admiratione
dignissimum, quia videre, complecti, nec laudare
tantum, verum etiam amare
contingit.
I had just entered on my
seventeenth year, when the sonnets of Mr.
Bowles, twenty in number,
and just then published in a quarto
pamphlet, were first made
known and presented to me, by a schoolfellow
who had quitted us for the
University, and who, during the whole time
that he was in our first
form (or in our school language a Grecian,)
had been my patron and
protector. I refer to Dr. Middleton, the truly
learned, and every way
excellent Bishop of Calcutta:
qui laudibus amplis
Ingenium celebrare meum, calamumque solebat,
Calcar agens animo validum. Non omnia terra
Obruta; vivit amor, vivit dolor; ora negatur
Dulcia conspicere; at fiere et meminisse
relictum est.
It was a double pleasure
to me, and still remains a tender
recollection, that I
should have received from a friend so revered the
first knowledge of a poet,
by whose works, year after year, I was so
enthusiastically delighted
and inspired. My earliest acquaintances
will not have forgotten
the undisciplined eagerness and impetuous
zeal, with which I
laboured to make proselytes, not only of my
companions, but of all
with whom I conversed, of whatever rank, and in
whatever place. As my
school finances did not permit me to purchase
copies, I made, within
less than a year and a half, more than forty
transcriptions, as the
best presents I could offer to those, who had
in any way won my regard.
And with almost equal delight did I receive
the three or four
following publications of the same author.
Though I have seen and
known enough of mankind to be well aware, that
I shall perhaps stand
alone in my creed, and that it will be well, if
I subject myself to no
worse charge than that of singularity; I am not
therefore deterred from
avowing, that I regard, and ever have regarded
the obligations of
intellect among the most sacred of the claims of
gratitude. A valuable
thought, or a particular train of thoughts,
gives me additional
pleasure, when I can safely refer and attribute it
to the conversation or
correspondence of another. My obligations to
Mr. Bowles were indeed
important, and for radical good. At a very
premature age, even before
my fifteenth year, I had bewildered myself
in metaphysics, and in
theological controversy. Nothing else pleased
me. History, and
particular facts, lost all interest in my mind.
Poetry--(though for a
school-boy of that age, I was above par in
English versification, and
had already produced two or three
compositions which, I may
venture to say, without reference to my age,
were somewhat above
mediocrity, and which had gained me more credit
than the sound, good sense
of my old master was at all pleased with,)
--poetry itself, yea,
novels and romances, became insipid to me. In my
friendless wanderings on
our leave-days [4], (for I was an orphan, and
had scarcely any
connections in London,) highly was I delighted, if
any passenger, especially
if he were dressed in black, would enter
into conversation with me.
For I soon found the means of directing it
to my favourite subjects
Of providence, fore-knowledge, will, and fate,
Fixed fate, free will, fore-knowledge absolute,
And found no end in wandering mazes lost.
This preposterous pursuit
was, beyond doubt, injurious both to my
natural powers, and to the
progress of my education. It would perhaps
have been destructive, had
it been continued; but from this I was
auspiciously withdrawn,
partly indeed by an accidental introduction to
an amiable family, chiefly
however, by the genial influence of a style
of poetry, so tender and
yet so manly, so natural and real, and yet so
dignified and harmonious,
as the sonnets and other early poems of Mr.
Bowles. Well would it have
been for me, perhaps, had I never relapsed
into the same mental
disease; if I had continued to pluck the flower
and reap the harvest from
the cultivated surface, instead of delving
in the unwholesome
quicksilver mines of metaphysic lore. And if in
after time I have sought a
refuge from bodily pain and mismanaged
sensibility in abstruse
researches, which exercised the strength and
subtilty of the
understanding without awakening the feelings of the
heart; still there was a
long and blessed interval, during which my
natural faculties were
allowed to expand, and my original tendencies
to develop themselves;--my
fancy, and the love of nature, and the
sense of beauty in forms
and sounds.
The second advantage,
which I owe to my early perusal, and admiration
of these poems, (to which
let me add,) though known to me at a somewhat
later period, the Lewesdon
Hill of Mr. Crowe bears more immediately on
my present subject. Among
those with whom I conversed, there were, of
course, very many who had
formed their taste, and their notions of
poetry, from the writings
of Pope and his followers; or to speak more
generally, in that school
of French poetry, condensed and invigorated
by English understanding,
which had predominated from the last
century. I was not blind
to the merits of this school, yet, as from
inexperience of the world,
and consequent want of sympathy with the
general subjects of these
poems, they gave me little pleasure, I
doubtless undervalued the
kind, and with the presumption of youth
withheld from its masters
the legitimate name of poets. I saw that the
excellence of this kind
consisted in just and acute observations on
men and manners in an
artificial state of society, as its matter and
substance; and in the
logic of wit, conveyed in smooth and strong
epigrammatic couplets, as
its form: that even when the subject was
addressed to the fancy, or
the intellect, as in the Rape of the Lock,
or the Essay on Man; nay,
when it was a consecutive narration, as in
that astonishing product
of matchless talent and ingenuity Pope's
Translation of the Iliad;
still a point was looked for at the end of
each second line, and the
whole was, as it were, a sorites, or, if I
may exchange a logical for
a grammatical metaphor, a conjunction
disjunctive, of epigrams.
Meantime the matter and diction seemed to me
characterized not so much
by poetic thoughts, as by thoughts
translated into the
language of poetry. On this last point, I had
occasion to render my own
thoughts gradually more and more plain to
myself, by frequent
amicable disputes concerning Darwin's Botanic
Garden, which, for some
years, was greatly extolled, not only by the
reading public in general,
but even by those, whose genius and natural
robustness of
understanding enabled them afterwards to act foremost in
dissipating these
"painted mists" that occasionally rise from the
marshes at the foot of
Parnassus. During my first Cambridge vacation,
I assisted a friend in a
contribution for a literary society in
Devonshire: and in this I
remember to have compared Darwin's work to
the Russian palace of ice,
glittering, cold and transitory. In the
same essay too, I assigned
sundry reasons, chiefly drawn from a
comparison of passages in
the Latin poets with the original Greek,
from which they were
borrowed, for the preference of Collins's odes to
those of Gray; and of the
simile in Shakespeare
How like a younker or a prodigal
The scarfed bark puts from her native bay,
Hugg'd and embraced by the strumpet wind!
How like the prodigal doth she return,
With over-weather'd ribs and ragged sails,
Lean, rent, and beggar'd by the strumpet wind!
(Merch. of Ven. Act II. sc. 6.)
to the imitation in the
Bard;
Fair laughs the morn, and soft the zephyr blows
While proudly riding o'er the azure realm
In gallant trim the gilded vessel goes,
Youth at the prow and pleasure at the helm;
Regardless of the sweeping whirlwind's sway,
That hush'd in grim repose, expects it's evening
prey.
(in which, by the bye, the
words "realm" and "sway" are rhymes dearly
purchased)--I preferred
the original on the ground, that in the
imitation it depended wholly
on the compositor's putting, or not
putting, a small capital,
both in this, and in many other passages of
the same poet, whether the
words should be personifications, or mere
abstractions. I mention
this, because, in referring various lines in
Gray to their original in
Shakespeare and Milton, and in the clear
perception how completely
all the propriety was lost in the transfer,
I was, at that early
period, led to a conjecture, which, many years
afterwards was recalled to
me from the same thought having been
started in conversation,
but far more ably, and developed more fully,
by Mr.
Wordsworth;--namely, that this style of poetry, which I have
characterized above, as
translations of prose thoughts into poetic
language, had been kept up
by, if it did not wholly arise from, the
custom of writing Latin
verses, and the great importance attached to
these exercises, in our
public schools. Whatever might have been the
case in the fifteenth
century, when the use of the Latin tongue was so
general among learned men,
that Erasmus is said to have forgotten his
native language; yet in
the present day it is not to be supposed, that
a youth can think in
Latin, or that he can have any other reliance on
the force or fitness of
his phrases, but the authority of the writer
from whom he has adopted
them. Consequently he must first prepare his
thoughts, and then pick
out, from Virgil, Horace, Ovid, or perhaps
more compendiously from
his Gradus, halves and quarters of lines, in
which to embody them.
I never object to a
certain degree of disputatiousness in a young man
from the age of seventeen
to that of four or five and twenty, provided
I find him always arguing
on one side of the question. The
controversies, occasioned
by my unfeigned zeal for the honour of a
favourite contemporary,
then known to me only by his works, were of
great advantage in the
formation and establishment of my taste and
critical opinions. In my
defence of the lines running into each other,
instead of closing at each
couplet; and of natural language, neither
bookish, nor vulgar,
neither redolent of the lamp, nor of the kennel,
such as I will remember
thee; instead of the same thought tricked up
in the rag-fair finery of,
------thy image on her wing
Before my fancy's eye shall memory bring,--
I had continually to
adduce the metre and diction of the Greek poets,
from Homer to Theocritus
inclusively; and still more of our elder
English poets, from
Chaucer to Milton. Nor was this all. But as it was
my constant reply to
authorities brought against me from later poets
of great name, that no
authority could avail in opposition to Truth,
Nature, Logic, and the
Laws of Universal Grammar; actuated too by my
former passion for
metaphysical investigations; I laboured at a solid
foundation, on which
permanently to ground my opinions, in the
component faculties of the
human mind itself, and their comparative
dignity and importance.
According to the faculty or source, from which
the pleasure given by any
poem or passage was derived, I estimated the
merit of such poem or
passage. As the result of all my reading and
meditation, I abstracted
two critical aphorisms, deeming them to
comprise the conditions
and criteria of poetic style;--first, that not
the poem which we have
read, but that to which we return, with the
greatest pleasure,
possesses the genuine power, and claims the name of
essential
poetry;--secondly, that whatever lines can be translated
into other words of the
same language, without diminution of their
significance, either in
sense or association, or in any worthy
feeling, are so far
vicious in their diction. Be it however observed,
that I excluded from the
list of worthy feelings, the pleasure derived
from mere novelty in the
reader, and the desire of exciting wonderment
at his powers in the
author. Oftentimes since then, in pursuing French
tragedies, I have fancied
two marks of admiration at the end of each
line, as hieroglyphics of
the author's own admiration at his own
cleverness. Our genuine
admiration of a great poet is a continuous
undercurrent of feeling!
it is everywhere present, but seldom anywhere
as a separate excitement.
I was wont boldly to affirm, that it would
be scarcely more difficult
to push a stone out from the Pyramids with
the bare hand, than to
alter a word, or the position of a word, in
Milton or Shakespeare, (in
their most important works at least,)
without making the poet
say something else, or something worse, than
he does say. One great
distinction, I appeared to myself to see
plainly between even the
characteristic faults of our elder poets, and
the false beauty of the
moderns. In the former, from Donne to Cowley,
we find the most fantastic
out-of-the-way thoughts, but in the most
pure and genuine mother
English, in the latter the most obvious
thoughts, in language the
most fantastic and arbitrary. Our faulty
elder poets sacrificed the
passion and passionate flow of poetry to
the subtleties of
intellect and to the stars of wit; the moderns to
the glare and glitter of a
perpetual, yet broken and heterogeneous
imagery, or rather to an
amphibious something, made up, half of image,
and half of abstract [5]
meaning. The one sacrificed the heart to the
head; the other both heart
and head to point and drapery.
The reader must make
himself acquainted with the general style of
composition that was at
that time deemed poetry, in order to
understand and account for
the effect produced on me by the Sonnets,
the Monody at Matlock, and
the Hope, of Mr. Bowles; for it is peculiar
to original genius to
become less and less striking, in proportion to
its success in improving
the taste and judgment of its contemporaries.
The poems of West, indeed,
had the merit of chaste and manly diction;
but they were cold, and,
if I may so express it, only dead-coloured;
while in the best of
Warton's there is a stiffness, which too often
gives them the appearance
of imitations from the Greek. Whatever
relation, therefore, of
cause or impulse Percy's collection of Ballads
may bear to the most
popular poems of the present day; yet in a more
sustained and elevated
style, of the then living poets, Cowper and
Bowles [6] were, to the
best of my knowledge, the first who combined
natural thoughts with
natural diction; the first who reconciled the
heart with the head.
It is true, as I have
before mentioned, that from diffidence in my own
powers, I for a short time
adopted a laborious and florid diction,
which I myself deemed, if
not absolutely vicious, yet of very inferior
worth. Gradually, however,
my practice conformed to my better
judgment; and the
compositions of my twenty-fourth and twenty-fifth
years--(for example, the
shorter blank verse poems, the lines, which
now form the middle and
conclusion of the poem entitled the Destiny of
Nations, and the tragedy
of Remorse)--are not more below my present
ideal in respect of the
general tissue of the style than those of the
latest date. Their faults
were at least a remnant of the former
leaven, and among the many
who have done me the honour of putting my
poems in the same class
with those of my betters, the one or two, who
have pretended to bring
examples of affected simplicity from my
volume, have been able to
adduce but one instance, and that out of a
copy of verses half
ludicrous, half splenetic, which I intended, and
had myself characterized,
as sermoni propiora.
Every reform, however
necessary, will by weak minds be carried to an
excess, which will itself
need reforming. The reader will excuse me
for noticing, that I
myself was the first to expose risu honesto the
three sins of poetry, one
or the other of which is the most likely to
beset a young writer. So
long ago as the publication of the second
number of the Monthly
Magazine, under the name of Nehemiah
Higginbottom, I
contributed three sonnets, the first of which had for
its object to excite a
good-natured laugh at the spirit of doleful
egotism, and at the
recurrence of favourite phrases, with the double
defect of being at once
trite and licentious;--the second was on low
creeping language and
thoughts, under the pretence of simplicity; the
third, the phrases of
which were borrowed entirely from my own poems,
on the indiscriminate use
of elaborate and swelling language and
imagery. The reader will
find them in the note [7] below, and will I
trust regard them as
reprinted for biographical purposes alone, and
not for their poetic
merits. So general at that time, and so decided
was the opinion concerning
the characteristic vices of my style, that
a celebrated physician
(now, alas! no more) speaking of me in other
respects with his usual
kindness, to a gentleman, who was about to
meet me at a dinner party,
could not however resist giving him a hint
not to mention 'The house
that Jack built' in my presence, for "that I
was as sore as a boil
about that sonnet;" he not knowing that I was
myself the author of it.
CHAPTER II
Supposed irritability of
men of genius brought to the test of facts--
Causes and occasions of
the charge--Its injustice.
I have often thought, that
it would be neither uninstructive nor
unamusing to analyze, and
bring forward into distinct consciousness,
that complex feeling, with
which readers in general take part against
the author, in favour of
the critic; and the readiness with which they
apply to all poets the old
sarcasm of Horace upon the scribblers of
his time
------genus irritabile vatum.
A debility and dimness of
the imaginative power, and a consequent
necessity of reliance on
the immediate impressions of the senses, do,
we know well, render the
mind liable to superstition and fanaticism.
Having a deficient portion
of internal and proper warmth, minds of
this class seek in the
crowd circum fana for a warmth in common, which
they do not possess
singly. Cold and phlegmatic in their own nature,
like damp hay, they heat
and inflame by co-acervation; or like bees
they become restless and
irritable through the increased temperature
of collected multitudes.
Hence the German word for fanaticism, (such
at least was its original
import,) is derived from the swarming of
bees, namely, schwaermen,
schwaermerey. The passion being in an
inverse proportion to the
insight,--that the more vivid, as this the
less distinct--anger is
the inevitable consequence. The absense of all
foundation within their
own minds for that, which they yet believe
both true and
indispensable to their safety and happiness, cannot but
produce an uneasy state of
feeling, an involuntary sense of fear from
which nature has no means
of rescuing herself but by anger. Experience
informs us that the first
defence of weak minds is to recriminate.
There's no philosopher but sees,
That rage and fear are one disease;
Tho' that may burn, and this may freeze,
They're both alike the ague.
But where the ideas are
vivid, and there exists an endless power of
combining and modifying
them, the feelings and affections blend more
easily and intimately with
these ideal creations than with the objects
of the senses; the mind is
affected by thoughts, rather than by
things; and only then
feels the requisite interest even for the most
important events and
accidents, when by means of meditation they have
passed into thoughts. The
sanity of the mind is between superstition
with fanaticism on the one
hand, and enthusiasm with indifference and
a diseased slowness to
action on the other. For the conceptions of the
mind may be so vivid and
adequate, as to preclude that impulse to the
realizing of them, which
is strongest and most restless in those, who
possess more than mere
talent, (or the faculty of appropriating and
applying the knowledge of
others,)--yet still want something of the
creative and
self-sufficing power of absolute genius. For this reason
therefore, they are men of
commanding genius. While the former rest
content between thought
and reality, as it were in an intermundium of
which their own living
spirit supplies the substance, and their
imagination the
ever-varying form; the latter must impress their
preconceptions on the
world without, in order to present them back to
their own view with the
satisfying degree of clearness, distinctness,
and individuality. These
in tranquil times are formed to exhibit a
perfect poem in palace, or
temple, or landscape-garden; or a tale of
romance in canals that
join sea with sea, or in walls of rock, which,
shouldering back the
billows, imitate the power, and supply the
benevolence of nature to
sheltered navies; or in aqueducts that,
arching the wide vale from
mountain to mountain, give a Palmyra to the
desert. But alas! in times
of tumult they are the men destined to come
forth as the shaping
spirit of ruin, to destroy the wisdom of ages in
order to substitute the
fancies of a day, and to change kings and
kingdoms, as the wind
shifts and shapes the clouds [8]. The records of
biography seem to confirm
this theory. The men of the greatest genius,
as far as we can judge
from their own works or from the accounts of
their contemporaries,
appear to have been of calm and tranquil temper
in all that related to
themselves. In the inward assurance of
permanent fame, they seem
to have been either indifferent or resigned
with regard to immediate
reputation. Through all the works of Chaucer
there reigns a
cheerfulness, a manly hilarity which makes it almost
impossible to doubt a
correspondent habit of feeling in the author
himself. Shakespeare's
evenness and sweetness of temper were almost
proverbial in his own age.
That this did not arise from ignorance of
his own comparative
greatness, we have abundant proof in his Sonnets,
which could scarcely have
been known to Pope [9], when he asserted,
that our great bard--
------grew immortal in his own despite.
(Epist. to Augustus.)
Speaking of one whom he
had celebrated, and contrasting the duration
of his works with that of
his personal existence, Shakespeare adds:
Your name from hence immortal life shall have,
Tho' I once gone to all the world must die;
The earth can yield me but a common grave,
When you entombed in men's eyes shall lie.
Your monument shall be my gentle verse,
Which eyes not yet created shall o'er-read;
And tongues to be your being shall rehearse,
When all the breathers of this world are dead:
You still shall live, such virtue hath my pen,
Where breath most breathes, e'en in the mouth of
men.
SONNET LXXXI.
I have taken the first
that occurred; but Shakespeare's readiness to
praise his rivals, ore
pleno, and the confidence of his own equality
with those whom he deemed
most worthy of his praise, are alike
manifested in another
Sonnet.
Was it the proud full sail of his great verse,
Bound for the praise of all-too-precious you,
That did my ripe thoughts in my brain inhearse,
Making their tomb, the womb wherein they grew?
Was it his spirit, by spirits taught to write
Above a mortal pitch that struck me dead?
No, neither he, nor his compeers by night
Giving him aid, my verse astonished.
He, nor that affable familiar ghost,
Which nightly gulls him with intelligence,
As victors of my silence cannot boast;
I was not sick of any fear from thence!
But when your countenance fill'd up his line,
Then lack'd I matter, that enfeebled mine.
S. LXXXVI.
In Spenser, indeed, we
trace a mind constitutionally tender, delicate,
and, in comparison with
his three great compeers, I had almost said,
effeminate; and this
additionally saddened by the unjust persecution
of Burleigh, and the
severe calamities, which overwhelmed his latter
days. These causes have
diffused over all his compositions "a
melancholy grace,"
and have drawn forth occasional strains, the more
pathetic from their
gentleness. But no where do we find the least
trace of irritability, and
still less of quarrelsome or affected
contempt of his censurers.
The same calmness, and
even greater self-possession, may be affirmed
of Milton, as far as his
poems, and poetic character are concerned. He
reserved his anger for the
enemies of religion, freedom, and his
country. My mind is not
capable of forming a more august conception,
than arises from the
contemplation of this great man in his latter
days;--poor, sick, old,
blind, slandered, persecuted,--
Darkness before, and danger's voice behind,--
in an age in which he was
as little understood by the party, for whom,
as by that against whom,
he had contended; and among men before whom
he strode so far as to
dwarf himself by the distance; yet still
listening to the music of
his own thoughts, or if additionally
cheered, yet cheered only
by the prophetic faith of two or three
solitary individuals, he
did nevertheless
------argue not
Against Heaven's hand or will, nor bate a jot
Of heart or hope; but still bore up and steer'd
Right onward.
From others only do we
derive our knowledge that Milton, in his latter
day, had his scorners and
detractors; and even in his day of youth and
hope, that he had enemies
would have been unknown to us, had they not
been likewise the enemies
of his country.
I am well aware, that in
advanced stages of literature, when there
exist many and excellent
models, a high degree of talent, combined
with taste and judgment,
and employed in works of imagination, will
acquire for a man the name
of a great genius; though even that
analogon of genius, which,
in certain states of society, may even
render his writings more
popular than the absolute reality could have
done, would be sought for
in vain in the mind and temper of the author
himself. Yet even in
instances of this kind, a close examination will
often detect, that the
irritability, which has been attributed to the
author's genius as its
cause, did really originate in an ill
conformation of body,
obtuse pain, or constitutional defect of
pleasurable sensation.
What is charged to the author, belongs to the
man, who would probably
have been still more impatient, but for the
humanizing influences of
the very pursuit, which yet bears the blame
of his irritability.
How then are we to explain
the easy credence generally given to this
charge, if the charge
itself be not, as I have endeavoured to show,
supported by experience?
This seems to me of no very difficult
solution. In whatever
country literature is widely diffused, there
will be many who mistake
an intense desire to possess the reputation
of poetic genius, for the
actual powers, and original tendencies which
constitute it. But men,
whose dearest wishes are fixed on objects
wholly out of their own
power, become in all cases more or less
impatient and prone to
anger. Besides, though it may be paradoxical to
assert, that a man can
know one thing and believe the opposite, yet
assuredly a vain person
may have so habitually indulged the wish, and
persevered in the attempt,
to appear what he is not, as to become
himself one of his own
proselytes. Still, as this counterfeit and
artificial persuasion must
differ, even in the person's own feelings,
from a real sense of
inward power, what can be more natural, than that
this difference should
betray itself in suspicious and jealous
irritability? Even as the
flowery sod, which covers a hollow, may be
often detected by its
shaking and trembling.
But, alas! the multitude
of books and the general diffusion of
literature, have produced
other and more lamentable effects in the
world of letters, and such
as are abundant to explain, though by no
means to justify, the
contempt with which the best grounded complaints
of injured genius are
rejected as frivolous, or entertained as matter
of merriment. In the days
of Chaucer and Gower, our language might
(with due allowance for
the imperfections of a simile) be compared to
a wilderness of vocal
reeds, from which the favourites only of Pan or
Apollo could construct
even the rude syrinx; and from this the
constructors alone could
elicit strains of music. But now, partly by
the labours of successive
poets, and in part by the more artificial
state of society and
social intercourse, language, mechanized as it
were into a barrel-organ,
supplies at once both instrument and tune.
Thus even the deaf may
play, so as to delight the many. Sometimes (for
it is with similes, as it
is with jests at a wine table, one is sure
to suggest another) I have
attempted to illustrate the present state
of our language, in its
relation to literature, by a press-room of
larger and smaller
stereotype pieces, which, in the present Anglo-
Gallican fashion of
unconnected, epigrammatic periods, it requires but
an ordinary portion of
ingenuity to vary indefinitely, and yet still
produce something, which,
if not sense, will be so like it as to do as
well. Perhaps better: for
it spares the reader the trouble of
thinking; prevents
vacancy, while it indulges indolence; and secures
the memory from all danger
of an intellectual plethora. Hence of all
trades, literature at present
demands the least talent or information;
and, of all modes of
literature, the manufacturing of poems. The
difference indeed between
these and the works of genius is not less
than between an egg and an
egg-shell; yet at a distance they both look
alike.
Now it is no less
remarkable than true, with how little examination
works of polite literature
are commonly perused, not only by the mass
of readers, but by men of
first rate ability, till some accident or
chance [10] discussion
have roused their attention, and put them on
their guard. And hence
individuals below mediocrity not less in
natural power than in
acquired knowledge; nay, bunglers who have
failed in the lowest
mechanic crafts, and whose presumption is in due
proportion to their want
of sense and sensibility; men, who being
first scribblers from
idleness and ignorance, next become libellers
from envy and
malevolence,--have been able to drive a successful trade
in the employment of the
booksellers, nay, have raised themselves into
temporary name and
reputation with the public at large, by that most
powerful of all adulation,
the appeal to the bad and malignant
passions of mankind [11].
But as it is the nature of scorn, envy, and
all malignant propensities
to require a quick change of objects, such
writers are sure, sooner
or later, to awake from their dream of vanity
to disappointment and
neglect with embittered and envenomed feelings.
Even during their
short-lived success, sensible in spite of themselves
on what a shifting foundation
it rests, they resent the mere refusal
of praise as a robbery,
and at the justest censures kindle at once
into violent and
undisciplined abuse; till the acute disease changing
into chronical, the more
deadly as the less violent, they become the
fit instruments of
literary detraction and moral slander. They are
then no longer to be
questioned without exposing the complainant to
ridicule, because,
forsooth, they are anonymous critics, and
authorized, in Andrew
Marvell's phrase, as "synodical individuals" to
speak of themselves
plurali majestatico! As if literature formed a
caste, like that of the
Paras in Hindostan, who, however maltreated,
must not dare to deem
themselves wronged! As if that, which in all
other cases adds a deeper
dye to slander, the circumstance of its
being anonymous, here
acted only to make the slanderer inviolable!
[12] Thus, in part, from
the accidental tempers of individuals--(men
of undoubted talent, but
not men of genius)--tempers rendered yet more
irritable by their desire
to appear men of genius; but still more
effectively by the
excesses of the mere counterfeits both of talent
and genius; the number too
being so incomparably greater of those who
are thought to be, than of
those who really are men of genius; and in
part from the natural, but
not therefore the less partial and unjust
distinction, made by the
public itself between literary and all other
property; I believe the
prejudice to have arisen, which considers an
unusual irascibility
concerning the reception of its products as
characteristic of genius.
It might correct the moral
feelings of a numerous class of readers, to
suppose a Review set on
foot, the object of which should be to
criticise all the chief
works presented to the public by our ribbon-
weavers, calico-printers,
cabinet-makers, and china-manufacturers;
which should be conducted
in the same spirit, and take the same
freedom with personal
character, as our literary journals. They would
scarcely, I think, deny
their belief, not only that the genus
irritabile would be found
to include many other species besides that
of bards; but that the
irritability of trade would soon reduce the
resentments of poets into
mere shadow-fights in the comparison. Or is
wealth the only rational
object of human interest? Or even if this
were admitted, has the
poet no property in his works? Or is it a rare,
or culpable case, that he
who serves at the altar of the Muses, should
be compelled to derive his
maintenance from the altar, when too he has
perhaps deliberately
abandoned the fairest prospects of rank and
opulence in order to
devote himself, an entire and undistracted man,
to the instruction or
refinement of his fellow-citizens? Or, should we
pass by all higher objects
and motives, all disinterested benevolence,
and even that ambition of
lasting praise which is at once the crutch
and ornament, which at
once supports and betrays, the infirmity of
human virtue,--is the
character and property of the man, who labours
for our intellectual pleasures,
less entitled to a share of our fellow
feeling, than that of the
wine-merchant or milliner? Sensibility
indeed, both quick and
deep, is not only a characteristic feature, but
may be deemed a component
part, of genius. But it is not less an
essential mark of true
genius, that its sensibility is excited by any
other cause more
powerfully than by its own personal interests; for
this plain reason, that
the man of genius lives most in the ideal
world, in which the
present is still constituted by the future or the
past; and because his
feelings have been habitually associated with
thoughts and images, to
the number, clearness, and vivacity of which
the sensation of self is
always in an inverse proportion. And yet,
should he perchance have
occasion to repel some false charge, or to
rectify some erroneous
censure, nothing is more common than for the
many to mistake the
general liveliness of his manner and language,
whatever is the subject,
for the effects of peculiar irritation from
its accidental relation to
himself. [13]
For myself, if from my own
feelings, or from the less suspicious test
of the observations of
others, I had been made aware of any literary
testiness or jealousy; I
trust, that I should have been, however,
neither silly nor arrogant
enough to have burthened the imperfection
on genius. But an
experience--(and I should not need documents in
abundance to prove my
words, if I added)--a tried experience of twenty
years, has taught me, that
the original sin of my character consists
in a careless indifference
to public opinion, and to the attacks of
those who influence it;
that praise and admiration have become yearly
less and less desirable,
except as marks of sympathy; nay that it is
difficult and distressing
to me to think with any interest even about
the sale and profit of my
works, important as, in my present
circumstances, such
considerations must needs be. Yet it never
occurred to me to believe
or fancy, that the quantum of intellectual
power bestowed on me by
nature or education was in any way connected
with this habit of my
feelings; or that it needed any other parents or
fosterers than
constitutional indolence, aggravated into languor by
ill-health; the
accumulating embarrassments of procrastination; the
mental cowardice, which is
the inseparable companion of
procrastination, and which
makes us anxious to think and converse on
any thing rather than on
what concerns ourselves; in fine, all those
close vexations, whether
chargeable on my faults or my fortunes, which
leave me but little grief
to spare for evils comparatively distant and
alien.
Indignation at literary
wrongs I leave to men born under happier
stars. I cannot afford it.
But so far from condemning those who can, I
deem it a writer's duty,
and think it creditable to his heart, to feel
and express a resentment
proportioned to the grossness of the
provocation, and the
importance of the object. There is no profession
on earth, which requires
an attention so early, so long, or so
unintermitting as that of
poetry; and indeed as that of literary
composition in general, if
it be such as at all satisfies the demands
both of taste and of sound
logic. How difficult and delicate a task
even the mere mechanism of
verse is, may be conjectured from the
failure of those, who have
attempted poetry late in life. Where then a
man has, from his earliest
youth, devoted his whole being to an
object, which by the
admission of all civilized nations in all ages is
honourable as a pursuit,
and glorious as an attainment; what of all
that relates to himself
and his family, if only we except his moral
character, can have fairer
claims to his protection, or more authorize
acts of self-defence, than
the elaborate products of his intellect and
intellectual industry?
Prudence itself would command us to show, even
if defect or diversion of
natural sensibility had prevented us from
feeling, a due interest
and qualified anxiety for the offspring and
representatives of our
nobler being. I know it, alas! by woful
experience. I have laid
too many eggs in the hot sands of this
wilderness, the world,
with ostrich carelessness and ostrich oblivion.
The greater part indeed
have been trod under foot, and are forgotten;
but yet no small number
have crept forth into life, some to furnish
feathers for the caps of
others, and still more to plume the shafts in
the quivers of my enemies,
of them that unprovoked have lain in wait
against my soul.
Sic vos, non vobis, mellificatis, apes!
CHAPTER III
The Author's obligations
to critics, and the probable occasion--
Principles of modern
criticism--Mr. Southey's works and character.
To anonymous critics in
reviews, magazines, and news-journals of
various name and rank, and
to satirists with or without a name in
verse or prose, or in
verse-text aided by prose-comment, I do
seriously believe and
profess, that I owe full two-thirds of whatever
reputation and publicity I
happen to possess. For when the name of an
individual has occurred so
frequently, in so many works, for so great
a length of time, the
readers of these works--(which with a shelf or
two of beauties, elegant
Extracts and Anas, form nine-tenths of the
reading of the reading
Public [14])--cannot but be familiar with the
name, without distinctly
remembering whether it was introduced for
eulogy or for censure. And
this becomes the more likely, if (as I
believe) the habit of
perusing periodical works may be properly added
to Averroes' catalogue of
Anti-Mnemonics, or weakeners of the memory
[15]. But where this has
not been the case, yet the reader will be apt
to suspect that there must
be something more than usually strong and
extensive in a reputation,
that could either require or stand so
merciless and
long-continued a cannonading. Without any feeling of
anger therefore--(for
which indeed, on my own account, I have no
pretext)--I may yet be
allowed to express some degree of surprise,
that, after having run the
critical gauntlet for a certain class of
faults which I had,
nothing having come before the judgment-seat in
the interim, I should,
year after year, quarter after quarter, month
after month--(not to
mention sundry petty periodicals of still quicker
revolution, "or
weekly or diurnal")--have been, for at least seventeen
years consecutively,
dragged forth by them into the foremost ranks of
the proscribed, and forced
to abide the brunt of abuse, for faults
directly opposite, and
which I certainly had not. How shall I explain
this?
Whatever may have been the
case with others, I certainly cannot
attribute this persecution
to personal dislike, or to envy, or to
feelings of vindictive
animosity. Not to the former, for with the
exception of a very few
who are my intimate friends, and were so
before they were known as
authors, I have had little other
acquaintance with literary
characters, than what may be implied in an
accidental introduction,
or casual meeting in a mixed company. And as
far as words and looks can
be trusted, I must believe that, even in
these instances, I had
excited no unfriendly disposition. Neither by
letter, nor in
conversation, have I ever had dispute or controversy
beyond the common social
interchange of opinions. Nay, where I had
reason to suppose my
convictions fundamentally different, it has been
my habit, and I may add,
the impulse of my nature, to assign the
grounds of my belief,
rather than the belief itself; and not to
express dissent, till I
could establish some points of complete
sympathy, some grounds
common to both sides, from which to commence
its explanation.
Still less can I place
these attacks to the charge of envy. The few
pages which I have
published, are of too distant a date, and the
extent of their sale a
proof too conclusive against their having been
popular at any time, to
render probable, I had almost said possible,
the excitement of envy on
their account; and the man who should envy
me on any other, verily he
must be envy-mad!
Lastly, with as little
semblance of reason, could I suspect any
animosity towards me from
vindictive feelings as the cause. I have
before said, that my
acquaintance with literary men has been limited
and distant; and that I
have had neither dispute nor controversy. From
my first entrance into
life, I have, with few and short intervals,
lived either abroad or in
retirement. My different essays on subjects
of national interest,
published at different times, first in the
Morning Post and then in
the Courier, with my courses of Lectures on
the principles of
criticism as applied to Shakespeare and Milton,
constitute my whole
publicity; the only occasions on which I could
offend any member of the
republic of letters. With one solitary
exception in which my
words were first misstated and then wantonly
applied to an individual,
I could never learn that I had excited the
displeasure of any among
my literary contemporaries. Having announced
my intention to give a
course of Lectures on the characteristic merits
and defects of English
poetry in its different aeras; first, from
Chaucer to Milton; second,
from Dryden inclusively to Thomson; and
third, from Cowper to the
present day; I changed my plan, and confined
my disquisition to the
former two periods, that I might furnish no
possible pretext for the
unthinking to misconstrue, or the malignant
to misapply my words, and
having stamped their own meaning on them, to
pass them as current coin
in the marts of garrulity or detraction.
Praises of the unworthy
are felt by ardent minds as robberies of the
deserving; and it is too
true, and too frequent, that Bacon,
Harrington, Machiavel, and
Spinoza, are not read, because Hume,
Condillac, and Voltaire
are. But in promiscuous company no prudent man
will oppugn the merits of
a contemporary in his own supposed
department; contenting
himself with praising in his turn those whom he
deems excellent. If I
should ever deem it my duty at all to oppose the
pretensions of
individuals, I would oppose them in books which could
be weighed and answered,
in which I could evolve the whole of my
reasons and feelings, with
their requisite limits and modifications;
not in irrecoverable
conversation, where however strong the reasons
might be, the feelings
that prompted them would assuredly be
attributed by some one or
other to envy and discontent. Besides I well
know, and, I trust, have
acted on that knowledge, that it must be the
ignorant and injudicious
who extol the unworthy; and the eulogies of
critics without taste or
judgment are the natural reward of authors
without feeling or genius.
Sint unicuique sua praemia.
How then, dismissing, as I
do, these three causes, am I to account for
attacks, the long
continuance and inveteracy of which it would require
all three to explain? The
solution seems to be this,--I was in habits
of intimacy with Mr.
Wordsworth and Mr. Southey! This, however,
transfers, rather than
removes the difficulty. Be it, that, by an
unconscionable extension
of the old adage, noscitur a socio, my
literary friends are never
under the water-fall of criticism, but I
must be wet through with
the spray; yet how came the torrent to
descend upon them?
First then, with regard to
Mr. Southey. I well remember the general
reception of his earlier
publications; namely, the poems published
with Mr. Lovell under the
names of Moschus and Bion; the two volumes
of poems under his own
name, and the Joan of Arc. The censures of the
critics by profession are
extant, and may be easily referred to:--
careless lines, inequality
in the merit of the different poems, and
(in the lighter works) a
predilection for the strange and whimsical;
in short, such faults as
might have been anticipated in a young and
rapid writer, were indeed
sufficiently enforced. Nor was there at that
time wanting a party
spirit to aggravate the defects of a poet, who
with all the courage of
uncorrupted youth had avowed his zeal for a
cause, which he deemed
that of liberty, and his abhorrence of
oppression by whatever
name consecrated. But it was as little objected
by others, as dreamed of
by the poet himself, that he preferred
careless and prosaic lines
on rule and of forethought, or indeed that
he pretended to any other
art or theory of poetic diction, except that
which we may all learn
from Horace, Quinctilian, the admirable
dialogue, De Oratoribus,
generally attributed to Tacitus, or Strada's
Prolusions; if indeed
natural good sense and the early study of the
best models in his own
language had not infused the same maxims more
securely, and, if I may
venture the expression, more vitally. All that
could have been fairly
deduced was, that in his taste and estimation
of writers Mr. Southey
agreed far more with Thomas Warton, than with
Dr. Johnson. Nor do I mean
to deny, that at all times Mr. Southey was
of the same mind with Sir
Philip Sidney in preferring an excellent
ballad in the humblest
style of poetry to twenty indifferent poems
that strutted in the
highest. And by what have his works, published
since then, been
characterized, each more strikingly than the
preceding, but by greater
splendour, a deeper pathos, profounder
reflections, and a more
sustained dignity of language and of metre?
Distant may the period be,
but whenever the time shall come, when all
his works shall be
collected by some editor worthy to be his
biographer, I trust that
an appendix of excerpta of all the passages,
in which his writings,
name, and character have been attacked, from
the pamphlets and
periodical works of the last twenty years, may be an
accompaniment. Yet that it
would prove medicinal in after times I dare
not hope; for as long as
there are readers to be delighted with
calumny, there will be
found reviewers to calumniate. And such readers
will become in all
probability more numerous, in proportion as a still
greater diffusion of
literature shall produce an increase of
sciolists, and sciolism
bring with it petulance and presumption. In
times of old, books were
as religious oracles; as literature advanced,
they next became venerable
preceptors; they then descended to the rank
of instructive friends;
and, as their numbers increased, they sank
still lower to that of
entertaining companions; and at present they
seem degraded into
culprits to hold up their hands at the bar of every
self-elected, yet not the
less peremptory, judge, who chooses to write
from humour or interest,
from enmity or arrogance, and to abide the
decision "of him that
reads in malice, or him that reads after
dinner."
The same retrograde
movement may be traced, in the relation which the
authors themselves have
assumed towards their readers. From the lofty
address of Bacon:
"these are the meditations of Francis of Verulam,
which that posterity
should be possessed of, he deemed their
interest:" or from
dedication to Monarch or Pontiff, in which the
honour given was asserted
in equipoise to the patronage acknowledged:
from Pindar's
------'ep' alloi-
-si d'alloi megaloi: to d'eschaton kory-
phoutai basilensi. Maeketi
paptaine porsion.
Eiae se te touton
upsou chronon patein, eme
te tossade nikaphorois
omilein, prophanton sophian kath' El-
lanas eonta panta.--OLYMP. OD. I.
there was a gradual
sinking in the etiquette or allowed style of
pretension.
Poets and Philosophers,
rendered diffident by their very number,
addressed themselves to
"learned readers;" then aimed to conciliate
the graces of "the
candid reader;" till, the critic still rising as
the author sank, the
amateurs of literature collectively were erected
into a municipality of
judges, and addressed as the Town! And now,
finally, all men being
supposed able to read, and all readers able to
judge, the multitudinous
Public, shaped into personal unity by the
magic of abstraction, sits
nominal despot on the throne of criticism.
But, alas! as in other
despotisms, it but echoes the decisions of its
invisible ministers, whose
intellectual claims to the guardianship of
the Muses seem, for the
greater part, analogous to the physical
qualifications which adapt
their oriental brethren for the
superintendence of the
Harem. Thus it is said, that St. Nepomuc was
installed the guardian of
bridges, because he had fallen over one, and
sunk out of sight; thus
too St. Cecilia is said to have been first
propitiated by musicians,
because, having failed in her own attempts,
she had taken a dislike to
the art and all its successful professors.
But I shall probably have
occasion hereafter to deliver my convictions
more at large concerning
this state of things, and its influences on
taste, genius and
morality.
In the Thalaba, the Madoc,
and still more evidently in the unique [16]
Cid, in the Kehama, and,
as last, so best, the Roderick; Southey has
given abundant proof, se
cogitare quam sit magnum dare aliquid in
manus hominum: nec
persuadere sibi posse, non saepe tractandum quod
placere et semper et
omnibus cupiat. But on the other hand, I
conceive, that Mr. Southey
was quite unable to comprehend, wherein
could consist the crime or
mischief of printing half a dozen or more
playful poems; or to speak
more generally, compositions which would be
enjoyed or passed over,
according as the taste and humour of the
reader might chance to be;
provided they contained nothing immoral. In
the present age periturae
parcere chartae is emphatically an
unreasonable demand. The
merest trifle he ever sent abroad had tenfold
better claims to its ink
and paper than all the silly criticisms on
it, which proved no more
than that the critic was not one of those,
for whom the trifle was
written; and than all the grave exhortations
to a greater reverence for
the public--as if the passive page of a
book, by having an epigram
or doggerel tale impressed on it, instantly
assumed at once
loco-motive power and a sort of ubiquity, so as to
flutter and buz in the ear
of the public to the sore annoyance of the
said mysterious personage.
But what gives an additional and more
ludicrous absurdity to
these lamentations is the curious fact, that if
in a volume of poetry the
critic should find poem or passage which he
deems more especially
worthless, he is sure to select and reprint it
in the review; by which,
on his own grounds, he wastes as much more
paper than the author, as
the copies of a fashionable review are more
numerous than those of the
original book; in some, and those the most
prominent instances, as
ten thousand to five hundred. I know nothing
that surpasses the
vileness of deciding on the merits of a poet or
painter,--(not by
characteristic defects; for where there is genius,
these always point to his
characteristic beauties; but)--by accidental
failures or faulty
passages; except the impudence of defending it, as
the proper duty, and most
instructive part, of criticism. Omit or pass
slightly over the
expression, grace, and grouping of Raffael's
figures; but ridicule in
detail the knitting-needles and broom-twigs,
that are to represent
trees in his back grounds; and never let him
hear the last of his
galli-pots! Admit that the Allegro and Penseroso
of Milton are not without
merit; but repay yourself for this
concession, by reprinting
at length the two poems on the University
Carrier! As a fair
specimen of his Sonnets, quote
"A Book was writ of late called
Tetrachordon;"
and, as characteristic of
his rhythm and metre, cite his literal
translation of the first
and second Psalm! In order to justify
yourself, you need only
assert, that had you dwelt chiefly on the
beauties and excellencies
of the poet, the admiration of these might
seduce the attention of
future writers from the objects of their love
and wonder, to an
imitation of the few poems and passages in which the
poet was most unlike
himself.
But till reviews are
conducted on far other principles, and with far
other motives; till in the
place of arbitrary dictation and petulant
sneers, the reviewers
support their decisions by reference to fixed
canons of criticism,
previously established and deduced from the
nature of man; reflecting
minds will pronounce it arrogance in them
thus to announce
themselves to men of letters, as the guides of their
taste and judgment. To the
purchaser and mere reader it is, at all
events, an injustice. He
who tells me that there are defects in a new
work, tells me nothing
which I should not have taken for granted
without his information.
But he, who points out and elucidates the
beauties of an original
work does indeed give me interesting
information, such as
experience would not have authorized me in
anticipating. And as to
compositions which the authors themselves
announce with
Haec ipsi novimus esse nihil,
why should we judge by a
different rule two printed works, only
because the one author is
alive, and the other in his grave? What
literary man has not
regretted the prudery of Spratt in refusing to
let his friend Cowley
appear in his slippers and dressing gown? I am
not perhaps the only one
who has derived an innocent amusement from
the riddles, conundrums,
tri-syllable lines, and the like, of Swift
and his correspondents, in
hours of languor, when to have read his
more finished works would
have been useless to myself, and, in some
sort, an act of injustice
to the author. But I am at a loss to
conceive by what
perversity of judgment, these relaxations of his
genius could be employed
to diminish his fame as the writer of
Gulliver, or the Tale of a
Tub. Had Mr. Southey written twice as many
poems of inferior merit,
or partial interest, as have enlivened the
journals of the day, they
would have added to his honour with good and
wise men, not merely or
principally as proving the versatility of his
talents, but as evidences
of the purity of that mind, which even in
its levities never
dictated a line which it need regret on any moral
account.
I have in imagination
transferred to the future biographer the duty of
contrasting Southey's
fixed and well-earned fame, with the abuse and
indefatigable hostility of
his anonymous critics from his early youth
to his ripest manhood. But
I cannot think so ill of human nature as
not to believe, that these
critics have already taken shame to
themselves, whether they
consider the object of their abuse in his
moral or his literary
character. For reflect but on the variety and
extent of his
acquirements! He stands second to no man, either as an
historian or as a
bibliographer; and when I regard him as a popular
essayist,--(for the
articles of his compositions in the reviews are,
for the greater part,
essays on subjects of deep or curious interest
rather than criticisms on
particular works)--I look in vain for any
writer, who has conveyed
so much information, from so many and such
recondite sources, with so
many just and original reflections, in a
style so lively and
poignant, yet so uniformly classical and
perspicuous; no one, in
short, who has combined so much wisdom with so
much wit; so much truth
and knowledge with so much life and fancy. His
prose is always
intelligible and always entertaining. In poetry he has
attempted almost every
species of composition known before, and he has
added new ones; and if we
except the highest lyric,--(in which how
few, how very few even of
the greatest minds have been fortunate)--he
has attempted every
species successfully; from the political song of
the day, thrown off in the
playful overflow of honest joy and
patriotic exultation, to
the wild ballad; from epistolary ease and
graceful narrative, to
austere and impetuous moral declamation; from
the pastoral charms and
wild streaming lights of the Thalaba, in which
sentiment and imagery have
given permanence even to the excitement of
curiosity; and from the
full blaze of the Kehama,--(a gallery of
finished pictures in one
splendid fancy piece, in which,
notwithstanding, the moral
grandeur rises gradually above the
brilliance of the
colouring and the boldness and novelty of the
machinery)--to the more
sober beauties of the Madoc; and lastly, from
the Madoc to his Roderick,
in which, retaining all his former
excellencies of a poet
eminently inventive and picturesque, he has
surpassed himself in
language and metre, in the construction of the
whole, and in the
splendour of particular passages.
Here then shall I
conclude? No! The characters of the deceased, like
the encomia on tombstones,
as they are described with religious
tenderness, so are they
read, with allowing sympathy indeed, but yet
with rational deduction.
There are men, who deserve a higher record;
men with whose characters
it is the interest of their contemporaries,
no less than that of
posterity, to be made acquainted; while it is yet
possible for impartial
censure, and even for quick-sighted envy, to
cross-examine the tale
without offence to the courtesies of humanity;
and while the eulogist,
detected in exaggeration or falsehood, must
pay the full penalty of
his baseness in the contempt which brands the
convicted flatterer.
Publicly has Mr. Southey been reviled by men,
who, as I would fain hope
for the honour of human nature, hurled fire-
brands against a figure of
their own imagination; publicly have his
talents been depreciated,
his principles denounced; as publicly do I
therefore, who have known
him intimately, deem it my duty to leave
recorded, that it is
Southey's almost unexampled felicity, to possess
the best gifts of talent
and genius free from all their characteristic
defects. To those who
remember the state of our public schools and
universities some twenty
years past, it will appear no ordinary praise
in any man to have passed
from innocence into virtue, not only free
from all vicious habit,
but unstained by one act of intemperance, or
the degradations akin to
intemperance. That scheme of head, heart, and
habitual demeanour, which
in his early manhood, and first
controversial writings,
Milton, claiming the privilege of self-
defence, asserts of
himself, and challenges his calumniators to
disprove; this will his
school-mates, his fellow-collegians, and his
maturer friends, with a
confidence proportioned to the intimacy of
their knowledge, bear
witness to, as again realized in the life of
Robert Southey. But still
more striking to those, who by biography or
by their own experience
are familiar with the general habits of
genius, will appear the
poet's matchless industry and perseverance in
his pursuits; the
worthiness and dignity of those pursuits; his
generous submission to
tasks of transitory interest, or such as his
genius alone could make
otherwise; and that having thus more than
satisfied the claims of
affection or prudence, he should yet have made
for himself time and
power, to achieve more, and in more various
departments, than almost
any other writer has done, though employed
wholly on subjects of his
own choice and ambition. But as Southey
possesses, and is not
possessed by, his genius, even so is he master
even of his virtues. The
regular and methodical tenor of his daily
labours, which would be
deemed rare in the most mechanical pursuits,
and might be envied by the
mere man of business, loses all semblance
of formality in the
dignified simplicity of his manners, in the spring
and healthful cheerfulness
of his spirits. Always employed, his
friends find him always at
leisure. No less punctual in trifles, than
steadfast in the
performance of highest duties, he inflicts none of
those small pains and
discomforts which irregular men scatter about
them, and which in the
aggregate so often become formidable obstacles
both to happiness and
utility; while on the contrary he bestows all
the pleasures, and
inspires all that ease of mind on those around him
or connected with him,
which perfect consistency, and (if such a word
might be framed) absolute
reliability, equally in small as in great
concerns, cannot but
inspire and bestow; when this too is softened
without being weakened by
kindness and gentleness. I know few men who
so well deserve the
character which an antient attributes to Marcus
Cato, namely, that he was
likest virtue, in as much as he seemed to
act aright, not in
obedience to any law or outward motive, but by the
necessity of a happy
nature, which could not act otherwise. As son,
brother, husband, father, master,
friend, he moves with firm yet light
steps, alike
unostentatious, and alike exemplary. As a writer, he has
uniformly made his talents
subservient to the best interests of
humanity, of public
virtue, and domestic piety; his cause has ever
been the cause of pure
religion and of liberty, of national
independence and of
national illumination. When future critics shall
weigh out his guerdon of
praise and censure, it will be Southey the
poet only, that will
supply them with the scanty materials for the
latter. They will likewise
not fail to record, that as no man was ever
a more constant friend,
never had poet more friends and honourers
among the good of all
parties; and that quacks in education, quacks in
politics, and quacks in
criticism were his only enemies. [17]
CHAPTER IV
The Lyrical Ballads with
the Preface--Mr. Wordsworth's earlier poems--
On fancy and
imagination--The investigation of the distinction
important to the Fine
Arts.
I have wandered far from
the object in view, but as I fancied to
myself readers who would
respect the feelings that had tempted me from
the main road; so I dare
calculate on not a few, who will warmly
sympathize with them. At
present it will be sufficient for my purpose,
if I have proved, that Mr.
Southey's writings no more than my own
furnished the original
occasion to this fiction of a new school of
poetry, and to the
clamours against its supposed founders and
proselytes.
As little do I believe
that Mr. Wordsworth's Lyrical Ballads were in
themselves the cause. I
speak exclusively of the two volumes so
entitled. A careful and
repeated examination of these confirms me in
the belief, that the
omission of less than a hundred lines would have
precluded nine-tenths of
the criticism on this work. I hazard this
declaration, however, on
the supposition, that the reader has taken it
up, as he would have done
any other collection of poems purporting to
derive their subjects or
interests from the incidents of domestic or
ordinary life, intermingled
with higher strains of meditation which
the poet utters in his own
person and character; with the proviso,
that these poems were
perused without knowledge of, or reference to,
the author's peculiar
opinions, and that the reader had not had his
attention previously
directed to those peculiarities. In that case, as
actually happened with Mr.
Southey's earlier works, the lines and
passages which might have
offended the general taste, would have been
considered as mere
inequalities, and attributed to inattention, not to
perversity of judgment.
The men of business who had passed their lives
chiefly in cities, and who
might therefore be expected to derive the
highest pleasure from
acute notices of men and manners conveyed in
easy, yet correct and
pointed language; and all those who, reading but
little poetry, are most
stimulated with that species of it, which
seems most distant from
prose, would probably have passed by the
volumes altogether. Others
more catholic in their taste, and yet
habituated to be most
pleased when most excited, would have contented
themselves with deciding,
that the author had been successful in
proportion to the
elevation of his style and subject. Not a few,
perhaps, might, by their
admiration of the Lines written near Tintern
Abbey, on revisiting the
Wye, those Left upon a Yew Tree Seat, The Old
Cumberland Beggar, and
Ruth, have been gradually led to peruse with
kindred feeling The
Brothers, the Hart-leap Well, and whatever other
poems in that collection
may be described as holding a middle place
between those written in
the highest and those in the humblest style;
as for instance between
the Tintern Abbey, and The Thorn, or Simon
Lee. Should their taste
submit to no further change, and still remain
unreconciled to the
colloquial phrases, or the imitations of them,
that are, more or less,
scattered through the class last mentioned;
yet even from the small
number of the latter, they would have deemed
them but an inconsiderable
subtraction from the merit of the whole
work; or, what is
sometimes not unpleasing in the publication of a new
writer, as serving to
ascertain the natural tendency, and consequently
the proper direction of
the author's genius.
In the critical remarks,
therefore, prefixed and annexed to the
Lyrical Ballads, I
believe, we may safely rest, as the true origin of
the unexampled opposition
which Mr. Wordsworth's writings have been
since doomed to encounter.
The humbler passages in the poems
themselves were dwelt on
and cited to justify the rejection of the
theory. What in and for
themselves would have been either forgotten or
forgiven as imperfections,
or at least comparative failures, provoked
direct hostility when
announced as intentional, as the result of
choice after full
deliberation. Thus the poems, admitted by all as
excellent, joined with
those which had pleased the far greater number,
though they formed
two-thirds of the whole work, instead of being
deemed (as in all right
they should have been, even if we take for
granted that the reader
judged aright) an atonement for the few
exceptions, gave wind and
fuel to the animosity against both the poems
and the poet. In all
perplexity there is a portion of fear, which
predisposes the mind to
anger. Not able to deny that the author
possessed both genius and
a powerful intellect, they felt very
positive,--but yet were
not quite certain that he might not be in the
right, and they themselves
in the wrong; an unquiet state of mind,
which seeks alleviation by
quarrelling with the occasion of it, and by
wondering at the
perverseness of the man, who had written a long and
argumentative essay to
persuade them, that
Fair is foul, and foul is fair;
in other words, that they
had been all their lives admiring without
judgment, and were now
about to censure without reason. [18]
That this conjecture is
not wide from the mark, I am induced to
believe from the
noticeable fact, which I can state on my own
knowledge, that the same
general censure has been grounded by almost
every different person on
some different poem. Among those, whose
candour and judgment I
estimate highly, I distinctly remember six who
expressed their objections
to the Lyrical Ballads almost in the same
words, and altogether to
the same purport, at the same time admitting,
that several of the poems
had given them great pleasure; and, strange
as it might seem, the
composition which one cited as execrable,
another quoted as his
favourite. I am indeed convinced in my own mind,
that could the same experiment
have been tried with these volumes, as
was made in the well known
story of the picture, the result would have
been the same; the parts
which had been covered by black spots on the
one day, would be found
equally albo lapide notatae on the succeeding.
However this may be, it
was assuredly hard and unjust to fix the
attention on a few
separate and insulated poems with as much aversion,
as if they had been so
many plague-spots on the whole work, instead of
passing them over in
silence, as so much blank paper, or leaves of a
bookseller's catalogue;
especially, as no one pretended to have found
in them any immorality or
indelicacy; and the poems, therefore, at the
worst, could only be
regarded as so many light or inferior coins in a
rouleau of gold, not as so
much alloy in a weight of bullion. A friend
whose talents I hold in
the highest respect, but whose judgment and
strong sound sense I have
had almost continued occasion to revere,
making the usual
complaints to me concerning both the style and
subjects of Mr.
Wordsworth's minor poems; I admitted that there were
some few of the tales and
incidents, in which I could not myself find
a sufficient cause for
their having been recorded in metre. I
mentioned Alice Fell as an
instance; "Nay," replied my friend with
more than usual quickness
of manner, "I cannot agree with you there!--
that, I own, does seem to
me a remarkably pleasing poem." In the
Lyrical Ballads, (for my
experience does not enable me to extend the
remark equally unqualified
to the two subsequent volumes,) I have
heard at different times,
and from different individuals, every single
poem extolled and
reprobated, with the exception of those of loftier
kind, which as was before
observed, seem to have won universal praise.
This fact of itself would
have made me diffident in my censures, had
not a still stronger
ground been furnished by the strange contrast of
the heat and long
continuance of the opposition, with the nature of
the faults stated as
justifying it. The seductive faults, the dulcia
vitia of Cowley, Marine,
or Darwin might reasonably be thought capable
of corrupting the public
judgment for half a century, and require a
twenty years war, campaign
after campaign, in order to dethrone the
usurper and re-establish
the legitimate taste. But that a downright
simpleness, under the
affectation of simplicity, prosaic words in
feeble metre, silly
thoughts in childish phrases, and a preference of
mean, degrading, or at
best trivial associations and characters,
should succeed in forming
a school of imitators, a company of almost
religious admirers, and
this too among young men of ardent minds,
liberal education, and not
------with academic laurels unbestowed;
and that this bare and
bald counterfeit of poetry, which is
characterized as below
criticism, should for nearly twenty years have
well-nigh engrossed
criticism, as the main, if not the only, butt of
review, magazine,
pamphlet, poem, and paragraph; this is indeed matter
of wonder. Of yet greater
is it, that the contest should still
continue as undecided as
[19] that between Bacchus and the frogs in
Aristophanes; when the
former descended to the realms of the departed
to bring back the spirit
of old and genuine poesy;--
CH.
Brekekekex, koax, koax.
D.
All' exoloisth' auto koax.
Ouden gar est'
all', hae koax.
Oimozet' ou gar
moi melei.
CH.
Alla maen kekraxomestha
g', oposon hae
pharynx an haemon
chandanae di'
haemeras,
brekekekex, koax,
koax!
D.
Touto gar ou nikaesete.
CH.
Oude men haemas su pantos.
D.
Oude maen humeis ge dae m'
oudepote.
Kekraxomai gar,
kan me deae, di'
haemeras,
eos an humon
epikrataeso tou koax!
CH.
Brekekekex, KO'AX, KOAX!
During the last year of my
residence at Cambridge, 1794, I became
acquainted with Mr.
Wordsworth's first publication entitled
Descriptive Sketches; and
seldom, if ever, was the emergence of an
original poetic genius
above the literary horizon more evidently
announced. In the form,
style, and manner of the whole poem, and in
the structure of the
particular lines and periods, there is a
harshness and acerbity
connected and combined with words and images
all a-glow, which might
recall those products of the vegetable world,
where gorgeous blossoms
rise out of a hard and thorny rind and shell,
within which the rich
fruit is elaborating. The language is not only
peculiar and strong, but
at times knotty and contorted, as by its own
impatient strength; while
the novelty and struggling crowd of images,
acting in conjunction with
the difficulties of the style, demands
always a greater closeness
of attention, than poetry,--at all events,
than descriptive
poetry--has a right to claim. It not seldom therefore
justified the complaint of
obscurity. In the following extract I have
sometimes fancied, that I
saw an emblem of the poem itself, and of the
author's genius as it was
then displayed.--
'Tis storm; and hid in mist from hour to hour,
All day the floods a deepening murmur pour;
The sky is veiled, and every cheerful sight
Dark is the region as with coming night;
Yet what a sudden burst of overpowering light!
Triumphant on the bosom of the storm,
Glances the fire-clad eagle's wheeling form;
Eastward, in long perspective glittering, shine
The wood-crowned cliffs that o'er the lake
recline;
Those Eastern cliffs a hundred streams unfold,
At once to pillars turned that flame with gold;
Behind his sail the peasant strives to shun
The west, that burns like one dilated sun,
Where in a mighty crucible expire
The mountains, glowing hot, like coals of fire.
The poetic Psyche, in its
process to full development, undergoes as
many changes as its Greek
namesake, the butterfly [20]. And it is
remarkable how soon genius
clears and purifies itself from the faults
and errors of its earliest
products; faults which, in its earliest
compositions, are the more
obtrusive and confluent, because as
heterogeneous elements,
which had only a temporary use, they
constitute the very
ferment, by which themselves are carried off. Or
we may compare them to
some diseases, which must work on the humours,
and be thrown out on the
surface, in order to secure the patient from
their future recurrence. I
was in my twenty-fourth year, when I had
the happiness of knowing
Mr. Wordsworth personally, and while memory
lasts, I shall hardly
forget the sudden effect produced on my mind, by
his recitation of a
manuscript poem, which still remains unpublished,
but of which the stanza
and tone of style were the same as those of
The Female Vagrant, as
originally printed in the first volume of the
Lyrical Ballads. There was
here no mark of strained thought, or forced
diction, no crowd or
turbulence of imagery; and, as the poet hath
himself well described in
his Lines on revisiting the Wye, manly
reflection and human
associations had given both variety, and an
additional interest to
natural objects, which, in the passion and
appetite of the first
love, they had seemed to him neither to need nor
permit. The occasional
obscurities, which had risen from an imperfect
control over the resources
of his native language, had almost wholly
disappeared, together with
that worse defect of arbitrary and
illogical phrases, at once
hackneyed and fantastic, which hold so
distinguished a place in
the technique of ordinary poetry, and will,
more or less, alloy the
earlier poems of the truest genius, unless the
attention has been
specially directed to their worthlessness and
incongruity [21]. I did
not perceive anything particular in the mere
style of the poem alluded
to during its recitation, except indeed such
difference as was not
separable from the thought and manner; and the
Spenserian stanza, which
always, more or less, recalls to the reader's
mind Spenser's own style,
would doubtless have authorized, in my then
opinion, a more frequent
descent to the phrases of ordinary life, than
could without an ill
effect have been hazarded in the heroic couplet.
It was not however the
freedom from false taste, whether as to common
defects, or to those more
properly his own, which made so unusual an
impression on my feelings
immediately, and subsequently on my
judgment. It was the union
of deep feeling with profound thought; the
fine balance of truth in
observing, with the imaginative faculty in
modifying, the objects
observed; and above all the original gift of
spreading the tone, the
atmosphere, and with it the depth and height
of the ideal world around
forms, incidents, and situations, of which,
for the common view,
custom had bedimmed all the lustre, had dried up
the sparkle and the dew
drops.
This excellence, which in
all Mr. Wordsworth's writings is more or
less predominant, and
which constitutes the character of his mind, I
no sooner felt, than I
sought to understand. Repeated meditations led
me first to suspect,--(and
a more intimate analysis of the human
faculties, their
appropriate marks, functions, and effects matured my
conjecture into full
conviction,)--that Fancy and Imagination were two
distinct and widely
different faculties, instead of being, according
to the general belief,
either two names with one meaning, or, at
furthest, the lower and
higher degree of one and the same power. It is
not, I own, easy to
conceive a more apposite translation of the Greek
phantasia than the Latin
imaginatio; but it is equally true that in
all societies there exists
an instinct of growth, a certain
collective, unconscious
good sense working progressively to
desynonymize [22] those
words originally of the same meaning, which
the conflux of dialects
supplied to the more homogeneous languages, as
the Greek and German: and
which the same cause, joined with accidents
of translation from
original works of different countries, occasion in
mixed languages like our
own. The first and most important point to be
proved is, that two
conceptions perfectly distinct are confused under
one and the same word,
and--this done--to appropriate that word
exclusively to the one
meaning, and the synonyme, should there be one,
to the other. But if,--(as
will be often the case in the arts and
sciences,)--no synonyme
exists, we must either invent or borrow a
word. In the present
instance the appropriation has already begun, and
been legitimated in the
derivative adjective: Milton had a highly
imaginative, Cowley a very
fanciful mind. If therefore I should
succeed in establishing
the actual existence of two faculties
generally different, the
nomenclature would be at once determined. To
the faculty by which I had
characterized Milton, we should confine the
term 'imagination;' while
the other would be contra-distinguished as
'fancy.' Now were it once
fully ascertained, that this division is no
less grounded in nature
than that of delirium from mania, or Otway's
Lutes, laurels, seas of milk, and ships of
amber,
from Shakespeare's
What! have his daughters brought him to this
pass?
or from the preceding
apostrophe to the elements; the theory of the
fine arts, and of poetry
in particular, could not but derive some
additional and important
light. It would in its immediate effects
furnish a torch of
guidance to the philosophical critic; and
ultimately to the poet
himself. In energetic minds, truth soon changes
by domestication into
power; and from directing in the discrimination
and appraisal of the
product, becomes influencive in the production.
To admire on principle, is
the only way to imitate without loss of
originality.
It has been already
hinted, that metaphysics and psychology have long
been my hobby-horse. But
to have a hobby-horse, and to be vain of it,
are so commonly found
together, that they pass almost for the same. I
trust therefore, that
there will be more good humour than contempt, in
the smile with which the
reader chastises my self-complacency, if I
confess myself uncertain,
whether the satisfaction from the perception
of a truth new to myself
may not have been rendered more poignant by
the conceit, that it would
be equally so to the public. There was a
time, certainly, in which
I took some little credit to myself, in the
belief that I had been the
first of my countrymen, who had pointed out
the diverse meaning of
which the two terms were capable, and analyzed
the faculties to which
they should be appropriated. Mr. W. Taylor's
recent volume of synonymes
I have not yet seen [23]; but his
specification of the terms
in question has been clearly shown to be
both insufficient and
erroneous by Mr. Wordsworth in the Preface added
to the late collection of
his Poems. The explanation which Mr.
Wordsworth has himself
given, will be found to differ from mine,
chiefly, perhaps as our
objects are different. It could scarcely
indeed happen otherwise,
from the advantage I have enjoyed of frequent
conversation with him on a
subject to which a poem of his own first
directed my attention, and
my conclusions concerning which he had made
more lucid to myself by
many happy instances drawn from the operation
of natural objects on the
mind. But it was Mr. Wordsworth's purpose to
consider the influences of
fancy and imagination as they are
manifested in poetry, and
from the different effects to conclude their
diversity in kind; while
it is my object to investigate the seminal
principle, and then from
the kind to deduce the degree. My friend has
drawn a masterly sketch of
the branches with their poetic fruitage. I
wish to add the trunk, and
even the roots as far as they lift
themselves above ground,
and are visible to the naked eye of our
common consciousness.
Yet even in this attempt I
am aware that I shall be obliged to draw
more largely on the
reader's attention, than so immethodical a
miscellany as this can
authorize; when in such a work (the
Ecclesiasical Polity) of
such a mind as Hooker's, the judicious
author, though no less
admirable for the perspicuity than for the port
and dignity of his
language,--and though he wrote for men of learning
in a learned age,--saw
nevertheless occasion to anticipate and guard
against "complaints
of obscurity," as often as he was to trace his
subject "to the
highest well-spring and fountain." Which, (continues
he) "because men are
not accustomed to, the pains we take are more
needful a great deal, than
acceptable; and the matters we handle, seem
by reason of newness (till
the mind grow better acquainted with them)
dark and intricate."
I would gladly therefore spare both myself and
others this labour, if I
knew how without it to present an
intelligible statement of
my poetic creed,--not as my opinions, which
weigh for nothing, but as
deductions from established premises
conveyed in such a form,
as is calculated either to effect a
fundamental conviction, or
to receive a fundamental confutation. If I
may dare once more adopt
the words of Hooker, "they, unto whom we
shall seem tedious, are in
no wise injured by us, because it is in
their own hands to spare
that labour, which they are not willing to
endure." Those at least,
let me be permitted to add, who have taken so
much pains to render me
ridiculous for a perversion of taste, and have
supported the charge by
attributing strange notions to me on no other
authority than their own
conjectures, owe it to themselves as well as
to me not to refuse their
attention to my own statement of the theory
which I do acknowledge; or
shrink from the trouble of examining the
grounds on which I rest
it, or the arguments which I offer in its
justification.
CHAPTER V
On the law of
Association--Its history traced from Aristotle to
Hartley.
There have been men in all
ages, who have been impelled as by an
instinct to propose their
own nature as a problem, and who devote
their attempts to its
solution. The first step was to construct a
table of distinctions,
which they seem to have formed on the principle
of the absence or presence
of the Will. Our various sensations,
perceptions, and movements
were classed as active or passive, or as
media partaking of both. A
still finer distinction was soon
established between the
voluntary and the spontaneous. In our
perceptions we seem to
ourselves merely passive to an external power,
whether as a mirror
reflecting the landscape, or as a blank canvass on
which some unknown hand
paints it. For it is worthy of notice, that
the latter, or the system
of Idealism may be traced to sources equally
remote with the former, or
Materialism; and Berkeley can boast an
ancestry at least as
venerable as Gassendi or Hobbes. These
conjectures, however,
concerning the mode in which our perceptions
originated, could not
alter the natural difference of Things and
Thoughts. In the former,
the cause appeared wholly external, while in
the latter, sometimes our
will interfered as the producing or
determining cause, and
sometimes our nature seemed to act by a
mechanism of its own,
without any conscious effort of the will, or
even against it. Our
inward experiences were thus arranged in three
separate classes, the
passive sense, or what the School-men call the
merely receptive quality
of the mind; the voluntary; and the
spontaneous, which holds
the middle place between both. But it is not
in human nature to
meditate on any mode of action, without inquiring
after the law that governs
it; and in the explanation of the
spontaneous movements of
our being, the metaphysician took the lead of
the anatomist and natural
philosopher. In Egypt, Palestine, Greece,
and India the analysis of
the mind had reached its noon and manhood,
while experimental
research was still in its dawn and infancy. For
many, very many centuries,
it has been difficult to advance a new
truth, or even a new
error, in the philosophy of the intellect or
morals. With regard,
however, to the laws that direct the spontaneous
movements of thought and
the principle of their intellectual mechanism
there exists, it has been
asserted, an important exception most
honourable to the moderns,
and in the merit of which our own country
claims the largest share.
Sir James Mackintosh,--(who, amid the
variety of his talents and
attainments, is not of less repute for the
depth and accuracy of his
philosophical inquiries than for the
eloquence with which he is
said to render their most difficult results
perspicuous, and the
driest attractive,)--affirmed in the Lectures,
delivered by him in
Lincoln's Inn Hall, that the law of association as
established in the
contemporaneity of the original impressions, formed
the basis of all true
psychology; and that any ontological or
metaphysical science, not
contained in such (that is, an empirical)
psychology, was but a web
of abstractions and generalizations. Of this
prolific truth, of this
great fundamental law, he declared Hobbes to
have been the original
discoverer, while its full application to the
whole intellectual system
we owed to Hartley; who stood in the same
relation to Hobbes as
Newton to Kepler; the law of association being
that to the mind, which
gravitation is to matter.
Of the former clause in
this assertion, as it respects the comparative
merits of the ancient
metaphysicians, including their commentators,
the School-men, and of the
modern and British and French philosophers
from Hobbes to Hume,
Hartley, and Condillac, this is not the place to
speak. So wide indeed is
the chasm between Sir James Mackintosh's
philosophical creed and
mine, that so far from being able to join
hands, we could scarcely
make our voices intelligible to each other:
and to bridge it over
would require more time, skill, and power than I
believe myself to possess.
But the latter clause involves for the
greater part a mere
question of fact and history, and the accuracy of
the statement is to be
tried by documents rather than reasoning.
First, then, I deny
Hobbes's claim in toto: for he had been
anticipated by Des Cartes,
whose work De Methodo, preceded Hobbes's De
Natura Humana, by more
than a year. But what is of much more
importance, Hobbes builds
nothing on the principle which he had
announced. He does not
even announce it, as differing in any respect
from the general laws of
material motion and impact: nor was it,
indeed, possible for him
so to do, compatibly with his system, which
was exclusively material
and mechanical. Far otherwise is it with Des
Cartes; greatly as he too
in his after writings (and still more
egregiously his followers
De la Forge, and others) obscured the truth
by their attempts to
explain it on the theory of nervous fluids, and
material configurations.
But, in his interesting work, De Methodo, Des
Cartes relates the
circumstance which first led him to meditate on
this subject, and which
since then has been often noticed and employed
as an instance and
illustration of the law. A child who with its eyes
bandaged had lost several
of his fingers by amputation, continued to
complain for many days
successively of pains, now in this joint and
now in that, of the very
fingers which had been cut off. Des Cartes
was led by this incident
to reflect on the uncertainty with which we
attribute any particular
place to any inward pain or uneasiness, and
proceeded after long
consideration to establish it as a general law:
that contemporaneous
impressions, whether images or sensations, recall
each other mechanically.
On this principle, as a ground work, he built
up the whole system of
human language, as one continued process of
association. He showed in
what sense not only general terms, but
generic images,--under the
name of abstract ideas,--actually existed,
and in what consist their
nature and power. As one word may become the
general exponent of many,
so by association a simple image may
represent a whole class.
But in truth Hobbes himself makes no claims
to any discovery, and
introduces this law of association, or (in his
own language) discursion
of mind, as an admitted fact, in the solution
alone of which, and this
by causes purely physiological, he arrogates
any originality. His
system is briefly this; whenever the senses are
impinged on by external
objects, whether by the rays of light
reflected from them, or by
effluxes of their finer particles, there
results a correspondent
motion of the innermost and subtlest organs.
This motion constitutes a
representation, and there remains an
impression of the same, or
a certain disposition to repeat the same
motion. Whenever we feel
several objects at the same time, the
impressions that are left,
(or in the language of Mr. Hume, the
ideas,) are linked
together. Whenever therefore any one of the
movements, which
constitute a complex impression, is renewed through
the senses, the others
succeed mechanically. It follows of necessity,
therefore, that Hobbes, as
well as Hartley and all others who derive
association from the
connection and interdependence of the supposed
matter, the movements of
which constitute our thoughts, must have
reduced all its forms to
the one law of Time. But even the merit of
announcing this law with
philosophic precision cannot be fairly
conceded to him. For the
objects of any two ideas need not have co-
existed in the same sensation
in order to become mutually associable.
The same result will
follow when one only of the two ideas has been
represented by the senses,
and the other by the memory.
Long however before either
Hobbes or Des Cartes the law of association
had been defined, and its
important functions set forth by Ludovicus
Vives. Phantasia, it is to
be noticed, is employed by Vives to express
the mental power of
comprehension, or the active function of the mind;
and imaginatio for the
receptivity (via receptiva) of impressions, or
for the passive
perception. The power of combination he appropriates
to the former: "quae
singula et simpliciter acceperat imaginatio, ea
conjungit et disjungait
phantasia." And the law by which the thoughts
are spontaneously
presented follows thus: "quae simul sunt a phantasia
comprehensa, si alterutrum
occurrat, solet secum alterum
representare." To
time therefore he subordinates all the other
exciting causes of
association. The soul proceeds "a causa ad
effectum, ab hoc ad instrumentum,
a parte ad totum;" thence to the
place, from place to
person, and from this to whatever preceded or
followed, all as being
parts of a total impression, each of which may
recall the other. The
apparent springs "saltus vel transitus etiam
longissimos," he
explains by the same thought having been a component
part of two or more total
impressions. Thus "ex Scipione venio in
cogitationem potentiae
Turcicae, propter victorias ejus de Asia, in
qua regnabat
Antiochus."
But from Vives I pass at
once to the source of his doctrines, and (as
far as we can judge from
the remains yet extant of Greek philosophy)
as to the first, so to the
fullest and most perfect enunciation of the
associative principle,
namely, to the writings of Aristotle; and of
these in particular to the
treatises De Anima, and "De Memoria," which
last belongs to the series
of essays entitled in the old translations
Parva Naturalia. In as
much as later writers have either deviated
from, or added to his
doctrines, they appear to me to have introduced
either error or groundless
supposition.
In the first place it is
to be observed, that Aristotle's positions on
this subject are unmixed
with fiction. The wise Stagyrite speaks of no
successive particles
propagating motion like billiard balls, as
Hobbes; nor of nervous or
animal spirits, where inanimate and
irrational solids are
thawed down, and distilled, or filtrated by
ascension, into living and
intelligent fluids, that etch and re-etch
engravings on the brain,
as the followers of Des Cartes, and the
humoral pathologists in
general; nor of an oscillating ether which was
to effect the same service
for the nerves of the brain considered as
solid fibres, as the
animal spirits perform for them under the notion
of hollow tubes, as
Hartley teaches--nor finally, (with yet more
recent dreamers) of
chemical compositions by elective affinity, or of
an electric light at once
the immediate object and the ultimate organ
of inward vision, which
rises to the brain like an Aurora Borealis,
and there, disporting in
various shapes,--as the balance of plus and
minus, or negative and
positive, is destroyed or re-established,--
images out both past and
present. Aristotle delivers a just theory
without pretending to an
hypothesis; or in other words a comprehensive
survey of the different
facts, and of their relations to each other
without supposition, that
is, a fact placed under a number of facts,
as their common support
and explanation; though in the majority of
instances these hypotheses
or suppositions better deserve the name of
upopoiaeseis, or
suffictions. He uses indeed the word kinaeseis, to
express what we call
representations or ideas, but he carefully
distinguishes them from
material motion, designating the latter always
by annexing the words en
topo, or kata topon. On the contrary, in his
treatise De Anima, he
excludes place and motion from all the
operations of thought,
whether representations or volitions, as
attributes utterly and
absurdly heterogeneous.
The general law of
association, or, more accurately, the common
condition under which all
exciting causes act, and in which they may
be generalized, according
to Aristotle is this. Ideas by having been
together acquire a power
of recalling each other; or every partial
representation awakes the
total representation of which it had been a
part. In the practical
determination of this common principle to
particular recollections,
he admits five agents or occasioning causes:
first, connection in time,
whether simultaneous, preceding, or
successive; second,
vicinity or connection in space; third,
interdependence or
necessary connection, as cause and effect; fourth,
likeness; and fifth,
contrast. As an additional solution of the
occasional seeming chasms
in the continuity of reproduction he proves,
that movements or ideas
possessing one or the other of these five
characters had passed
through the mind as intermediate links,
sufficiently clear to
recall other parts of the same total impressions
with which they had
co-existed, though not vivid enough to excite that
degree of attention which
is requisite for distinct recollection, or
as we may aptly express
it, after consciousness. In association then
consists the whole
mechanism of the reproduction of impressions, in
the Aristotelian
Psychology. It is the universal law of the passive
fancy and mechanical
memory; that which supplies to all other
faculties their objects,
to all thought the elements of its materials.
In consulting the
excellent commentary of St. Thomas Aquinas on the
Parva Naturalia of
Aristotle, I was struck at once with its close
resemblance to Hume's
Essay on Association. The main thoughts were the
same in both, the order of
the thoughts was the same, and even the
illustrations differed
only by Hume's occasional substitution of more
modern examples. I
mentioned the circumstance to several of my
literary acquaintances,
who admitted the closeness of the resemblance,
and that it seemed too
great to be explained by mere coincidence; but
they thought it improbable
that Hume should have held the pages of the
Angelic Doctor worth
turning over. But some time after Mr. Payne
showed Sir James
Mackintosh some odd volumes of St. Thomas Aquinas,
partly perhaps from having
heard that he had in his Lectures passed a
high encomium on this
canonized philosopher; but chiefly from the
fact, that the volumes had
belonged to Mr. Hume, and had here and
there marginal marks and
notes of reference in his own hand writing.
Among these volumes was
that which contains the Parva Naturalia, in
the old Latin version,
swathed and swaddled in the commentary afore
mentioned
It remains then for me,
first to state wherein Hartley differs from
Aristotle; then, to
exhibit the grounds of my conviction, that he
differed only to err: and
next as the result, to show, by what
influences of the choice
and judgment the associative power becomes
either memory or fancy;
and, in conclusion, to appropriate the
remaining offices of the
mind to the reason, and the imagination. With
my best efforts to be as
perspicuous as the nature of language will
permit on such a subject,
I earnestly solicit the good wishes and
friendly patience of my
readers, while I thus go "sounding on my dim
and perilous way."
CHAPTER VI
That Hartley's system, as
far as it differs from that of Aristotle, is
neither tenable in theory,
nor founded in facts.
Of Hartley's hypothetical
vibrations in his hypothetical oscillating
ether of the nerves, which
is the first and most obvious distinction
between his system and
that of Aristotle, I shall say little. This,
with all other similar
attempts to render that an object of the sight
which has no relation to
sight, has been already sufficiently exposed
by the younger Reimarus,
Maasz, and others, as outraging the very
axioms of mechanics in a
scheme, the merit of which consists in its
being mechanical. Whether
any other philosophy be possible, but the
mechanical; and again,
whether the mechanical system can have any
claim to be called
philosophy; are questions for another place. It is,
however, certain, that as
long as we deny the former, and affirm the
latter, we must bewilder
ourselves, whenever we would pierce into the
adyta of causation; and
all that laborious conjecture can do, is to
fill up the gaps of fancy.
Under that despotism of the eye (the
emancipation from which
Pythagoras by his numeral, and Plato by his
musical, symbols, and both
by geometric discipline, aimed at, as the
first propaideuma of the
mind)--under this strong sensuous influence,
we are restless because
invisible things are not the objects of
vision; and metaphysical
systems, for the most part, become popular,
not for their truth, but
in proportion as they attribute to causes a
susceptibility of being
seen, if only our visual organs were
sufficiently powerful.
From a hundred possible
confutations let one suffice. According to
this system the idea or
vibration a from the external object A becomes
associable with the idea
or vibration m from the external object M,
because the oscillation a
propagated itself so as to re-produce the
oscillation m. But the
original impression from M was essentially
different from the
impression A: unless therefore different causes may
produce the same effect,
the vibration a could never produce the
vibration m: and this
therefore could never be the means, by which a
and m are associated. To
understand this, the attentive reader need
only be reminded, that the
ideas are themselves, in Hartley's system,
nothing more than their
appropriate configurative vibrations. It is a
mere delusion of the fancy
to conceive the pre-existence of the ideas,
in any chain of
association, as so many differently coloured billiard-
balls in contact, so that
when an object, the billiard-stick, strikes
the first or white ball,
the same motion propagates itself through the
red, green, blue and
black, and sets the whole in motion. No! we must
suppose the very same
force, which constitutes the white ball, to
constitute the red or
black; or the idea of a circle to constitute the
idea of a triangle; which
is impossible.
But it may be said, that
by the sensations from the objects A and M,
the nerves have acquired a
disposition to the vibrations a and m, and
therefore a need only be
repeated in order to re-produce m. Now we
will grant, for a moment,
the possibility of such a disposition in a
material nerve, which yet
seems scarcely less absurd than to say, that
a weather-cock had
acquired a habit of turning to the east, from the
wind having been so long
in that quarter: for if it be replied, that
we must take in the
circumstance of life, what then becomes of the
mechanical philosophy? And
what is the nerve, but the flint which the
wag placed in the pot as
the first ingredient of his stone broth,
requiring only salt,
turnips, and mutton, for the remainder! But if we
waive this, and
pre-suppose the actual existence of such a
disposition; two cases are
possible. Either, every idea has its own
nerve and correspondent
oscillation, or this is not the case. If the
latter be the truth, we
should gain nothing by these dispositions; for
then, every nerve having
several dispositions, when the motion of any
other nerve is propagated
into it, there will be no ground or cause
present, why exactly the
oscillation m should arise, rather than any
other to which it was
equally pre-disposed. But if we take the former,
and let every idea have a
nerve of its own, then every nerve must be
capable of propagating its
motion into many other nerves; and again,
there is no reason
assignable, why the vibration m should arise,
rather than any other ad
libitum.
It is fashionable to smile
at Hartley's vibrations and vibratiuncles;
and his work has been
re-edited by Priestley, with the omission of the
material hypothesis. But
Hartley was too great a man, too coherent a
thinker, for this to have
been done, either consistently or to any
wise purpose. For all
other parts of his system, as far as they are
peculiar to that system,
once removed from their mechanical basis, not
only lose their main
support, but the very motive which led to their
adoption. Thus the
principle of contemporaneity, which Aristotle had
made the common condition
of all the laws of association, Hartley was
constrained to represent
as being itself the sole law. For to what law
can the action of material
atoms be subject, but that of proximity in
place? And to what law can
their motions be subjected but that of
time? Again, from this
results inevitably, that the will, the reason,
the judgment, and the
understanding, instead of being the determining
causes of association,
must needs be represented as its creatures, and
among its mechanical
effects. Conceive, for instance, a broad stream,
winding through a
mountainous country with an indefinite number of
currents, varying and
running into each other according as the gusts
chance to blow from the
opening of the mountains. The temporary union
of several currents in
one, so as to form the main current of the
moment, would present an
accurate image of Hartley's theory of the
will.
Had this been really the
case, the consequence would have been, that
our whole life would be
divided between the despotism of outward
impressions, and that of
senseless and passive memory. Take his law in
its highest abstraction
and most philosophical form, namely, that
every partial
representation recalls the total representation of which
it was a part; and the law
becomes nugatory, were it only for its
universality. In practice
it would indeed be mere lawlessness.
Consider, how immense must
be the sphere of a total impression from
the top of St. Paul's
church; and how rapid and continuous the series
of such total impressions.
If, therefore, we suppose the absence of
all interference of the
will, reason, and judgment, one or other of
two consequences must
result. Either the ideas, or reliques of such
impression, will exactly
imitate the order of the impression itself,
which would be absolute
delirium: or any one part of that impression
might recall any other
part, and--(as from the law of continuity,
there must exist in every
total impression, some one or more parts,
which are components of
some other following total impression, and so
on ad infinitum)--any part
of any impression might recall any part of
any other, without a cause
present to determine what it should be. For
to bring in the will, or
reason, as causes of their own cause, that
is, as at once causes and
effects, can satisfy those only who, in
their pretended evidences
of a God, having first demanded
organization, as the sole
cause and ground of intellect, will then
coolly demand the
pre-existence of intellect, as the cause and ground-
work of organization.
There is in truth but one state to which this
theory applies at all,
namely, that of complete light-headedness; and
even to this it applies
but partially, because the will and reason are
perhaps never wholly
suspended.
A case of this kind
occurred in a Roman Catholic town in Germany a
year or two before my
arrival at Goettingen, and had not then ceased
to be a frequent subject
of conversation. A young woman of four or
five and twenty, who could
neither read, nor write, was seized with a
nervous fever; during
which, according to the asseverations of all the
priests and monks of the
neighbourhood, she became possessed, and, as
it appeared, by a very
learned devil. She continued incessantly
talking Latin, Greek, and
Hebrew, in very pompous tones and with most
distinct enunciation. This
possession was rendered more probable by
the known fact that she
was or had been a heretic. Voltaire humorously
advises the devil to
decline all acquaintance with medical men; and it
would have been more to
his reputation, if he had taken this advice in
the present instance. The
case had attracted the particular attention
of a young physician, and
by his statement many eminent physiologists
and psychologists visited
the town, and cross-examined the case on the
spot. Sheets full of her
ravings were taken down from her own mouth,
and were found to consist
of sentences, coherent and intelligible each
for itself, but with
little or no connection with each other. Of the
Hebrew, a small portion
only could be traced to the Bible; the
remainder seemed to be in
the Rabbinical dialect. All trick or
conspiracy was out of the
question. Not only had the young woman ever
been a harmless, simple
creature; but she was evidently labouring
under a nervous fever. In
the town, in which she had been resident for
many years as a servant in
different families, no solution presented
itself. The young
physician, however, determined to trace her past
life step by step; for the
patient herself was incapable of returning
a rational answer. He at
length succeeded in discovering the place,
where her parents had
lived: travelled thither, found them dead, but
an uncle surviving; and
from him learned, that the patient had been
charitably taken by an old
Protestant pastor at nine years old, and
had remained with him some
years, even till the old man's death. Of
this pastor the uncle knew
nothing, but that he was a very good man.
With great difficulty, and
after much search, our young medical
philosopher discovered a
niece of the pastor's, who had lived with him
as his house-keeper, and
had inherited his effects. She remembered the
girl; related, that her
venerable uncle had been too indulgent, and
could not bear to hear the
girl scolded; that she was willing to have
kept her, but that, after
her patron's death, the girl herself refused
to stay. Anxious inquiries
were then, of course, made concerning the
pastor's habits; and the
solution of the phenomenon was soon obtained.
For it appeared, that it
had been the old man's custom, for years, to
walk up and down a passage
of his house into which the kitchen door
opened, and to read to
himself with a loud voice, out of his favourite
books. A considerable
number of these were still in the niece's
possession. She added,
that he was a very learned man and a great
Hebraist. Among the books
were found a collection of Rabbinical
writings, together with
several of the Greek and Latin Fathers; and
the physician succeeded in
identifying so many passages with those
taken down at the young
woman's bedside, that no doubt could remain in
any rational mind
concerning the true origin of the impressions made
on her nervous system.
This authenticated case
furnishes both proof and instance, that
reliques of sensation may
exist for an indefinite time in a latent
state, in the very same
order in which they were originally impressed;
and as we cannot
rationally suppose the feverish state of the brain to
act in any other way than
as a stimulus, this fact (and it would not
be difficult to adduce
several of the same kind) contributes to make
it even probable, that all
thoughts are in themselves imperishable;
and, that if the
intelligent faculty should be rendered more
comprehensive, it would
require only a different and apportioned
organization,--the body
celestial instead of the body terrestrial,--to
bring before every human
soul the collective experience of its whole
past existence. And this,
this, perchance, is the dread book of
judgment, in the
mysterious hieroglyphics of which every idle word is
recorded! Yea, in the very
nature of a living spirit, it may be more
possible that heaven and
earth should pass away, than that a single
act, a single thought,
should be loosened or lost from that living
chain of causes, with all
the links of which, conscious or
unconscious, the
free-will, our only absolute Self, is coextensive and
co-present. But not now
dare I longer discourse of this, waiting for a
loftier mood, and a nobler
subject, warned from within and from
without, that it is
profanation to speak of these mysteries tois maede
phantasteisin, os kalon to
taes dikaiosynaes kai sophrosynaes
prosopon, kai oute
hesperos oute eoos outo kala. To gar horon pros to
horomenon syngenes kai
homoion poiaesamenon dei epiballein tae thea,
ou gar an popote eiden
ophthalmos haelion, haelioeidaes mae
gegenaemenos oude to kalon
an idae psychae, mae kagae genomenae--" to
those to whose imagination
it has never been presented, how beautiful
is the countenance of
justice and wisdom; and that neither the morning
nor the evening star are
so fair. For in order to direct the view
aright, it behoves that
the beholder should have made himself
congenerous and similar to
the object beheld. Never could the eye have
beheld the sun, had not
its own essence been soliform," (i.e. pre-
configured to light by a
similarity of essence with that of light)
"neither can a soul
not beautiful attain to an intuition of beauty."
CHAPTER VII
Of the necessary
consequences of the Hartleian Theory--Of the original
mistake or equivocation
which procured its admission--Memoria
technica.
We will pass by the utter
incompatibility of such a law--if law it may
be called, which would
itself be a slave of chances--with even that
appearance of rationality
forced upon us by the outward phaenomena of
human conduct, abstracted
from our own consciousness. We will agree to
forget this for the
moment, in order to fix our attention on that
subordination of final to
efficient causes in the human being, which
flows of necessity from
the assumption, that the will and, with the
will, all acts of thought
and attention are parts and products of this
blind mechanism, instead
of being distinct powers, the function of
which it is to control,
determine, and modify the phantasmal chaos of
association. The soul becomes
a mere ens logicum; for, as a real
separable being, it would
be more worthless and ludicrous than the
Grimalkins in the
cat-harpsichord, described in the Spectator. For
these did form a part of
the process; but, to Hartley's scheme, the
soul is present only to be
pinched or stroked, while the very squeals
or purring are produced by
an agency wholly independent and alien. It
involves all the
difficulties, all the incomprehensibility (if it be
not indeed, os emoige
dokei, the absurdity), of intercommunion between
substances that have no
one property in common, without any of the
convenient consequences
that bribed the judgment to the admission of
the Dualistic hypothesis.
Accordingly, this caput mortuum of the
Hartleian process has been
rejected by his followers, and the
consciousness considered
as a result, as a tune, the common product of
the breeze and the harp
though this again is the mere remotion of one
absurdity to make way for
another, equally preposterous. For what is
harmony but a mode of
relation, the very esse of which is percipi?--an
ens rationale, which
pre-supposes the power, that by perceiving
creates it? The razor's
edge becomes a saw to the armed vision; and
the delicious melodies of
Purcell or Cimarosa might be disjointed
stammerings to a hearer,
whose partition of time should be a thousand
times subtler than ours.
But this obstacle too let us imagine
ourselves to have
surmounted, and "at one bound high overleap all
bound." Yet according
to this hypothesis the disquisition, to which I
am at present soliciting
the reader's attention, may be as truly said
to be written by Saint
Paul's church, as by me: for it is the mere
motion of my muscles and
nerves; and these again are set in motion
from external causes
equally passive, which external causes stand
themselves in
interdependent connection with every thing that exists
or has existed. Thus the
whole universe co-operates to produce the
minutest stroke of every
letter, save only that I myself, and I alone,
have nothing to do with
it, but merely the causeless and effectless
beholding of it when it is
done. Yet scarcely can it be called a
beholding; for it is
neither an act nor an effect; but an impossible
creation of a something
nothing out of its very contrary! It is the
mere quick-silver plating
behind a looking-glass; and in this alone
consists the poor
worthless I! The sum total of my moral and
intellectual intercourse,
dissolved into its elements, is reduced to
extension, motion, degrees
of velocity, and those diminished copies of
configurative motion,
which form what we call notions, and notions of
notions. Of such
philosophy well might Butler say--
The metaphysic's but a puppet motion
That goes with screws, the notion of a notion;
The copy of a copy and lame draught
Unnaturally taken from a thought
That counterfeits all pantomimic tricks,
And turns the eyes, like an old crucifix;
That counterchanges whatsoe'er it calls
By another name, and makes it true or false;
Turns truth to falsehood, falsehood into truth,
By virtue of the Babylonian's tooth.
The inventor of the watch,
if this doctrine be true, did not in
reality invent it; he only
looked on, while the blind causes, the only
true artists, were
unfolding themselves. So must it have been too with
my friend Allston, when he
sketched his picture of the dead man
revived by the bones of
the prophet Elijah. So must it have been with
Mr. Southey and Lord
Byron, when the one fancied himself composing his
Roderick, and the other
his Childe Harold. The same must hold good of
all systems of philosophy;
of all arts, governments, wars by sea and
by land; in short, of all
things that ever have been or that ever will
be produced. For,
according to this system, it is not the affections
and passions that are at
work, in as far as they are sensations or
thoughts. We only fancy,
that we act from rational resolves, or
prudent motives, or from
impulses of anger, love, or generosity. In
all these cases the real
agent is a something-nothing-everything,
which does all of which we
know, and knows nothing of all that itself
does.
The existence of an
infinite spirit, of an intelligent and holy will,
must, on this system, be
mere articulated motions of the air. For as
the function of the human
understanding is no other than merely to
appear to itself to
combine and to apply the phaenomena of the
association; and as these
derive all their reality from the primary
sensations; and the
sensations again all their reality from the
impressions ab extra; a
God not visible, audible, or tangible, can
exist only in the sounds
and letters that form his name and
attributes. If in
ourselves there be no such faculties as those of the
will, and the scientific
reason, we must either have an innate idea of
them, which would
overthrow the whole system; or we can have no idea
at all. The process, by
which Hume degraded the notion of cause and
effect into a blind
product of delusion and habit, into the mere
sensation of proceeding
life (nisus vitalis) associated with the
images of the memory; this
same process must be repeated to the equal
degradation of every
fundamental idea in ethics or theology.
Far, very far am I from
burthening with the odium of these
consequences the moral
characters of those who first formed, or have
since adopted the system!
It is most noticeable of the excellent and
pious Hartley, that, in
the proofs of the existence and attributes of
God, with which his second
volume commences, he makes no reference to
the principle or results
of the first. Nay, he assumes, as his
foundations, ideas which,
if we embrace the doctrines of his first
volume, can exist no where
but in the vibrations of the ethereal
medium common to the
nerves and to the atmosphere. Indeed the whole of
the second volume is, with
the fewest possible exceptions, independent
of his peculiar system. So
true is it, that the faith, which saves and
sanctifies, is a
collective energy, a total act of the whole moral
being; that its living
sensorium is in the heart; and that no errors
of the understanding can
be morally arraigned unless they have
proceeded from the heart.
But whether they be such, no man can be
certain in the case of
another, scarcely perhaps even in his own.
Hence it follows by
inevitable consequence, that man may perchance
determine what is a
heresy; but God only can know who is a heretic. It
does not, however, by any
means follow that opinions fundamentally
false are harmless. A
hundred causes may co-exist to form one complex
antidote. Yet the sting of
the adder remains venomous, though there
are many who have taken up
the evil thing, and it hurted them not.
Some indeed there seem to
have been, in an unfortunate neighbour
nation at least, who have
embraced this system with a full view of all
its moral and religious
consequences; some--
------who deem themselves most free,
When they within this gross and visible sphere
Chain down the winged thought, scoffing ascent,
Proud in their meanness; and themselves they
cheat
With noisy emptiness of learned phrase,
Their subtle fluids, impacts, essences,
Self-working tools, uncaus'd effects, and all
Those blind omniscients, those almighty slaves,
Untenanting creation of its God!
Such men need discipline,
not argument; they must be made better men,
before they can become
wiser.
The attention will be more
profitably employed in attempting to
discover and expose the
paralogisms, by the magic of which such a
faith could find admission
into minds framed for a nobler creed.
These, it appears to me,
may be all reduced to one sophism as their
common genus; the
mistaking the conditions of a thing for its causes
and essence; and the
process, by which we arrive at the knowledge of a
faculty, for the faculty
itself. The air I breathe is the condition of
my life, not its cause. We
could never have learned that we had eyes
but by the process of
seeing; yet having seen we know that the eyes
must have pre-existed in
order to render the process of sight
possible. Let us
cross-examine Hartley's scheme under the guidance of
this distinction; and we
shall discover, that contemporaneity,
(Leibnitz's Lex Continui,)
is the limit and condition of the laws of
mind, itself being rather
a law of matter, at least of phaenomena
considered as material. At
the utmost, it is to thought the same, as
the law of gravitation is
to loco-motion. In every voluntary movement
we first counteract
gravitation, in order to avail ourselves of it. It
must exist, that there may
be a something to be counteracted, and
which, by its re-action,
may aid the force that is exerted to resist
it. Let us consider what
we do when we leap. We first resist the
gravitating power by an
act purely voluntary, and then by another act,
voluntary in part, we
yield to it in order to alight on the spot,
which we had previously
proposed to ourselves. Now let a man watch his
mind while he is
composing; or, to take a still more common case,
while he is trying to recollect
a name; and he will find the process
completely analogous. Most
of my readers will have observed a small
water-insect on the
surface of rivulets, which throws a cinque-spotted
shadow fringed with
prismatic colours on the sunny bottom of the
brook; and will have
noticed, how the little animal wins its way up
against the stream, by
alternate pulses of active and passive motion,
now resisting the current,
and now yielding to it in order to gather
strength and a momentary
fulcrum for a further propulsion. This is no
unapt emblem of the mind's
self-experience in the act of thinking.
There are evidently two
powers at work, which relatively to each other
are active and passive;
and this is not possible without an
intermediate faculty,
which is at once both active and passive. In
philosophical language, we
must denominate this intermediate faculty
in all its degrees and
determinations, the IMAGINATION. But, in common
language, and especially
on the subject of poetry, we appropriate the
name to a superior degree
of the faculty, joined to a superior
voluntary control over it.
Contemporaneity, then,
being the common condition of all the laws of
association, and a
component element in the materia subjecta, the
parts of which are to be
associated, must needs be co-present with
all. Nothing, therefore,
can be more easy than to pass off on an
incautious mind this
constant companion of each, for the essential
substance of all. But if
we appeal to our own consciousness, we shall
find that even time
itself, as the cause of a particular act of
association, is distinct
from contemporaneity, as the condition of all
association. Seeing a
mackerel, it may happen, that I immediately
think of gooseberries,
because I at the same time ate mackerel with
gooseberries as the sauce.
The first syllable of the latter word,
being that which had
coexisted with the image of the bird so called, I
may then think of a goose.
In the next moment the image of a swan may
arise before me, though I
had never seen the two birds together. In
the first two instances, I
am conscious that their co-existence in
time was the circumstance,
that enabled me to recollect them; and
equally conscious am I
that the latter was recalled to me by the joint
operation of likeness and
contrast. So it is with cause and effect: so
too with order. So I am
able to distinguish whether it was proximity
in time, or continuity in
space, that occasioned me to recall B on the
mention of A. They cannot
be indeed separated from contemporaneity;
for that would be to
separate them from the mind itself. The act of
consciousness is indeed
identical with time considered in its essence.
I mean time per se, as
contra-distinguished from our notion of time;
for this is always blended
with the idea of space, which, as the
opposite of time, is
therefore its measure. Nevertheless the accident
of seeing two objects at
the same moment, and the accident of seeing
them in the same place are
two distinct or distinguishable causes: and
the true practical general
law of association is this; that whatever
makes certain parts of a
total impression more vivid or distinct than
the rest, will determine
the mind to recall these in preference to
others equally linked
together by the common condition of
contemporaneity, or (what
I deem a more appropriate and philosophical
term) of continuity. But
the will itself by confining and intensifying
[25] the attention may
arbitrarily give vividness or distinctness to
any object whatsoever; and
from hence we may deduce the uselessness,
if not the absurdity, of
certain recent schemes which promise an
artificial memory, but
which in reality can only produce a confusion
and debasement of the
fancy. Sound logic, as the habitual
subordination of the
individual to the species, and of the species to
the genus; philosophical
knowledge of facts under the relation of
cause and effect; a
cheerful and communicative temper disposing us to
notice the similarities
and contrasts of things, that we may be able
to illustrate the one by
the other; a quiet conscience; a condition
free from anxieties; sound
health, and above all (as far as relates to
passive remembrance) a
healthy digestion; these are the best, these
are the only Arts of
Memory.
CHAPTER VIII
The system of Dualism
introduced by Des Cartes--Refined first by
Spinoza and afterwards by
Leibnitz into the doctrine of Harmonia
praestabilita--Hylozoism--Materialism--None
of these systems, or any
possible theory of
association, supplies or supersedes a theory of
perception, or explains
the formation of the associable.
To the best of my
knowledge Des Cartes was the first philosopher who
introduced the absolute
and essential heterogenity of the soul as
intelligence, and the body
as matter. The assumption, and the form of
speaking have remained,
though the denial of all other properties to
matter but that of
extension, on which denial the whole system of
Dualism is grounded, has
been long exploded. For since impenetrability
is intelligible only as a
mode of resistance; its admission places the
essence of matter in an
act or power, which it possesses in common
with spirit; and body and
spirit are therefore no longer absolutely
heterogeneous, but may
without any absurdity be supposed to be
different modes, or
degrees in perfection, of a common substratum. To
this possibility, however,
it was not the fashion to advert. The soul
was a thinking substance,
and body a space-filling substance. Yet the
apparent action of each on
the other pressed heavy on the philosopher
on the one hand; and no
less heavily on the other hand pressed the
evident truth, that the
law of causality holds only between
homogeneous things, that
is, things having some common property; and
cannot extend from one
world into another, its contrary. A close
analysis evinced it to be
no less absurd than the question whether a
man's affection for his
wife lay North-east, or South-west of the love
he bore towards his child.
Leibnitz's doctrine of a pre-established
harmony; which he certainly
borrowed from Spinoza, who had himself
taken the hint from Des
Cartes's animal machines, was in its common
interpretation too strange
to survive the inventor--too repugnant to
our common sense; which is
not indeed entitled to a judicial voice in
the courts of scientific
philosophy; but whose whispers still exert a
strong secret influence.
Even Wolf, the admirer and illustrious
systematizer of the
Leibnitzian doctrine, contents himself with
defending the possibility
of the idea, but does not adopt it as a part
of the edifice.
The hypothesis of
Hylozoism, on the other side, is the death of all
rational physiology, and
indeed of all physical science; for that
requires a limitation of
terms, and cannot consist with the arbitrary
power of multiplying
attributes by occult qualities. Besides, it
answers no purpose;
unless, indeed, a difficulty can be solved by
multiplying it, or we can
acquire a clearer notion of our soul by
being told that we have a
million of souls, and that every atom of our
bodies has a soul of its
own. Far more prudent is it to admit the
difficulty once for all,
and then let it lie at rest. There is a
sediment indeed at the
bottom of the vessel, but all the water above
it is clear and
transparent. The Hylozoist only shakes it up, and
renders the whole turbid.
But it is not either the
nature of man, or the duty of the philosopher
to despair concerning any
important problem until, as in the squaring
of the circle, the
impossibility of a solution has been demonstrated.
How the esse assumed as
originally distinct from the scire, can ever
unite itself with it; how
being can transform itself into a knowing,
becomes conceivable on one
only condition; namely, if it can be shown
that the vis
representativa, or the Sentient, is itself a species of
being; that is, either as
a property or attribute, or as an hypostasis
or self subsistence. The
former--that thinking is a property of matter
under particular
conditions,--is, indeed, the assumption of
materialism; a system
which could not but be patronized by the
philosopher, if only it
actually performed what it promises. But how
any affection from without
can metamorphose itself into perception or
will, the materialist has
hitherto left, not only as incomprehensible
as he found it, but has
aggravated it into a comprehensible absurdity.
For, grant that an object
from without could act upon the conscious
self, as on a
consubstantial object; yet such an affection could only
engender something
homogeneous with itself. Motion could only
propagate motion. Matter
has no Inward. We remove one surface, but to
meet with another. We can
but divide a particle into particles; and
each atom comprehends in
itself the properties of the material
universe. Let any
reflecting mind make the experiment of explaining to
itself the evidence of our
sensuous intuitions, from the hypothesis
that in any given
perception there is a something which has been
communicated to it by an
impact, or an impression ab extra. In the
first place, by the impact
on the percipient, or ens representans, not
the object itself, but
only its action or effect, will pass into the
same. Not the iron tongue,
but its vibrations, pass into the metal of
the bell. Now in our
immediate perception, it is not the mere power or
act of the object, but the
object itself, which is immediately
present. We might indeed
attempt to explain this result by a chain of
deductions and
conclusions; but that, first, the very faculty of
deducing and concluding
would equally demand an explanation; and
secondly, that there
exists in fact no such intermediation by logical
notions, such as those of
cause and effect. It is the object itself,
not the product of a
syllogism, which is present to our consciousness.
Or would we explain this
supervention of the object to the sensation,
by a productive faculty
set in motion by an impulse; still the
transition, into the
percipient, of the object itself, from which the
impulse proceeded, assumes
a power that can permeate and wholly
possess the soul,
And like a God by spiritual art,
Be all in all, and all in every part.
And how came the
percipient here? And what is become of the wonder-
promising Matter, that was
to perform all these marvels by force of
mere figure, weight and
motion? The most consistent proceeding of the
dogmatic materialist is to
fall back into the common rank of soul-and-
bodyists; to affect the
mysterious, and declare the whole process a
revelation given, and not
to be understood, which it would be profane
to examine too closely.
Datur non intelligitur. But a revelation
unconfirmed by miracles,
and a faith not commanded by the conscience,
a philosopher may venture
to pass by, without suspecting himself of
any irreligious tendency.
Thus, as materialism has
been generally taught, it is utterly
unintelligible, and owes
all its proselytes to the propensity so
common among men, to
mistake distinct images for clear conceptions;
and vice versa, to reject
as inconceivable whatever from its own
nature is unimaginable.
But as soon as it becomes intelligible, it
ceases to be materialism.
In order to explain thinking, as a material
phaenomenon, it is
necessary to refine matter into a mere modification
of intelligence, with the
two-fold function of appearing and
perceiving. Even so did
Priestley in his controversy with Price. He
stripped matter of all its
material properties; substituted spiritual
powers; and when we
expected to find a body, behold! we had nothing
but its ghost--the
apparition of a defunct substance!
I shall not dilate further
on this subject; because it will, (if God
grant health and
permission), be treated of at large and
systematically in a work,
which I have many years been preparing, on
the Productive Logos human
and divine; with, and as the introduction
to, a full commentary on
the Gospel of St. John. To make myself
intelligible as far as my
present subject requires, it will be
sufficient briefly to
observe.--1. That all association demands and
presupposes the existence
of the thoughts and images to be
associated.--2. That the
hypothesis of an external world exactly
correspondent to those
images or modifications of our own being, which
alone, according to this
system, we actually behold, is as thorough
idealism as Berkeley's,
inasmuch as it equally, perhaps in a more
perfect degree, removes
all reality and immediateness of perception,
and places us in a
dream-world of phantoms and spectres, the
inexplicable swarm and
equivocal generation of motions in our own
brains.--3. That this
hypothesis neither involves the explanation, nor
precludes the necessity,
of a mechanism and co-adequate forces in the
percipient, which at the
more than magic touch of the impulse from
without is to create anew
for itself the correspondent object. The
formation of a copy is not
solved by the mere pre-existence of an
original; the copyist of
Raffael's Transfiguration must repeat more or
less perfectly the process
of Raffael. It would be easy to explain a
thought from the image on
the retina, and that from the geometry of
light, if this very light
did not present the very same difficulty. We
might as rationally chant
the Brahim creed of the tortoise that
supported the bear, that
supported the elephant, that supported the
world, to the tune of
"This is the house that Jack built." The sic Deo
placitum est we all admit
as the sufficient cause, and the divine
goodness as the sufficient
reason; but an answer to the Whence and Why
is no answer to the How,
which alone is the physiologist's concern. It
is a sophisma pigrum, and
(as Bacon hath said) the arrogance of
pusillanimity, which lifts
up the idol of a mortal's fancy and
commands us to fall down
and worship it, as a work of divine wisdom,
an ancile or palladium
fallen from heaven. By the very same argument
the supporters of the
Ptolemaic system might have rebuffed the
Newtonian, and pointing to
the sky with self-complacent grin [26] have
appealed to common sense,
whether the sun did not move and the earth
stand still.
CHAPTER IX
Is Philosophy possible as
a science, and what are its conditions?--
Giordano Bruno--Literary
Aristocracy, or the existence of a tacit
compact among the learned
as a privileged order--The Author's
obligations to the
Mystics--to Immanuel Kant--The difference between
the letter and the spirit
of Kant's writings, and a vindication of
prudence in the teaching
of Philosophy--Fichte's attempt to complete
the Critical system--Its
partial success and ultimate failure--
Obligations to Schelling;
and among English writers to Saumarez.
After I had successively
studied in the schools of Locke, Berkeley,
Leibnitz, and Hartley, and
could find in none of them an abiding place
for my reason, I began to
ask myself; is a system of philosophy; as
different from mere
history and historic classification, possible? If
possible, what are its
necessary conditions? I was for a while
disposed to answer the
first question in the negative, and to admit
that the sole practicable
employment for the human mind was to
observe, to collect, and
to classify. But I soon felt, that human
nature itself fought up
against this wilful resignation of intellect;
and as soon did I find,
that the scheme, taken with all its
consequences and cleared
of all inconsistencies, was not less
impracticable than
contranatural. Assume in its full extent the
position, nihil in
intellectu quod non prius in sensu, assume it
without Leibnitz's
qualifying praeter ipsum intellectum, and in the
same sense, in which the
position was understood by Hartley and
Condillac: and then what
Hume had demonstratively deduced from this
concession concerning
cause and effect, will apply with equal and
crushing force to all the
other eleven categorical forms [27], and the
logical functions
corresponding to them. How can we make bricks
without straw;--or build
without cement? We learn all things indeed by
occasion of experience;
but the very facts so learned force us inward
on the antecedents, that
must be presupposed in order to render
experience itself
possible. The first book of Locke's Essay, (if the
supposed error, which it
labours to subvert, be not a mere thing of
straw, an absurdity which,
no man ever did, or indeed ever could,
believe,) is formed on a
sophisma heterozaetaeseos, and involves the
old mistake of Cum hoc:
ergo, propter hoc.
The term, Philosophy,
defines itself as an affectionate seeking after
the truth; but Truth is
the correlative of Being. This again is no way
conceivable, but by
assuming as a postulate, that both are ab initio,
identical and coinherent;
that intelligence and being are reciprocally
each other's substrate. I
presumed that this was a possible
conception, (i.e. that it
involved no logical inconsonance,) from the
length of time during
which the scholastic definition of the Supreme
Being, as actus purissimus
sine ulla potentialitate, was received in
the schools of Theology,
both by the Pontifician and the Reformed
divines. The early study
of Plato and Plotinus, with the commentaries
and the THEOLOGIA
PLATONICA of the illustrious Florentine; of Proclus,
and Gemistius Pletho; and
at a later period of the De Immenso et
Innumerabili and the
"De la causa, principio et uno," of the
philosopher of Nola, who
could boast of a Sir Philip Sidney and Fulke
Greville among his
patrons, and whom the idolaters of Rome burnt as an
atheist in the year 1600;
had all contributed to prepare my mind for
the reception and
welcoming of the Cogito quia Sum, et Sum quia
Cogito; a philosophy of
seeming hardihood, but certainly the most
ancient, and therefore
presumptively the most natural.
Why need I be afraid? Say
rather how dare I be ashamed of the Teutonic
theosophist, Jacob Behmen?
Many, indeed, and gross were his delusions;
and such as furnish
frequent and ample occasion for the triumph of the
learned over the poor
ignorant shoemaker, who had dared think for
himself. But while we
remember that these delusions were such, as
might be anticipated from
his utter want of all intellectual
discipline, and from his
ignorance of rational psychology, let it not
be forgotten that the
latter defect he had in common with the most
learned theologians of his
age. Neither with books, nor with book-
learned men was he
conversant. A meek and shy quietest, his
intellectual powers were
never stimulated into feverous energy by
crowds of proselytes, or
by the ambition of proselyting. Jacob Behmen
was an enthusiast, in the
strictest sense, as not merely
distinguished, but as
contra-distinguished, from a fanatic. While I in
part translate the
following observations from a contemporary writer
of the Continent, let me
be permitted to premise, that I might have
transcribed the substance
from memoranda of my own, which were written
many years before his
pamphlet was given to the world; and that I
prefer another's words to
my own, partly as a tribute due to priority
of publication; but still
more from the pleasure of sympathy in a case
where coincidence only was
possible.
Whoever is acquainted with
the history of philosophy, during the last
two or three centuries,
cannot but admit that there appears to have
existed a sort of secret
and tacit compact among the learned, not to
pass beyond a certain
limit in speculative science. The privilege of
free thought, so highly
extolled, has at no time been held valid in
actual practice, except
within this limit; and not a single stride
beyond it has ever been
ventured without bringing obloquy on the
transgressor. The few men
of genius among the learned class, who
actually did overstep this
boundary, anxiously avoided the appearance
of having so done.
Therefore the true depth of science, and the
penetration to the inmost
centre, from which all the lines of
knowledge diverge to their
ever distant circumference, was abandoned
to the illiterate and the
simple, whom unstilled yearning, and an
original ebulliency of
spirit, had urged to the investigation of the
indwelling and living
ground of all things. These, then, because their
names had never been
enrolled in the guilds of the learned, were
persecuted by the
registered livery-men as interlopers on their rights
and privileges. All
without distinction were branded as fanatics and
phantasts; not only those,
whose wild and exorbitant imaginations had
actually engendered only
extravagant and grotesque phantasms, and
whose productions were,
for the most part, poor copies and gross
caricatures of genuine
inspiration; but the truly inspired likewise,
the originals themselves.
And this for no other reason, but because
they were the unlearned,
men of humble and obscure occupations. When,
and from whom among the
literati by profession, have we ever heard the
divine doxology repeated,
I thank thee, O Father! Lord of Heaven and
Earth! because thou hast
hid these things from the wise and prudent,
and hast revealed them
unto babes [28]. No; the haughty priests of
learning not only banished
from the schools and marts of science all
who had dared draw living
waters from the fountain, but drove them out
of the very Temple, which
mean time the buyers, and sellers, and
money-changers were
suffered to make a den of thieves.
And yet it would not be
easy to discover any substantial ground for
this contemptuous pride in
those literati, who have most distinguished
themselves by their scorn
of Behmen, Thaulerus, George Fox, and
others; unless it be, that
they could write orthographically, make
smooth periods, and had
the fashions of authorship almost literally at
their fingers' ends, while
the latter, in simplicity of soul, made
their words immediate
echoes of their feelings. Hence the frequency of
those phrases among them,
which have been mistaken for pretences to
immediate inspiration; as
for instance, "It was delivered unto me; "--
"I strove not to
speak;"-"I said, I will be silent;"--"But the word
was in my heart as a
burning fire;"--"and I could not forbear." Hence
too the unwillingness to
give offence; hence the foresight, and the
dread of the clamours,
which would be raised against them, so
frequently avowed in the
writings of these men, and expressed, as was
natural, in the words of
the only book, with which they were familiar
[29]. "Woe is me that
I am become a man of strife, and a man of
contention,--I love peace:
the souls of men are dear unto me: yet
because I seek for light
every one of them doth curse me!" O! it
requires deeper feeling,
and a stronger imagination, than belong to
most of those, to whom
reasoning and fluent expression have been as a
trade learnt in boyhood,
to conceive with what might, with what inward
strivings and commotion,
the perception of a new and vital truth takes
possession of an
uneducated man of genius. His meditations are almost
inevitably employed on the
eternal, or the everlasting; for "the world
is not his friend, nor the
world's law." Need we then be surprised,
that, under an excitement
at once so strong and so unusual, the man's
body should sympathize
with the struggles of his mind; or that he
should at times be so far
deluded, as to mistake the tumultuous
sensations of his nerves,
and the co-existing spectres of his fancy,
as parts or symbols of the
truths which were opening on him? It has
indeed been plausibly
observed, that in order to derive any advantage,
or to collect any
intelligible meaning, from the writings of these
ignorant Mystics, the
reader must bring with him a spirit and judgment
superior to that of the
writers themselves:
And what he brings, what needs he elsewhere
seek?
--a sophism, which I fully
agree with Warburton, is unworthy of
Milton; how much more so
of the awful Person, in whose mouth he has
placed it? One assertion I
will venture to make, as suggested by my
own experience, that there
exist folios on the human understanding,
and the nature of man,
which would have a far juster claim to their
high rank and celebrity,
if in the whole huge volume there could be
found as much fulness of
heart and intellect, as burst forth in many a
simple page of George Fox,
Jacob Behmen, and even of Behmen's
commentator, the pious and
fervid William Law.
The feeling of gratitude,
which I cherish toward these men, has caused
me to digress further than
I had foreseen or proposed; but to have
passed them over in an
historical sketch of my literary life and
opinions, would have
seemed to me like the denial of a debt, the
concealment of a boon. For
the writings of these Mystics acted in no
slight degree to prevent
my mind from being imprisoned within the
outline of any single
dogmatic system. They contributed to keep alive
the heart in the head;
gave me an indistinct, yet stirring and working
presentiment, that all the
products of the mere reflective faculty
partook of death, and were
as the rattling twigs and sprays in winter,
into which a sap was yet
to be propelled from some root to which I had
not penetrated, if they
were to afford my soul either food or shelter.
If they were too often a
moving cloud of smoke to me by day, yet they
were always a pillar of
fire throughout the night, during my
wanderings through the
wilderness of doubt, and enabled me to skirt,
without crossing, the
sandy deserts of utter unbelief. That the system
is capable of being
converted into an irreligious Pantheism, I well
know. The Ethics of
Spinoza, may, or may not, be an instance. But at
no time could I believe,
that in itself and essentially it is
incompatible with
religion, natural or revealed: and now I am most
thoroughly persuaded of
the contrary. The writings of the illustrious
sage of Koenigsberg, the
founder of the Critical Philosophy, more than
any other work, at once
invigorated and disciplined my understanding.
The originality, the
depth, and the compression of the thoughts; the
novelty and subtlety, yet
solidity and importance of the distinctions;
the adamantine chain of
the logic; and I will venture to add--(paradox
as it will appear to those
who have taken their notion of Immanuel
Kant from Reviewers and
Frenchmen)--the clearness and evidence, of the
Critique of the Pure
Reason; and Critique of the Judgment; of the
Metaphysical Elements of
Natural Philosophy; and of his Religion
within the bounds of Pure
Reason, took possession of me as with the
giant's hand. After
fifteen years' familiarity with them, I still read
these and all his other
productions with undiminished delight and
increasing admiration. The
few passages that remained obscure to me,
after due efforts of
thought, (as the chapter on original
apperception,) and the
apparent contradictions which occur, I soon
found were hints and
insinuations referring to ideas, which KANT
either did not think it
prudent to avow, or which he considered as
consistently left behind
in a pure analysis, not of human nature in
toto, but of the
speculative intellect alone. Here therefore he was
constrained to commence at
the point of reflection, or natural
consciousness: while in
his moral system he was permitted to assume a
higher ground (the
autonomy of the will) as a postulate deducible from
the unconditional command,
or (in the technical language of his
school) the categorical
imperative, of the conscience. He had been in
imminent danger of
persecution during the reign of the late king of
Prussia, that strange
compound of lawless debauchery and priest-ridden
superstition: and it is
probable that he had little inclination, in
his old age, to act over
again the fortunes, and hair-breadth escapes
of Wolf. The expulsion of
the first among Kant's disciples, who
attempted to complete his
system, from the University of Jena, with
the confiscation and
prohibition of the obnoxious work by the joint
efforts of the courts of
Saxony and Hanover, supplied experimental
proof, that the venerable
old man's caution was not groundless. In
spite therefore of his own
declarations, I could never believe, that
it was possible for him to
have meant no more by his Noumenon, or
Thing in itself, than his
mere words express; or that in his own
conception he confined the
whole plastic power to the forms of the
intellect, leaving for the
external cause, for the materiale of our
sensations, a matter
without form, which is doubtless inconceivable. I
entertained doubts
likewise, whether, in his own mind, he even laid
all the stress, which he
appears to do, on the moral postulates.
An idea, in the highest
sense of that word, cannot be conveyed but by
a symbol; and, except in
geometry, all symbols of necessity involve an
apparent contradiction.
Phonaese synetoisin: and for those who could
not pierce through this
symbolic husk, his writings were not intended.
Questions which cannot be
fully answered without exposing the
respondent to personal
danger, are not entitled to a fair answer; and
yet to say this openly,
would in many cases furnish the very advantage
which the adversary is
insidiously seeking after. Veracity does not
consist in saying, but in
the intention of communicating, truth; and
the philosopher who cannot
utter the whole truth without conveying
falsehood, and at the same
time, perhaps, exciting the most malignant
passions, is constrained
to express himself either mythically or
equivocally. When Kant
therefore was importuned to settle the disputes
of his commentators
himself, by declaring what he meant, how could he
decline the honours of
martyrdom with less offence, than by simply
replying, "I meant
what I said, and at the age of near fourscore, I
have something else, and
more important to do, than to write a
commentary on my own
works."
Fichte's
Wissenschaftslehre, or Lore of Ultimate Science, was to add
the key-stone of the arch:
and by commencing with an act, instead of a
thing or substance, Fichte
assuredly gave the first mortal blow to
Spinozism, as taught by
Spinoza himself; and supplied the idea of a
system truly metaphysical,
and of a metaphysique truly systematic:
(i.e. having its spring
and principle within itself). But this
fundamental idea he
overbuilt with a heavy mass of mere notions, and
psychological acts of
arbitrary reflection. Thus his theory
degenerated into a crude
[30] egoismus, a boastful and hyperstoic
hostility to Nature, as
lifeless, godless, and altogether unholy:
while his religion
consisted in the assumption of a mere Ordo
ordinans, which we were
permitted exoterice to call GOD; and his
ethics in an ascetic, and
almost monkish, mortification of the natural
passions and desires. In
Schelling's Natur-Philosophie, and the System
des transcendentalen
Idealismus, I first found a genial coincidence
with much that I had
toiled out for myself, and a powerful assistance
in what I had yet to do.
I have introduced this
statement, as appropriate to the narrative
nature of this sketch; yet
rather in reference to the work which I
have announced in a
preceding page, than to my present subject. It
would be but a mere act of
justice to myself, were I to warn my future
readers, than an identity
of thought, or even similarity of phrase,
will not be at all times a
certain proof that the passage has been
borrowed from Schelling,
or that the conceptions were originally
learnt from him. In this
instance, as in the dramatic lectures of
Schlegel to which I have
before alluded, from the same motive of self-
defence against the charge
of plagiarism, many of the most striking
resemblances, indeed all
the main and fundamental ideas, were born and
matured in my mind before
I had ever seen a single page of the German
Philosopher; and I might
indeed affirm with truth, before the more
important works of
Schelling had been written, or at least made
public. Nor is this
coincidence at all to be wondered at. We had
studied in the same
school; been disciplined by the same preparatory
philosophy, namely, the
writings of Kant; we had both equal
obligations to the polar
logic and dynamic philosophy of Giordano
Bruno; and Schelling has
lately, and, as of recent acquisition, avowed
that same affectionate
reverence for the labours of Behmen, and other
mystics, which I had
formed at a much earlier period. The coincidence
of Schelling's system with
certain general ideas of Behmen, he
declares to have been mere
coincidence; while my obligations have been
more direct. He needs give
to Behmen only feelings of sympathy; while
I owe him a debt of
gratitude. God forbid! that I should be suspected
of a wish to enter into a
rivalry with Schelling for the honours so
unequivocally his right,
not only as a great and original genius, but
as the founder of the
Philosophy of Nature, and as the most successful
improver of the Dynamic
System [31] which, begun by Bruno, was re-
introduced (in a more
philosophical form, and freed from all its
impurities and visionary
accompaniments) by Kant; in whom it was the
native and necessary
growth of his own system. Kant's followers,
however, on whom (for the
greater part) their master's cloak had
fallen without, or with a
very scanty portion of, his spirit, had
adopted his dynamic ideas,
only as a more refined species of
mechanics. With exception
of one or two fundamental ideas, which
cannot be withheld from
Fichte, to Schelling we owe the completion,
and the most important
victories, of this revolution in philosophy. To
me it will be happiness
and honour enough, should I succeed in
rendering the system
itself intelligible to my countrymen, and in the
application of it to the
most awful of subjects for the most important
of purposes. Whether a
work is the offspring of a man's own spirit,
and the product of
original thinking, will be discovered by those who
are its sole legitimate
judges, by better tests than the mere
reference to dates. For
readers in general, let whatever shall be
found in this or any
future work of mine, that resembles, or coincides
with, the doctrines of my
German predecessor, though contemporary, be
wholly attributed to him:
provided, that the absence of distinct
references to his books,
which I could not at all times make with
truth as designating
citations or thoughts actually derived from him;
and which, I trust, would,
after this general acknowledgment be
superfluous; be not
charged on me as an ungenerous concealment or
intentional plagiarism. I
have not indeed (eheu! res angusta domi!)
been hitherto able to
procure more than two of his books, viz. the
first volume of his
collected Tracts, and his System of Transcendental
Idealism; to which,
however, I must add a small pamphlet against
Fichte, the spirit of
which was to my feelings painfully incongruous
with the principles, and
which (with the usual allowance afforded to
an antithesis) displayed
the love of wisdom rather than the wisdom of
love. I regard truth as a
divine ventriloquist: I care not from whose
mouth the sounds are
supposed to proceed, if only the words are
audible and intelligible.
"Albeit, I must confess to be half in doubt,
whether I should bring it
forth or no, it being so contrary to the eye
of the world, and the
world so potent in most men's hearts, that I
shall endanger either not
to be regarded or not to be understood."
And to conclude the
subject of citation, with a cluster of citations,
which as taken from books,
not in common use, may contribute to the
reader's amusement, as a
voluntary before a sermon: "Dolet mihi quidem
deliciis literarum
inescatos subito jam homines adeo esse, praesertim
qui Christianos se
profitentur, et legere nisi quod ad delectationem
facit, sustineant nihil:
unde et discipline severiores et philosophia
ipsa jam fere prorsus
etiam a doctis negliguntur. Quod quidem
propositum studiorum, nisi
mature corrigitur, tam magnum rebus
incommodum dabit, quam
dedit barbaries olim. Pertinax res barbaries
est, fateor: sed minus
potent tamen, quam illa mollities et persuasa
prudentia literarum, si
ratione caret, sapientiae virtutisque specie
mortales misere
circumducens. Succedet igitur, ut arbitror, haud ita
multo post, pro rusticana
seculi nostri ruditate captatrix illa
communi-loquentia robur
animi virilis omne, omnem virtutem masculam,
profligatura nisi
cavetur."
A too prophetic remark,
which has been in fulfilment from the year
1680, to the present 1815.
By persuasa prudentia, Grynaeus means self-
complacent common sense as
opposed to science and philosophic reason.
Est medius ordo, et velut
equestris, ingeniorum quidem sagacium, et
commodorum rebus humanis,
non tamen in primam magnitudinem patentium.
Eorum hominum, ut sic
dicam, major annona est. Sedulum esse, nihil
temere loqui, assuescere
labori, et imagine prudentiae et modistiae
tegere angustiores partes
captus, dum exercitationem ac usum, quo isti
in civilibus rebus
pollent, pro natura et magnitudine ingenii plerique
accipiunt.
"As therefore
physicians are many times forced to leave such methods
of curing as themselves
know to be the fittest, and being overruled by
the patient's impatiency,
are fain to try the best they can: in like
sort, considering how the
case doth stand with this present age, full
of tongue and weak of
brain, behold we would (if our subject permitted
it) yield to the stream
thereof. That way we would be contented to
prove our thesis, which
being the worse in itself, is notwithstanding
now by reason of common
imbecility the fitter and likelier to be
brooked."
If this fear could be
rationally entertained in the controversial age
of Hooker, under the then
robust discipline of the scholastic logic,
pardonably may a writer of
the present times anticipate a scanty
audience for abstrusest
themes, and truths that can neither be
communicated nor received
without effort of thought, as well as
patience of attention.
"Che s'io non erro al calcolar de' punti,
Par ch' Asinina Stella a noi predomini,
E'l Somaro e'l Castron si sian congiunti.
Il tempo d'Apuleio piu non si nomini:
Che se allora un sol huom sembrava un
Asino,
Mille Asini a' miei di rassembran
huomini!"
CHAPTER X
A chapter of digression
and anecdotes, as an interlude preceding that
on the nature and genesis
of the Imagination or Plastic Power--On
pedantry and pedantic
expressions--Advice to young authors respecting
publication--Various
anecdotes of the Author's literary life, and the
progress of his opinions
in Religion and Politics.
"Esemplastic. The
word is not in Johnson, nor have I met with it
elsewhere." Neither
have, I. I constructed it myself from the Greek
words, eis en plattein, to
shape into one; because, having to convey a
new sense, I thought that
a new term would both aid the recollection
of my meaning, and prevent
its being confounded with the usual import
of the word, imagination.
"But this is pedantry!" Not necessarily so,
I hope. If I am not
misinformed, pedantry consists in the use of words
unsuitable to the time,
place, and company. The language of the market
would be in the schools as
pedantic, though it might not be reprobated
by that name, as the
language of the schools in the market. The mere
man of the world, who
insists that no other terms but such as occur in
common conversation should
be employed in a scientific disquisition,
and with no greater
precision, is as truly a pedant as the man of
letters, who either
over-rating the acquirements of his auditors, or
misled by his own
familiarity with technical or scholastic terms,
converses at the
wine-table with his mind fixed on his museum or
laboratory; even though
the latter pedant instead of desiring his wife
to make the tea should bid
her add to the quant. suff. of thea
Sinensis the oxyd of
hydrogen saturated with caloric. To use the
colloquial (and in truth
somewhat vulgar) metaphor, if the pedant of
the cloister, and the
pedant of the lobby, both smell equally of the
shop, yet the odour from
the Russian binding of good old authentic-
looking folios and quartos
is less annoying than the steams from the
tavern or bagnio. Nay,
though the pedantry of the scholar should
betray a little
ostentation, yet a well-conditioned mind would more
easily, methinks, tolerate
the fox brush of learned vanity, than the
sans culotterie of a
contemptuous ignorance, that assumes a merit from
mutilation in the
self-consoling sneer at the pompous incumbrance of
tails.
The first lesson of
philosophic discipline is to wean the student's
attention from the degrees
of things, which alone form the vocabulary
of common life, and to
direct it to the kind abstracted from degree.
Thus the chemical student
is taught not to be startled at
disquisitions on the heat
in ice, or on latent and fixible light. In
such discourse the
instructor has no other alternative than either to
use old words with new
meanings (the plan adopted by Darwin in his
Zoonomia;) or to introduce
new terms, after the example of Linnaeus,
and the framers of the
present chemical nomenclature. The latter mode
is evidently preferable,
were it only that the former demands a
twofold exertion of
thought in one and the same act. For the reader,
or hearer, is required not
only to learn and bear in mind the new
definition; but to
unlearn, and keep out of his view, the old and
habitual meaning; a far
more difficult and perplexing task, and for
which the mere semblance
of eschewing pedantry seems to me an
inadequate compensation.
Where, indeed, it is in our power to recall
an unappropriate term that
had without sufficient reason become
obsolete, it is doubtless
a less evil to restore than to coin anew.
Thus to express in one
word all that appertains to the perception,
considered as passive and
merely recipient, I have adopted from our
elder classics the word
sensuous; because sensual is not at present
used, except in a bad
sense, or at least as a moral distinction; while
sensitive and sensible
would each convey a different meaning. Thus too
have I followed Hooker,
Sanderson, Milton and others, in designating
the immediateness of any
act or object of knowledge by the word
intuition, used sometimes
subjectively, sometimes objectively, even as
we use the word, thought;
now as the thought, or act of thinking, and
now as a thought, or the
object of our reflection; and we do this
without confusion or
obscurity. The very words, objective and
subjective, of such
constant recurrence in the schools of yore, I have
ventured to re-introduce,
because I could not so briefly or
conveniently by any more
familiar terms distinguish the percipere from
the percipi. Lastly, I
have cautiously discriminated the terms, the
reason, and the
understanding, encouraged and confirmed by the
authority of our genuine
divines and philosophers, before the
Revolution.
------both life, and sense,
Fancy and understanding; whence the soul
Reason receives, and reason is her bring,
Discursive or intuitive: discourse [32]
Is oftest yours, the latter most is ours,
Differing but in degree, in kind the same.
I say, that I was confirmed
by authority so venerable: for I had
previous and higher
motives in my own conviction of the importance,
nay, of the necessity of
the distinction, as both an indispensable
condition and a vital part
of all sound speculation in metaphysics,
ethical or theological. To
establish this distinction was one main
object of The Friend; if
even in a biography of my own literary life I
can with propriety refer
to a work, which was printed rather than
published, or so published
that it had been well for the unfortunate
author, if it had remained
in manuscript. I have even at this time
bitter cause for
remembering that, which a number of my subscribers
have but a trifling motive
for forgetting. This effusion might have
been spared; but I would
fain flatter myself, that the reader will be
less austere than an
oriental professor of the bastinado, who during
an attempt to extort per
argumentum baculinum a full confession from a
culprit, interrupted his
outcry of pain by reminding him, that it was
"a mere
digression!" "All this noise, Sir! is nothing to the point,
and no sort of answer to
my questions!" "Ah! but," (replied the
sufferer,) "it is the
most pertinent reply in nature to your blows."
An imprudent man of common
goodness of heart cannot but wish to turn
even his imprudences to
the benefit of others, as far as this is
possible. If therefore any
one of the readers of this semi-narrative
should be preparing or
intending a periodical work, I warn him, in the
first place, against
trusting in the number of names on his
subscription list. For he
cannot be certain that the names were put
down by sufficient
authority; or, should that be ascertained, it still
remains to be known,
whether they were not extorted by some over
zealous friend's
importunity; whether the subscriber had not yielded
his name, merely from want
of courage to answer, no; and with the
intention of dropping the
work as soon as possible. One gentleman
procured me nearly a
hundred names for THE FRIEND, and not only took
frequent opportunity to
remind me of his success in his canvass, but
laboured to impress my
mind with the sense of the obligation, I was
under to the subscribers;
for, (as he very pertinently admonished me,)
"fifty-two shillings
a year was a large sum to be bestowed on one
individual, where there
were so many objects of charity with strong
claims to the assistance
of the benevolent." Of these hundred patrons
ninety threw up the
publication before the fourth number, without any
notice; though it was well
known to them, that in consequence of the
distance, and the slowness
and irregularity of the conveyance, I was
compelled to lay in a
stock of stamped paper for at least eight weeks
beforehand; each sheet of
which stood me in five pence previously to
its arrival at my
printer's; though the subscription money was not to
be received till the
twenty-first week after the commencement of the
work; and lastly, though
it was in nine cases out of ten impracticable
for me to receive the
money for two or three numbers without paying an
equal sum for the postage.
In confirmation of my
first caveat, I will select one fact among many.
On my list of subscribers,
among a considerable number of names
equally flattering, was
that of an Earl of Cork, with his address. He
might as well have been an
Earl of Bottle, for aught I knew of him,
who had been content to
reverence the peerage in abstracto, rather
than in concretis. Of
course THE FRIEND was regularly sent as far, if
I remember right, as the
eighteenth number; that is, till a fortnight
before the subscription
was to be paid. And lo! just at this time I
received a letter from his
Lordship, reproving me in language far more
lordly than courteous for
my impudence in directing my pamphlets to
him, who knew nothing of
me or my work! Seventeen or eighteen numbers
of which, however, his
Lordship was pleased to retain, probably for
the culinary or
post-culinary conveniences of his servants.
Secondly, I warn all
others from the attempt to deviate from the
ordinary mode of
publishing a work by the trade. I thought indeed,
that to the purchaser it
was indifferent, whether thirty per cent of
the purchase-money went to
the booksellers or to the government; and
that the convenience of
receiving the work by the post at his own door
would give the preference
to the latter. It is hard, I own, to have
been labouring for years,
in collecting and arranging the materials;
to have spent every
shilling that could be spared after the
necessaries of life had
been furnished, in buying books, or in
journeys for the purpose
of consulting them or of acquiring facts at
the fountain head; then to
buy the paper, pay for the printing, and
the like, all at least
fifteen per cent beyond what the trade would
have paid; and then after
all to give thirty per cent not of the net
profits, but of the gross
results of the sale, to a man who has merely
to give the books shelf or
warehouse room, and permit his apprentice
to hand them over the
counter to those who may ask for them; and this
too copy by copy,
although, if the work be on any philosophical or
scientific subject, it may
be years before the edition is sold off.
All this, I confess, must
seem a hardship, and one, to which the
products of industry in no
other mode of exertion are subject. Yet
even this is better, far
better, than to attempt in any way to unite
the functions of author
and publisher. But the most prudent mode is to
sell the copy-right, at
least of one or more editions, for the most
that the trade will offer.
By few only can a large remuneration be
expected; but fifty pounds
and ease of mind are of more real advantage
to a literary man, than
the chance of five hundred with the certainty
of insult and degrading
anxieties. I shall have been grievously
misunderstood, if this
statement should be interpreted as written with
the desire of detracting
from the character of booksellers or
publishers. The
individuals did not make the laws and customs of their
trade, but, as in every
other trade, take them as they find them. Till
the evil can be proved to
be removable, and without the substitution
of an equal or greater
inconvenience, it were neither wise nor manly
even to complain of it.
But to use it as a pretext for speaking, or
even for thinking, or
feeling, unkindly or opprobriously of the
tradesmen, as individuals,
would be something worse than unwise or
even than unmanly; it
would be immoral and calumnious. My motives
point in a far different
direction and to far other objects, as will
be seen in the conclusion
of the chapter.
A learned and exemplary
old clergyman, who many years ago went to his
reward followed by the
regrets and blessings of his flock, published
at his own expense two
volumes octavo, entitled, A NEW THEORY OF
REDEMPTION. The work was
most severely handled in THE MONTHLY or
CRITICAL REVIEW, I forget
which; and this unprovoked hostility became
the good old man's
favourite topic of conversation among his friends.
"Well!" (he used
to exclaim,) "in the second edition, I shall have an
opportunity of exposing
both the ignorance and the malignity of the
anonymous critic."
Two or three years however passed by without any
tidings from the
bookseller, who had undertaken the printing and
publication of the work,
and who was perfectly at his ease, as the
author was known to be a
man of large property. At length the accounts
were written for; and in
the course of a few weeks they were presented
by the rider for the
house, in person. My old friend put on his
spectacles, and holding
the scroll with no very firm hand, began--
"Paper, so much: O
moderate enough--not at all beyond my expectation!
Printing, so much: well!
moderate enough! Stitching, covers,
advertisements, carriage,
and so forth, so much."--Still nothing
amiss. Selleridge (for
orthography is no necessary part of a
bookseller's literary
acquirements) L3. 3s. "Bless me! only three
guineas for the what d'ye
call it--the selleridge?" "No more, Sir!"
replied the rider.
"Nay, but that is too moderate!" rejoined my old
friend. "Only three
guineas for selling a thousand copies of a work in
two volumes?" "O
Sir!" (cries the young traveller) "you have mistaken
the word. There have been
none of them sold; they have been sent back
from London long ago; and
this L3. 3s. is for the cellaridge, or
warehouse-room in our book
cellar." The work was in consequence
preferred from the ominous
cellar of the publisher's to the author's
garret; and, on presenting
a copy to an acquaintance, the old
gentleman used to tell the
anecdote with great humour and still
greater good nature.
With equal lack of worldly
knowledge, I was a far more than equal
sufferer for it, at the
very outset of my authorship. Toward the close
of the first year from the
time, that in an inauspicious hour I left
the friendly cloisters,
and the happy grove of quiet, ever honoured
Jesus College, Cambridge,
I was persuaded by sundry philanthropists
and Anti-polemists to set
on foot a periodical work, entitled THE
WATCHMAN, that, according
to the general motto of the work, all might
know the truth, and that
the truth might make us free! In order to
exempt it from the
stamp-tax, and likewise to contribute as little as
possible to the supposed
guilt of a war against freedom, it was to be
published on every eighth
day, thirty-two pages, large octavo, closely
printed, and price only
four-pence. Accordingly with a flaming
prospectus,--"Knowledge
is Power," "To cry the state of the political
atmosphere,"--and so
forth, I set off on a tour to the North, from
Bristol to Sheffield, for
the purpose of procuring customers,
preaching by the way in
most of the great towns, as an hireless
volunteer, in a blue coat
and white waistcoat, that not a rag of the
woman of Babylon might be
seen on me. For I was at that time and long
after, though a
Trinitarian (that is ad normam Platonis) in
philosophy, yet a zealous
Unitarian in religion; more accurately, I
was a Psilanthropist, one
of those who believe our Lord to have been
the real son of Joseph,
and who lay the main stress on the
resurrection rather than
on the crucifixion. O! never can I remember
those days with either
shame or regret. For I was most sincere, most
disinterested. My opinions
were indeed in many and most important
points erroneous; but my
heart was single. Wealth, rank, life itself
then seemed cheap to me,
compared with the interests of what I
believed to be the truth,
and the will of my Maker. I cannot even
accuse myself of having
been actuated by vanity; for in the expansion
of my enthusiasm I did not
think of myself at all.
My campaign commenced at
Birmingham; and my first attack was on a
rigid Calvinist, a
tallow-chandler by trade. He was a tall dingy man,
in whom length was so
predominant over breadth, that he might almost
have been borrowed for a
foundery poker. O that face! a face kat'
emphasin! I have it before
me at this moment. The lank, black, twine-
like hair,
pingui-nitescent, cut in a straight line along the black
stubble of his thin
gunpowder eye-brows, that looked like a scorched
after-math from a last
week's shaving. His coat collar behind in
perfect unison, both of
colour and lustre, with the coarse yet glib
cordage, which I suppose
he called his hair, and which with a bend
inward at the nape of the
neck,--the only approach to flexure in his
whole figure,--slunk in
behind his waistcoat; while the countenance
lank, dark, very hard, and
with strong perpendicular furrows, gave me
a dim notion of some one
looking at me through a used gridiron, all
soot, grease, and iron!
But he was one of the thorough-bred, a true
lover of liberty, and, as
I was informed, had proved to the
satisfaction of many, that
Mr. Pitt was one of the horns of the second
beast in THE REVELATIONS,
that spake as a dragon. A person, to whom
one of my letters of
recommendation had been addressed, was my
introducer. It was a new
event in my life, my first stroke in the new
business I had undertaken
of an author, yea, and of an author trading
on his own account. My
companion after some imperfect sentences and a
multitude of hums and has
abandoned the cause to his client; and I
commenced an harangue of
half an hour to Phileleutheros, the tallow-
chandler, varying my
notes, through the whole gamut of eloquence, from
the ratiocinative to the
declamatory, and in the latter from the
pathetic to the indignant.
I argued, I described, I promised, I
prophesied; and beginning
with the captivity of nations I ended with
the near approach of the
millennium, finishing the whole with some of
my own verses describing
that glorious state out of the Religious
Musings:
------Such delights
As float to earth, permitted visitants!
When in some hour of solemn jubilee
The massive gates of Paradise are thrown
Wide open, and forth come in fragments wild
Sweet echoes of unearthly melodies,
And odours snatched from beds of amaranth,
And they, that from the crystal river of life
Spring up on freshened wing, ambrosial gales!
My taper man of lights
listened with perseverant and praiseworthy
patience, though, as I was
afterwards told, on complaining of certain
gales that were not
altogether ambrosial, it was a melting day with
him. "And what,
Sir," he said, after a short pause, "might the cost
be?" "Only
four-pence,"--(O! how I felt the anti-climax, the abysmal
bathos of that
four-pence!)--"only four-pence, Sir, each number, to be
published on every eighth
day."--"That comes to a deal of money at the
end of a year. And how
much, did you say, there was to be for the
money?"--"Thirty-two
pages, Sir, large octavo, closely printed."--
"Thirty and two
pages? Bless me! why except what I does in a family
way on the Sabbath, that's
more than I ever reads, Sir! all the year
round. I am as great a
one, as any man in Brummagem, Sir! for liberty
and truth and all them
sort of things, but as to this,--no offence, I
hope, Sir,--I must beg to
be excused."
So ended my first canvass:
from causes that I shall presently mention,
I made but one other
application in person. This took place at
Manchester to a stately
and opulent wholesale dealer in cottons. He
took my letter of
introduction, and, having perused it, measured me
from head to foot and
again from foot to head, and then asked if I had
any bill or invoice of the
thing. I presented my prospectus to him. He
rapidly skimmed and hummed
over the first side, and still more rapidly
the second and concluding
page; crushed it within his fingers and the
palm of his hand; then
most deliberately and significantly rubbed and
smoothed one part against
the other; and lastly putting it into his
pocket turned his back on
me with an "over-run with these articles!"
and so without another
syllable retired into his counting house. And,
I can truly say, to my
unspeakable amusement.
This, I have said, was my
second and last attempt. On returning
baffled from the first, in
which I had vainly essayed to repeat the
miracle of Orpheus with
the Brummagem patriot, I dined with the
tradesman who had
introduced me to him. After dinner he importuned me
to smoke a pipe with him,
and two or three other illuminati of the
same rank. I objected,
both because I was engaged to spend the evening
with a minister and his
friends, and because I had never smoked except
once or twice in my
lifetime, and then it was herb tobacco mixed with
Oronooko. On the
assurance, however, that the tobacco was equally
mild, and seeing too that
it was of a yellow colour; not forgetting
the lamentable difficulty,
I have always experienced, in saying, "No,"
and in abstaining from
what the people about me were doing,--I took
half a pipe, filling the
lower half of the bowl with salt. I was soon
however compelled to
resign it, in consequence of a giddiness and
distressful feeling in my
eyes, which, as I had drunk but a single
glass of ale, must, I
knew, have been the effect of the tobacco. Soon
after, deeming myself
recovered, I sallied forth to my engagement; but
the walk and the fresh air
brought on all the symptoms again, and, I
had scarcely entered the
minister's drawing-room, and opened a small
pacquet of letters, which
he had received from Bristol for me; ere I
sank back on the sofa in a
sort of swoon rather than sleep.
Fortunately I had found
just time enough to inform him of the confused
state of my feelings, and
of the occasion. For here and thus I lay, my
face like a wall that is
white-washing, deathly pale and with the cold
drops of perspiration
running down it from my forehead, while one
after another there
dropped in the different gentlemen, who had been
invited to meet, and spend
the evening with me, to the number of from
fifteen to twenty. As the
poison of tobacco acts but for a short time,
I at length awoke from
insensibility, and looked round on the party,
my eyes dazzled by the
candles which had been lighted in the interim.
By way of relieving my
embarrassment one of the gentlemen began the
conversation, with
"Have you seen a paper to-day, Mr. Coleridge?"
"Sir!" I
replied, rubbing my eyes, "I am far from convinced, that a
Christian is permitted to
read either newspapers or any other works of
merely political and
temporary interest." This remark, so ludicrously
inapposite to, or rather,
incongruous with, the purpose, for which I
was known to have visited
Birmingham, and to assist me in which they
were all then met,
produced an involuntary and general burst of
laughter; and seldom
indeed have I passed so many delightful hours, as
I enjoyed in that room
from the moment of that laugh till an early
hour the next morning.
Never, perhaps, in so mixed and numerous a
party have I since heard
conversation, sustained with such animation,
enriched with such variety
of information and enlivened with such a
flow of anecdote. Both
then and afterwards they all joined in
dissuading me from
proceeding with my scheme; assured me in the most
friendly and yet most
flattering expressions, that neither was the
employment fit for me, nor
I fit for the employment. Yet, if I
determined on persevering
in it, they promised to exert themselves to
the utmost to procure
subscribers, and insisted that I should make no
more applications in
person, but carry on the canvass by proxy. The
same hospitable reception,
the same dissuasion, and, that failing, the
same kind exertions in my
behalf, I met with at Manchester, Derby,
Nottingham,
Sheffield,--indeed, at every place in which I took up my
sojourn. I often recall
with affectionate pleasure the many
respectable men who
interested themselves for me, a perfect stranger
to them, not a few of whom
I can still name among my friends. They
will bear witness for me
how opposite even then my principles were to
those of Jacobinism or
even of democracy, and can attest the strict
accuracy of the statement
which I have left on record in the tenth and
eleventh numbers of THE
FRIEND.
From this rememberable
tour I returned with nearly a thousand names on
the subscription list of
THE WATCHMAN; yet more than half convinced,
that prudence dictated the
abandonment of the scheme. But for this
very reason I persevered
in it; for I was at that period of my life so
completely hag-ridden by
the fear of being influenced by selfish
motives, that to know a
mode of conduct to be the dictate of prudence
was a sort of presumptive
proof to my feelings, that the contrary was
the dictate of duty.
Accordingly, I commenced the work, which was
announced in London by
long bills in letters larger than had ever been
seen before, and which, I
have been informed, for I did not see them
myself, eclipsed the
glories even of the lottery puffs. But alas! the
publication of the very
first number was delayed beyond the day
announced for its
appearance. In the second number an essay against
fast days, with a most
censurable application of a text from Isaiah
for its motto, lost me
near five hundred of my subscribers at one
blow. In the two following
numbers I made enemies of all my Jacobin
and democratic patrons;
for, disgusted by their infidelity, and their
adoption of French morals
with French psilosophy; and perhaps
thinking, that charity
ought to begin nearest home; Instead of abusing
the government and the
Aristocrats chiefly or entirely, as had been
expected of me, I levelled
my attacks at "modern patriotism," and even
ventured to declare my
belief, that whatever the motives of ministers
might have been for the
sedition, or as it was then the fashion to
call them, the gagging
bills, yet the bills themselves would produce
an effect to be desired by
all the true friends of freedom, as far as
they should contribute to
deter men from openly declaiming on
subjects, the principles
of which they had never bottomed and from
"pleading to the poor
and ignorant, instead of pleading for them." At
the same time I avowed my
conviction, that national education and a
concurring spread of the
Gospel were the indispensable condition of
any true political
melioration. Thus by the time the seventh number
was published, I had the
mortification--(but why should I say this,
when in truth I cared too
little for any thing that concerned my
worldly interests to be at
all mortified about it?)--of seeing the
preceding numbers exposed
in sundry old iron shops for a penny a
piece. At the ninth number
I dropt the work. But from the London
publisher I could not
obtain a shilling; he was a ------ and set me at
defiance. From other
places I procured but little, and after such
delays as rendered that
little worth nothing; and I should have been
inevitably thrown into
jail by my Bristol printer, who refused to wait
even for a month, for a
sum between eighty and ninety pounds, if the
money had not been paid
for me by a man by no means affluent, a dear
friend, who attached
himself to me from my first arrival at Bristol,
who has continued my
friend with a fidelity unconquered by time or
even by my own apparent
neglect; a friend from whom I never received
an advice that was not
wise, nor a remonstrance that was not gentle
and affectionate.
Conscientiously an
opponent of the first revolutionary war, yet with
my eyes thoroughly opened
to the true character and impotence of the
favourers of revolutionary
principles in England, principles which I
held in abhorrence,--(for
it was part of my political creed, that
whoever ceased to act as
an individual by making himself a member of
any society not sanctioned
by his Government, forfeited the rights of
a citizen)--a vehement
Anti-Ministerialist, but after the invasion of
Switzerland, a more
vehement Anti-Gallican, and still more intensely
an Anti-Jacobin, I retired
to a cottage at Stowey, and provided for my
scanty maintenance by
writing verses for a London Morning Paper. I saw
plainly, that literature
was not a profession, by which I could expect
to live; for I could not
disguise from myself, that, whatever my
talents might or might not
be in other respects, yet they were not of
the sort that could enable
me to become a popular writer; and that
whatever my opinions might
be in themselves, they were almost equi-
distant from all the three
prominent parties, the Pittites, the
Foxites, and the
Democrats. Of the unsaleable nature of my writings I
had an amusing memento one
morning from our own servant girl. For
happening to rise at an
earlier hour than usual, I observed her
putting an extravagant
quantity of paper into the grate in order to
light the fire, and mildly
checked her for her wastefulness; "La,
Sir!" (replied poor
Nanny) "why, it is only Watchmen."
I now devoted myself to
poetry and to the study of ethics and
psychology; and so
profound was my admiration at this time of
Hartley's ESSAY ON MAN,
that I gave his name to my first-born. In
addition to the gentleman,
my neighbour, whose garden joined on to my
little orchard, and the
cultivation of whose friendship had been my
sole motive in choosing
Stowey for my residence, I was so fortunate as
to acquire, shortly after
my settlement there, an invaluable blessing
in the society and
neighbourhood of one, to whom I could look up with
equal reverence, whether I
regarded him as a poet, a philosopher, or a
man. His conversation
extended to almost all subjects, except physics
and politics; with the
latter he never troubled himself. Yet neither
my retirement nor my utter
abstraction from all the disputes of the
day could secure me in
those jealous times from suspicion and obloquy,
which did not stop at me,
but extended to my excellent friend, whose
perfect innocence was even
adduced as a proof of his guilt. One of the
many busy sycophants of
that day,--(I here use the word sycophant in
its original sense, as a
wretch who flatters the prevailing party by
informing against his
neighbours, under pretence that they are
exporters of prohibited
figs or fancies,--for the moral application of
the term it matters not
which)--one of these sycophantic law-mongrels,
discoursing on the
politics of the neighbourhood, uttered the
following deep remark:
"As to Coleridge, there is not so much harm in
him, for he is a
whirl-brain that talks whatever comes uppermost; but
that ------! he is the
dark traitor. You never hear HIM say a syllable
on the subject."
Now that the hand of
Providence has disciplined all Europe into
sobriety, as men tame wild
elephants, by alternate blows and caresses;
now that Englishmen of all
classes are restored to their old English
notions and feelings; it
will with difficulty be credited, how great
an influence was at that
time possessed and exerted by the spirit of
secret defamation,--(the
too constant attendant on party-zeal)--during
the restless interim from
1793 to the commencement of the Addington
administration, or the
year before the truce of Amiens. For by the
latter period the minds of
the partizans, exhausted by excess of
stimulation and humbled by
mutual disappointment, had become languid.
The same causes, that
inclined the nation to peace, disposed the
individuals to
reconciliation. Both parties had found themselves in
the wrong. The one had
confessedly mistaken the moral character of the
revolution, and the other
had miscalculated both its moral and its
physical resources. The
experiment was made at the price of great,
almost, we may say, of
humiliating sacrifices; and wise men foresaw
that it would fail, at
least in its direct and ostensible object. Yet
it was purchased cheaply,
and realized an object of equal value, and,
if possible, of still more
vital importance. For it brought about a
national unanimity
unexampled in our history since the reign of
Elizabeth; and Providence,
never wanting to a good work when men have
done their parts, soon
provided a common focus in the cause of Spain,
which made us all once
more Englishmen by at once gratifying and
correcting the
predilections of both parties. The sincere reverers of
the throne felt the cause
of loyalty ennobled by its alliance with
that of freedom; while the
honest zealots of the people could not but
admit, that freedom itself
assumed a more winning form, humanized by
loyalty and consecrated by
religious principle. The youthful
enthusiasts who, flattered
by the morning rainbow of the French
revolution, had made a
boast of expatriating their hopes and fears,
now, disciplined by the
succeeding storms and sobered by increase of
years, had been taught to
prize and honour the spirit of nationality
as the best safeguard of
national independence, and this again as the
absolute pre-requisite and
necessary basis of popular rights.
If in Spain too
disappointment has nipped our too forward
expectations, yet all is
not destroyed that is checked. The crop was
perhaps springing up too
rank in the stalk to kern well; and there
were, doubtless, symptoms
of the Gallican blight on it. If
superstition and despotism
have been suffered to let in their wolvish
sheep to trample and eat
it down even to the surface, yet the roots
remain alive, and the
second growth may prove the stronger and
healthier for the
temporary interruption. At all events, to us heaven
has been just and
gracious. The people of England did their best, and
have received their
rewards. Long may we continue to deserve it!
Causes, which it had been
too generally the habit of former statesmen
to regard as belonging to
another world, are now admitted by all ranks
to have been the main
agents of our success. "We fought from heaven;
the stars in their courses
fought against Sisera." If then unanimity
grounded on moral feelings
has been among the least equivocal sources
of our national glory,
that man deserves the esteem of his countrymen,
even as patriots, who
devotes his life and the utmost efforts of his
intellect to the
preservation and continuance of that unanimity by the
disclosure and
establishment of principles. For by these all opinions
must be ultimately tried;
and, (as the feelings of men are worthy of
regard only as far as they
are the representatives of their fixed
opinions,) on the
knowledge of these all unanimity, not accidental and
fleeting, must be
grounded. Let the scholar, who doubts this
assertion, refer only to
the speeches and writings of Edmund Burke at
the commencement of the
American war and compare them with his
speeches and writings at
the commencement of the French revolution. He
will find the principles
exactly the same and the deductions the same;
but the practical
inferences almost opposite in the one case from
those drawn in the other;
yet in both equally legitimate and in both
equally confirmed by the
results. Whence gained he the superiority of
foresight? Whence arose
the striking difference, and in most instances
even, the discrepancy
between the grounds assigned by him and by those
who voted with him, on the
same questions? How are we to explain the
notorious fact, that the
speeches and writings of Edmund Burke are
more interesting at the
present day than they were found at the time
of their first
publication; while those of his illustrious
confederates are either
forgotten, or exist only to furnish proofs,
that the same conclusion,
which one man had deduced scientifically,
may be brought out by
another in consequence of errors that luckily
chanced to neutralize each
other. It would be unhandsome as a
conjecture, even were it
not, as it actually is, false in point of
fact to attribute this
difference to the deficiency of talent on the
part of Burke's friends,
or of experience, or of historical knowledge.
The satisfactory solution
is, that Edmund Burke possessed and had
sedulously sharpened that
eye, which sees all things, actions, and
events, in relation to the
laws that determine their existence and
circumscribe their
possibility. He referred habitually to principles.
He was a scientific
statesman; and therefore a seer. For every
principle contains in
itself the germs of a prophecy; and, as the
prophetic power is the
essential privilege of science, so the
fulfilment of its oracles
supplies the outward and, (to men in
general,) the only test of
its claim to the title. Wearisome as
Burke's refinements
appeared to his parliamentary auditors, yet the
cultivated classes
throughout Europe have reason to be thankful, that
he
------went on refining,
And thought of convincing, while they thought of
dining.
Our very sign-boards,
(said an illustrious friend to me,) give
evidence, that there has
been a Titian in the world. In like manner,
not only the debates in
parliament, not only our proclamations and
state papers, but the
essays and leading paragraphs of our journals
are so many remembrancers
of Edmund Burke. Of this the reader may
easily convince himself,
if either by recollection or reference he
will compare the
opposition newspapers at the commencement and during
the five or six following
years of the French revolution with the
sentiments, and grounds of
argument assumed in the same class of
journals at present, and
for some years past.
Whether the spirit of
jacobinism, which the writings of Burke
exorcised from the higher
and from the literary classes, may not, like
the ghost in Hamlet, be
heard moving and mining in the underground
chambers with an activity
the more dangerous because less noisy, may
admit of a question. I
have given my opinions on this point, and the
grounds of them, in my
letters to judge Fletcher occasioned by his
charge to the Wexford
grand jury, and published in the Courier. Be
this as it may, the evil
spirit of jealousy, and with it the Cerberean
whelps of feud and
slander, no longer walk their rounds, in cultivated
society.
Far different were the
days to which these anecdotes have carried me
back. The dark guesses of
some zealous Quidnunc met with so congenial
a soil in the grave alarm
of a titled Dogberry of our neighbourhood,
that a spy was actually
sent down from the government pour
surveillance of myself and
friend. There must have been not only
abundance, but variety of
these "honourable men" at the disposal of
Ministers: for this proved
a very honest fellow. After three weeks'
truly Indian perseverance
in tracking us, (for we were commonly
together,) during all
which time seldom were we out of doors, but he
contrived to be within
hearing,--(and all the while utterly
unsuspected; how indeed
could such a suspicion enter our fancies?)--he
not only rejected Sir
Dogberry's request that he would try yet a
little longer, but
declared to him his belief, that both my friend and
myself were as good
subjects, for aught he could discover to the
contrary, as any in His
Majesty's dominions. He had repeatedly hid
himself, he said, for
hours together behind a bank at the sea-side,
(our favourite seat,) and
overheard our conversation. At first he
fancied, that we were
aware of our danger; for he often heard me talk
of one Spy Nozy, which he
was inclined to interpret of himself, and of
a remarkable feature
belonging to him; but he was speedily convinced
that it was the name of a
man who had made a book and lived long ago.
Our talk ran most upon
books, and we were perpetually desiring each
other to look at this, and
to listen to that; but he could not catch a
word about politics. Once
he had joined me on the road; (this
occurred, as I was
returning home alone from my friend's house, which
was about three miles from
my own cottage,) and, passing himself off
as a traveller, he had
entered into conversation with me, and talked
of purpose in a democrat
way in order to draw me out. The result, it
appears, not only
convinced him that I was no friend of jacobinism;
but, (he added,) I had
"plainly made it out to be such a silly as well
as wicked thing, that he
felt ashamed though he had only put it on." I
distinctly remembered the
occurrence, and had mentioned it immediately
on my return, repeating
what the traveller with his Bardolph nose had
said, with my own answer;
and so little did I suspect the true object
of my "tempter ere
accuser," that I expressed with no small pleasure
my hope and belief, that
the conversation had been of some service to
the poor misled
malcontent. This incident therefore prevented all
doubt as to the truth of
the report, which through a friendly medium
came to me from the master
of the village inn, who had been ordered to
entertain the Government
gentleman in his best manner, but above all
to be silent concerning
such a person being in his house. At length he
received Sir Dogberry's
commands to accompany his guest at the final
interview; and, after the
absolving suffrage of the gentleman honoured
with the confidence of
Ministers, answered, as follows, to the
following queries: D.
"Well, landlord! and what do you know of the
person in question? L. I
see him often pass by with maister ----, my
landlord, (that is, the
owner of the house,) and sometimes with the
new-comers at Holford; but
I never said a word to him or he to me. D.
But do you not know, that
he has distributed papers and hand-bills of
a seditious nature among
the common people? L. No, your Honour! I
never heard of such a
thing. D. Have you not seen this Mr. Coleridge,
or heard of, his
haranguing and talking to knots and clusters of the
inhabitants?--What are you
grinning at, Sir? L. Beg your Honour's
pardon! but I was only
thinking, how they'd have stared at him. If
what I have heard be true,
your Honour! they would not have understood
a word he said. When our
Vicar was here, Dr. L. the master of the
great school and Canon of
Windsor, there was a great dinner party at
maister's; and one of the
farmers, that was there, told us that he and
the Doctor talked real
Hebrew Greek at each other for an hour together
after dinner. D. Answer
the question, Sir! does he ever harangue the
people? L. I hope your
Honour an't angry with me. I can say no more
than I know. I never saw
him talking with any one, but my landlord,
and our curate, and the
strange gentleman. D. Has he not been seen
wandering on the hills
towards the Channel, and along the shore, with
books and papers in his
hand, taking charts and maps of the country?
L. Why, as to that, your
Honour! I own, I have heard; I am sure, I
would not wish to say ill
of any body; but it is certain, that I have
heard--D. Speak out, man!
don't be afraid, you are doing your duty to
your King and Government.
What have you heard? L. Why, folks do say,
your Honour! as how that
he is a Poet, and that he is going to put
Quantock and all about
here in print; and as they be so much together,
I suppose that the strange
gentleman has some consarn in the
business."--So ended
this formidable inquisition, the latter part of
which alone requires
explanation, and at the same time entitles the
anecdote to a place in my
literary life. I had considered it as a
defect in the admirable
poem of THE TASK, that the subject, which
gives the title to the
work, was not, and indeed could not be, carried
on beyond the three or
four first pages, and that, throughout the
poem, the connections are
frequently awkward, and the transitions
abrupt and arbitrary. I
sought for a subject, that should give equal
room and freedom for
description, incident, and impassioned
reflections on men,
nature, and society, yet supply in itself a
natural connection to the
parts, and unity to the whole. Such a
subject I conceived myself
to have found in a stream, traced from its
source in the hills among the
yellow-red moss and conical glass-shaped
tufts of bent, to the
first break or fall, where its drops become
audible, and it begins to
form a channel; thence to the peat and turf
barn, itself built of the
same dark squares as it sheltered; to the
sheepfold; to the first
cultivated plot of ground; to the lonely
cottage and its bleak
garden won from the heath; to the hamlet, the
villages, the market-town,
the manufactories, and the seaport. My
walks therefore were
almost daily on the top of Quantock, and among
its sloping coombes. With
my pencil and memorandum-book in my hand, I
was making studies, as the
artists call them, and often moulding my
thoughts into verse, with
the objects and imagery immediately before
my senses. Many
circumstances, evil and good, intervened to prevent
the completion of the
poem, which was to have been entitled THE BROOK.
Had I finished the work,
it was my purpose in the heat of the moment
to have dedicated it to
our then committee of public safety as
containing the charts and
maps, with which I was to have supplied the
French Government in aid
of their plans of invasion. And these too for
a tract of coast that,
from Clevedon to Minehead, scarcely permits the
approach of a
fishing-boat!
All my experience from my
first entrance into life to the present hour
is in favour of the
warning maxim, that the man, who opposes in toto
the political or religious
zealots of his age, is safer from their
obloquy than he who
differs from them but in one or two points, or
perhaps only in degree. By
that transfer of the feelings of private
life into the discussion
of public questions, which is the queen bee
in the hive of party
fanaticism, the partisan has more sympathy with
an intemperate opposite
than with a moderate friend. We now enjoy an
intermission, and long may
it continue! In addition to far higher and
more important merits, our
present Bible societies and other numerous
associations for national
or charitable objects, may serve perhaps to
carry off the superfluous
activity and fervour of stirring minds in
innocent hyperboles and
the bustle of management. But the poison-tree
is not dead, though the
sap may for a season have subsided to its
roots. At least let us not
be lulled into such a notion of our entire
security, as not to keep
watch and ward, even on our best feelings. I
have seen gross
intolerance shown in support of toleration; sectarian
antipathy most obtrusively
displayed in the promotion of an
undistinguishing
comprehension of sects: and acts of cruelty, (I had
almost said,) of
treachery, committed in furtherance of an object
vitally important to the
cause of humanity; and all this by men too of
naturally kind
dispositions and exemplary conduct.
The magic rod of
fanaticism is preserved in the very adyta of human
nature; and needs only the
re-exciting warmth of a master hand to bud
forth afresh and produce
the old fruits. The horror of the Peasants'
war in Germany, and the
direful effects of the Anabaptists' tenets,
(which differed only from
those of jacobinism by the substitution of
theological for
philosophical jargon,) struck all Europe for a time
with affright. Yet little
more than a century was sufficient to
obliterate all effective
memory of these events. The same principles
with similar though less
dreadful consequences were again at work from
the imprisonment of the
first Charles to the restoration of his son.
The fanatic maxim of
extirpating fanaticism by persecution produced a
civil war. The war ended
in the victory of the insurgents; but the
temper survived, and
Milton had abundant grounds for asserting, that
"Presbyter was but
OLD PRIEST writ large!" One good result, thank
heaven! of this zealotry
was the re-establishment of the church. And
now it might have been
hoped, that the mischievous spirit would have
been bound for a season,
"and a seal set upon him, that he should
deceive the nation no
more." [33] But no! The ball of persecution was
taken up with undiminished
vigour by the persecuted. The same fanatic
principle that, under the
solemn oath and covenant, had turned
cathedrals into stables,
destroyed the rarest trophies of art and
ancestral piety, and
hunted the brightest ornaments of learning and
religion into holes and
corners, now marched under episcopal banners,
and, having first crowded
the prisons of England, emptied its whole
vial of wrath on the
miserable Covenanters of Scotland [34]. A
merciful providence at
length constrained both parties to join against
a common enemy. A wise
government followed; and the established church
became, and now is, not
only the brightest example, but our best and
only sure bulwark, of
toleration!--the true and indispensable bank
against a new inundation
of persecuting zeal--Esto perpetua!
A long interval of quiet
succeeded; or rather, the exhaustion had
produced a cold fit of the
ague which was symptomatized by
indifference among the
many, and a tendency to infidelity or
scepticism in the educated
classes. At length those feelings of
disgust and hatred, which
for a brief while the multitude had attached
to the crimes and
absurdities of sectarian and democratic fanaticism,
were transferred to the
oppressive privileges of the noblesse, and the
luxury; intrigues and
favouritism of the continental courts. The same
principles, dressed in the
ostentatious garb of a fashionable
philosophy, once more rose
triumphant and effected the French
revolution. And have we
not within the last three or four years had
reason to apprehend, that
the detestable maxims and correspondent
measures of the late
French despotism had already bedimmed the public
recollections of
democratic phrensy; had drawn off to other objects
the electric force of the
feelings which had massed and upheld those
recollections; and that a
favourable concurrence of occasions was
alone wanting to awaken
the thunder and precipitate the lightning from
the opposite quarter of
the political heaven?
In part from
constitutional indolence, which in the very hey-day of
hope had kept my
enthusiasm in check, but still more from the habits
and influences of a
classical education and academic pursuits,
scarcely had a year
elapsed from the commencement of my literary and
political adventures
before my mind sank into a state of thorough
disgust and despondency,
both with regard to the disputes and the
parties disputant. With
more than poetic feeling I exclaimed:
The sensual and the dark rebel in vain,
Slaves by their own compulsion! In mad game
They break their manacles, to wear the name
Of
freedom, graven on a heavier chain.
O Liberty! with profitless endeavour
Have I pursued thee many a weary hour;
But thou nor swell'st the victor's pomp, nor
ever
Didst breathe thy soul in forms of human power!
Alike from all, howe'er
they praise thee,
(Nor prayer nor boastful
name delays thee)
From Superstition's
harpy minions
And factious Blasphemy's
obscener slaves,
Thou speedest on thy
cherub pinions,
The guide of homeless winds and playmate of the
waves!
I retired to a cottage in
Somersetshire at the foot of Quantock, and
devoted my thoughts and
studies to the foundations of religion and
morals. Here I found
myself all afloat. Doubts rushed in; broke upon
me "from the
fountains of the great deep," and fell "from the windows
of heaven." The
fontal truths of natural religion and the books of
Revelation alike
contributed to the flood; and it was long ere my ark
touched on an Ararat, and
rested. The idea of the Supreme Being
appeared to me to be as
necessarily implied in all particular modes of
being as the idea of
infinite space in all the geometrical figures by
which space is limited. I
was pleased with the Cartesian opinion, that
the idea of God is
distinguished from all other ideas by involving its
reality; but I was not
wholly satisfied. I began then to ask myself,
what proof I had of the
outward existence of anything? Of this sheet
of paper for instance, as
a thing in itself, separate from the
phaenomenon or image in my
perception. I saw, that in the nature of
things such proof is
impossible; and that of all modes of being, that
are not objects of the
senses, the existence is assumed by a logical
necessity arising from the
constitution of the mind itself,--by the
absence of all motive to
doubt it, not from any absolute contradiction
in the supposition of the
contrary. Still the existence of a Being,
the ground of all
existence, was not yet the existence of a moral
creator, and governour.
"In the position, that all reality is either
contained in the necessary
being as an attribute, or exists through
him, as its ground, it
remains undecided whether the properties of
intelligence and will are
to be referred to the Supreme Being in the
former or only in the
latter sense; as inherent attributes, or only as
consequences that have
existence in other things through him [35].
Were the latter the truth,
then notwithstanding all the pre-eminence
which must be assigned to
the Eternal First from the sufficiency,
unity, and independence of
his being, as the dread ground of the
universe, his nature would
yet fall far short of that, which we are
bound to comprehend in the
idea of GOD. For, without any knowledge or
determining resolve of its
own, it would only be a blind necessary
ground of other things and
other spirits; and thus would be
distinguished from the
FATE of certain ancient philosophers in no
respect, but that of being
more definitely and intelligibly
described."
For a very long time,
indeed, I could not reconcile personality with
infinity; and my head was
with Spinoza, though my whole heart remained
with Paul and John. Yet
there had dawned upon me, even before I had
met with the CRITIQUE OF
THE PURE REASON, a certain guiding light. If
the mere intellect could
make no certain discovery of a holy and
intelligent first cause,
it might yet supply a demonstration, that no
legitimate argument could
be drawn from the intellect against its
truth. And what is this
more than St. Paul's assertion, that by
wisdom,--(more properly
translated by the powers of reasoning)--no man
ever arrived at the
knowledge of God? What more than the sublimest,
and probably the oldest,
book on earth has taught us,
Silver and gold man searcheth out:
Bringeth the ore out of the earth, and darkness
into light.
But where findeth he wisdom?
Where is the place of understanding?
The abyss crieth; it is not in me!
Ocean echoeth back; not in me!
Whence then cometh wisdom?
Where dwelleth understanding?
Hidden from the eyes of the living
Kept secret from the fowls of heaven!
Hell and death answer;
We have heard the rumour thereof from afar!
GOD marketh out the road to it;
GOD knoweth its abiding place!
He beholdeth the ends of the earth;
He surveyeth what is beneath the heavens!
And as he weighed out the winds, and measured
the sea,
And appointed laws to the rain,
And a path to the thunder,
A path to the flashes of the lightning!
Then did he see it,
And he counted it;
He searched into the depth thereof,
And with a line did he compass it round!
But to man he said,
The fear of the Lord is wisdom for thee!
And to avoid evil,
That is thy understanding. [36]
I become convinced, that
religion, as both the cornerstone and the
key-stone of morality,
must have a moral origin; so far at least, that
the evidence of its
doctrines could not, like the truths of abstract
science, be wholly
independent of the will. It were therefore to be
expected, that its
fundamental truth would be such as might be denied;
though only, by the fool,
and even by the fool from the madness of the
heart alone!
The question then
concerning our faith in the existence of a God, not
only as the ground of the
universe by his essence, but as its maker
and judge by his wisdom
and holy will, appeared to stand thus. The
sciential reason, the
objects of which are purely theoretical, remains
neutral, as long as its
name and semblance are not usurped by the
opponents of the doctrine.
But it then becomes an effective ally by
exposing the false show of
demonstration, or by evincing the equal
demonstrability of the
contrary from premises equally logical [37].
The understanding meantime
suggests, the analogy of experience
facilitates, the belief.
Nature excites and recalls it, as by a
perpetual revelation. Our
feelings almost necessitate it; and the law
of conscience peremptorily
commands it. The arguments, that at all
apply to it, are in its
favour; and there is nothing against it, but
its own sublimity. It
could not be intellectually more evident without
becoming morally less
effective; without counteracting its own end by
sacrificing the life of
faith to the cold mechanism of a worth less
because compulsory assent.
The belief of a God and a future state, (if
a passive acquiescence may
be flattered with the name of belief,) does
not indeed always beget a
good heart; but a good heart so naturally
begets the belief, that
the very few exceptions must be regarded as
strange anomalies from
strange and unfortunate circumstances.
From these premises I
proceeded to draw the following conclusions.
First, that having once
fully admitted the existence of an infinite
yet self-conscious
Creator, we are not allowed to ground the
irrationality of any other
article of faith on arguments which would
equally prove that to be
irrational, which we had allowed to be real.
Secondly, that whatever is
deducible from the admission of a self-
comprehending and creative
spirit may be legitimately used in proof of
the possibility of any
further mystery concerning the divine nature.
Possibilitatem
mysteriorum, (Trinitatis, etc.) contra insultus
Infidelium et Haereticorum
a contradictionibus vindico; haud quidem
veritatem, quae
revelatione sola stabiliri possit; says Leibnitz in a
letter to his Duke. He
then adds the following just and important
remark. "In vain will
tradition or texts of scripture be adduced in
support of a doctrine,
donec clava impossibilitatis et contradictionis
e manibus horum Herculum
extorta fuerit. For the heretic will still
reply, that texts, the
literal sense of which is not so much above as
directly against all
reason, must be understood figuratively, as Herod
is a fox, and so
forth."
These principles I held,
philosophically, while in respect of revealed
religion I remained a
zealous Unitarian. I considered the idea of the
Trinity a fair scholastic
inference from the being of God, as a
creative intelligence; and
that it was therefore entitled to the rank
of an esoteric doctrine of
natural religion. But seeing in the same no
practical or moral
bearing, I confined it to the schools of
philosophy. The admission
of the Logos, as hypostasized (that is,
neither a mere attribute,
nor a personification) in no respect removed
my doubts concerning the
Incarnation and the Redemption by the cross;
which I could neither
reconcile in reason with the impassiveness of
the Divine Being, nor in
my moral feelings with the sacred distinction
between things and
persons, the vicarious payment of a debt and the
vicarious expiation of
guilt. A more thorough revolution in my
philosophic principles,
and a deeper insight into my own heart, were
yet wanting. Nevertheless,
I cannot doubt, that the difference of my
metaphysical notions from
those of Unitarians in general contributed
to my final re-conversion
to the whole truth in Christ; even as
according to his own
confession the books of certain Platonic
philosophers (libri
quorundam Platonicorum) commenced the rescue of
St. Augustine's faith from
the same error aggravated by the far darker
accompaniment of the
Manichaean heresy.
While my mind was thus
perplexed, by a gracious providence for which I
can never be sufficiently
grateful, the generous and munificent
patronage of Mr. Josiah,
and Mr. Thomas Wedgwood enabled me to finish
my education in Germany.
Instead of troubling others with my own crude
notions and juvenile
compositions, I was thenceforward better employed
in attempting to store my
own head with the wisdom of others. I made
the best use of my time
and means; and there is therefore no period of
my life on which I can
look back with such unmingled satisfaction.
After acquiring a
tolerable sufficiency in the German language [38] at
Ratzeburg, which with my
voyage and journey thither I have described
in The Friend, I proceeded
through Hanover to Goettingen.
Here I regularly attended
the lectures on physiology in the morning,
and on natural history in
the evening, under Blumenbach, a name as
dear to every Englishman
who has studied at that university, as it is
venerable to men of
science throughout Europe! Eichhorn's lectures on
the New Testament were
repeated to me from notes by a student from
Ratzeburg, a young man of
sound learning and indefatigable industry,
who is now, I believe, a
professor of the oriental languages at
Heidelberg. But my chief
efforts were directed towards a grounded
knowledge of the German
language and literature. From professor
Tychsen I received as many
lessons in the Gothic of Ulphilas as
sufficed to make me
acquainted with its grammar, and the radical words
of most frequent
occurrence; and with the occasional assistance of the
same philosophical
linguist, I read through [39] Ottfried's metrical
paraphrase of the gospel,
and the most important remains of the
Theotiscan, or the
transitional state of the Teutonic language from
the Gothic to the old
German of the Swabian period. Of this period--
(the polished dialect of
which is analogous to that of our Chaucer,
and which leaves the
philosophic student in doubt, whether the
language has not since
then lost more in sweetness and flexibility,
than it has gained in
condensation and copiousness)--I read with
sedulous accuracy the
Minnesinger (or singers of love, the Provencal
poets of the Swabian
court) and the metrical romances; and then
laboured through
sufficient specimens of the master singers, their
degenerate successors; not
however without occasional pleasure from
the rude, yet interesting
strains of Hans Sachs, the cobbler of
Nuremberg. Of this man's
genius five folio volumes with double columns
are extant in print, and
nearly an equal number in manuscript; yet the
indefatigable bard takes
care to inform his readers, that he never
made a shoe the less, but
had virtuously reared a large family by the
labour of his hands.
In Pindar, Chaucer, Dante,
Milton, and many more, we have instances of
the close connection of
poetic genius with the love of liberty and of
genuine reformation. The
moral sense at least will not be outraged, if
I add to the list the name
of this honest shoemaker, (a trade by the
by remarkable for the
production of philosophers and poets).
His poem entitled THE
MORNING STAR, was the very first publication
that appeared in praise
and support of Luther; and an excellent hymn
of Hans Sachs, which has
been deservedly translated into almost all
the European languages,
was commonly sung in the Protestant churches,
whenever the heroic
reformer visited them.
In Luther's own German
writings, and eminently in his translation of
the Bible, the German
language commenced. I mean the language as it is
at present written; that
which is called the High-German, as contra-
distinguished from the
Platt-Teutsch, the dialect on the flat or
northern countries, and
from the Ober-Teutsch, the language of the
middle and Southern
Germany. The High German is indeed a lingua
communis, not actually the
native language of any province, but the
choice and fragrancy of
all the dialects. From this cause it is at
once the most copious and
the most grammatical of all the European
tongues.
Within less than a century
after Luther's death the German was
inundated with pedantic
barbarisms. A few volumes of this period I
read through from motives
of curiosity; for it is not easy to imagine
any thing more fantastic,
than the very appearance of their pages.
Almost every third word is
a Latin word with a Germanized ending, the
Latin portion being always
printed in Roman letters, while in the last
syllable the German
character is retained.
At length, about the year
1620, Opitz arose, whose genius more nearly
resembled that of Dryden
than any other poet, who at present occurs to
my recollection. In the
opinion of Lessing, the most acute of critics,
and of Adelung, the first
of Lexicographers, Opitz, and the Silesian
poets, his followers, not
only restored the language, but still remain
the models of pure
diction. A stranger has no vote on such a question;
but after repeated perusal
of the works of Opitz my feelings justified
the verdict, and I seemed
to have acquired from them a sort of tact
for what is genuine in the
style of later writers.
Of the splendid aera,
which commenced with Gellert, Klopstock, Ramler,
Lessing, and their
compeers, I need not speak. With the opportunities
which I enjoyed, it would
have been disgraceful not to have been
familiar with their
writings; and I have already said as much as the
present biographical
sketch requires concerning the German
philosophers, whose works,
for the greater part, I became acquainted
with at a far later
period.
Soon after my return from
Germany I was solicited to undertake the
literary and political
department in the Morning Post; and I acceded
to the proposal on the
condition that the paper should thenceforwards
be conducted on certain
fixed and announced principles, and that I
should neither be obliged
nor requested to deviate from them in favour
of any party or any event.
In consequence, that journal became and for
many years continued
anti-ministerial indeed, yet with a very
qualified approbation of
the opposition, and with far greater
earnestness and zeal both
anti-Jacobin and anti-Gallican. To this hour
I cannot find reason to
approve of the first war either in its
commencement or its
conduct. Nor can I understand, with what reason
either Mr. Perceval, (whom
I am singular enough to regard as the best
and wisest minister of
this reign,) nor the present Administration,
can be said to have
pursued the plans of Mr. Pitt. The love of their
country, and perseverant
hostility to French principles and French
ambition are indeed
honourable qualities common to them and to their
predecessor. But it
appears to me as clear as the evidence of the
facts can render any
question of history, that the successes of the
Perceval and of the
existing ministry have been owing to their having
pursued measures the
direct contrary to Mr. Pitt's. Such for instance
are the concentration of
the national force to one object; the
abandonment of the
subsidizing policy, so far at least as neither to
goad nor bribe the
continental courts into war, till the convictions
of their subjects had
rendered it a war of their own seeking; and
above all, in their manly
and generous reliance on the good sense of
the English people, and on
that loyalty which is linked to the very
[40] heart of the nation
by the system of credit and the
interdependence of
property.
Be this as it may, I am
persuaded that the Morning Post proved a far
more useful ally to the
Government in its most important objects, in
consequence of its being
generally considered as moderately anti-
ministerial, than if it
had been the avowed eulogist of Mr. Pitt. The
few, whose curiosity or
fancy should lead them to turn over the
journals of that date, may
find a small proof of this in the frequent
charges made by the
Morning Chronicle, that such and such essays or
leading paragraphs had
been sent from the Treasury. The rapid and
unusual increase in the
sale of the Morning Post is a sufficient
pledge, that genuine
impartiality with a respectable portion of
literary talent will
secure the success of a newspaper without the aid
of party or ministerial
patronage. But by impartiality I mean an
honest and enlightened
adherence to a code of intelligible principles
previously announced, and
faithfully referred to in support of every
judgment on men and
events; not indiscriminate abuse, not the
indulgence of an editor's
own malignant passions, and still less, if
that be possible, a
determination to make money by flattering the envy
and cupidity, the
vindictive restlessness and self-conceit of the
half-witted vulgar; a
determination almost fiendish, but which, I have
been informed, has been
boastfully avowed by one man, the most
notorious of these
mob-sycophants! From the commencement of the
Addington administration
to the present day, whatever I have written
in THE MORNING POST, or
(after that paper was transferred to other
proprietors) in THE
COURIER, has been in defence or furtherance of the
measures of Government.
Things of this nature scarce survive that night
That gives them birth; they perish in the sight;
Cast by so far from after-life, that there
Can scarcely aught be said, but that they were!
Yet in these labours I
employed, and, in the belief of partial friends
wasted, the prime and
manhood of my intellect. Most assuredly, they
added nothing to my
fortune or my reputation. The industry of the week
supplied the necessities
of the week. From government or the friends
of government I not only
never received remuneration, nor ever
expected it; but I was
never honoured with a single acknowledgment, or
expression of
satisfaction. Yet the retrospect is far from painful or
matter of regret. I am not
indeed silly enough to take as any thing
more than a violent
hyperbole of party debate, Mr. Fox's assertion
that the late war (I trust
that the epithet is not prematurely
applied) was a war
produced by the Morning Post; or I should be proud
to have the words
inscribed on my tomb. As little do I regard the
circumstance, that I was a
specified object of Buonaparte's resentment
during my residence in
Italy in consequence of those essays in the
Morning Post during the
peace of Amiens. Of this I was warned,
directly, by Baron Von
Humboldt, the Prussian Plenipotentiary, who at
that time was the minister
of the Prussian court at Rome; and
indirectly, through his
secretary, by Cardinal Fesch himself. Nor do I
lay any greater weight on
the confirming fact, that an order for my
arrest was sent from
Paris, from which danger I was rescued by the
kindness of a noble
Benedictine, and the gracious connivance of that
good old man, the present
Pope. For the late tyrant's vindictive
appetite was omnivorous,
and preyed equally on a Duc d'Enghien [41],
and the writer of a
newspaper paragraph. Like a true vulture [42],
Napoleon with an eye not
less telescopic, and with a taste equally
coarse in his ravin, could
descend from the most dazzling heights to
pounce on the leveret in
the brake, or even on the field mouse amid
the grass. But I do derive
a gratification from the knowledge, that my
essays contributed to
introduce the practice of placing the questions
and events of the day in a
moral point of view; in giving a dignity to
particular measures by
tracing their policy or impolicy to permanent
principles, and an
interest to principles by the application of them
to individual measures. In
Mr. Burke's writings indeed the germs of
almost all political
truths may be found. But I dare assume to myself
the merit of having first
explicitly defined and analyzed the nature
of Jacobinism; and that in
distinguishing the Jacobin from the
republican, the democrat,
and the mere demagogue, I both rescued the
word from remaining a mere
term of abuse, and put on their guard many
honest minds, who even in
their heat of zeal against Jacobinism,
admitted or supported
principles from which the worst parts of that
system may be legitimately
deduced. That these are not necessary
practical results of such
principles, we owe to that fortunate
inconsequence of our
nature, which permits the heart to rectify the
errors of the
understanding. The detailed examination of the consular
Government and its
pretended constitution, and the proof given by me,
that it was a consummate
despotism in masquerade, extorted a
recantation even from the
Morning Chronicle, which had previously
extolled this constitution
as the perfection of a wise and regulated
liberty. On every great
occurrence I endeavoured to discover in past
history the event, that
most nearly resembled it. I procured, wherever
it was possible, the
contemporary historians, memorialists, and
pamphleteers. Then fairly
subtracting the points of difference from
those of likeness, as the
balance favoured the former or the latter, I
conjectured that the
result would be the same or different. In the
series of essays entitled
"A comparison of France under Napoleon with
Rome under the first
Caesars," and in those which followed "On the
probable final restoration
of the Bourbons," I feel myself authorized
to affirm, by the effect
produced on many intelligent men, that, were
the dates wanting, it
might have been suspected that the essays had
been written within the
last twelve months. The same plan I pursued at
the commencement of the
Spanish revolution, and with the same success,
taking the war of the
United Provinces with Philip II as the ground
work of the comparison. I
have mentioned this from no motives of
vanity, nor even from
motives of self defence, which would justify a
certain degree of egotism,
especially if it be considered, how often
and grossly I have been
attacked for sentiments, which I have exerted
my best powers to confute
and expose, and how grievously these charges
acted to my disadvantage
while I was in Malta. Or rather they would
have done so, if my own
feelings had not precluded the wish of a
settled establishment in
that island. But I have mentioned it from the
full persuasion that,
armed with the two-fold knowledge of history and
the human mind, a man will
scarcely err in his judgment concerning the
sum total of any future
national event, if he have been able to
procure the original
documents of the past, together with authentic
accounts of the present,
and if he have a philosophic tact for what is
truly important in facts,
and in most instances therefore for such
facts as the dignity of
history has excluded from the volumes of our
modern compilers, by the
courtesy of the age entitled historians.
To have lived in vain must
be a painful thought to any man, and
especially so to him who
has made literature his profession. I should
therefore rather condole
than be angry with the mind, which could
attribute to no worthier
feelings than those of vanity or self-love,
the satisfaction which I
acknowledged myself to have enjoyed from the
republication of my
political essays (either whole or as extracts) not
only in many of our own
provincial papers, but in the federal journals
throughout America. I
regarded it as some proof of my not having
laboured altogether in
vain, that from the articles written by me
shortly before and at the
commencement of the late unhappy war with
America, not only the
sentiments were adopted, but in some instances
the very language, in
several of the Massachusetts state papers.
But no one of these
motives nor all conjointly would have impelled me
to a statement so
uncomfortable to my own feelings, had not my
character been repeatedly
attacked, by an unjustifiable intrusion on
private life, as of a man
incorrigibly idle, and who intrusted not
only with ample talents,
but favoured with unusual opportunities of
improving them, had
nevertheless suffered them to rust away without
any efficient exertion,
either for his own good or that of his fellow
creatures. Even if the
compositions, which I have made public, and
that too in a form the
most certain of an extensive circulation,
though the least
flattering to an author's self-love, had been
published in books, they
would have filled a respectable number of
volumes, though every
passage of merely temporary interest were
omitted. My prose writings
have been charged with a disproportionate
demand on the attention;
with an excess of refinement in the mode of
arriving at truths; with
beating the ground for that which might have
been run down by the eye;
with the length and laborious construction
of my periods; in short
with obscurity and the love of paradox. But my
severest critics have not
pretended to have found in my compositions
triviality, or traces of a
mind that shrunk from the toil of thinking.
No one has charged me with
tricking out in other words the thoughts of
others, or with hashing up
anew the cramben jam decies coctam of
English literature or
philosophy. Seldom have I written that in a day,
the acquisition or
investigation of which had not cost me the previous
labour of a month.
But are books the only
channel through which the stream of
intellectual usefulness
can flow? Is the diffusion of truth to be
estimated by publications;
or publications by the truth, which they
diffuse or at least
contain? I speak it in the excusable warmth of a
mind stung by an
accusation, which has not only been advanced in
reviews of the widest
circulation, not only registered in the bulkiest
works of periodical
literature, but by frequency of repetition has
become an admitted fact in
private literary circles, and thoughtlessly
repeated by too many who
call themselves my friends, and whose own
recollections ought to
have suggested a contrary testimony. Would that
the criterion of a
scholar's utility were the number and moral value
of the truths, which he
has been the means of throwing into the
general circulation; or
the number and value of the minds, whom by his
conversation or letters,
he has excited into activity, and supplied
with the germs of their
after-growth! A distinguished rank might not
indeed, even then, be awarded
to my exertions; but I should dare look
forward with confidence to
an honourable acquittal. I should dare
appeal to the numerous and
respectable audiences, which at different
times and in different
places honoured my lecture rooms with their
attendance, whether the
points of view from which the subjects treated
of were surveyed,--whether
the grounds of my reasoning were such, as
they had heard or read
elsewhere, or have since found in previous
publications. I can
conscientiously declare, that the complete success
of the REMORSE on the
first night of its representation did not give
me as great or as
heart-felt a pleasure, as the observation that the
pit and boxes were crowded
with faces familiar to me, though of
individuals whose names I
did not know, and of whom I knew nothing,
but that they had attended
one or other of my courses of lectures. It
is an excellent though
perhaps somewhat vulgar proverb, that there are
cases where a man may be
as well "in for a pound as for a penny." To
those, who from ignorance
of the serious injury I have received from
this rumour of having
dreamed away my life to no purpose, injuries
which I unwillingly
remember at all, much less am disposed to record
in a sketch of my literary
life; or to those, who from their own
feelings, or the
gratification they derive from thinking
contemptuously of others,
would like job's comforters attribute these
complaints, extorted from
me by the sense of wrong, to self conceit or
presumptuous vanity, I
have already furnished such ample materials,
that I shall gain nothing
by withholding the remainder. I will not
therefore hesitate to ask
the consciences of those, who from their
long acquaintance with me
and with the circumstances are best
qualified to decide or be
my judges, whether the restitution of the
suum cuique would increase
or detract from my literary reputation. In
this exculpation I hope to
be understood as speaking of myself
comparatively, and in
proportion to the claims, which others are
entitled to make on my
time or my talents. By what I have effected, am
I to be judged by my
fellow men; what I could have done, is a question
for my own conscience. On
my own account I may perhaps have had
sufficient reason to
lament my deficiency in self-control, and the
neglect of concentering my
powers to the realization of some permanent
work. But to verse rather
than to prose, if to either, belongs the
voice of mourning for
Keen pangs of Love, awakening as a babe
Turbulent, with an outcry in the heart;
And fears self-willed that shunned the eye of
hope;
And hope that scarce would know itself from
fear;
Sense of past youth, and manhood come in vain,
And genius given and knowledge won in vain;
And all which I had culled in wood-walks wild,
And all which patient toil had reared, and all,
Commune with thee had opened out--but flowers
Strewed on my corpse, and borne upon my bier,
In the same coffin, for the self-same grave!
These will exist, for the
future, I trust, only in the poetic strains,
which the feelings at the
time called forth. In those only, gentle
reader,
Affectus animi varios, bellumque sequacis
Perlegis invidiae, curasque revolvis inanes,
Quas humilis tenero stylus olim effudit in aevo.
Perlegis et lacrymas, et quod pharetratus acuta
Ille puer puero fecit mihi cuspide vulnus.
Omnia paulatim consumit longior aetas,
Vivendoque simul morimur, rapimurque manendo.
Ipse mihi collatus enim non ille videbor;
Frons
alia est, moresque alii, nova mentis imago,
Vox aliudque sonat--Jamque observatio vitae
Multa dedit--lugere nihil, ferre omnia; jamque
Paulatim lacrymas rerum experientia tersit.
CHAPTER XI
An affectionate
exhortation to those who in early life feel themselves
disposed to become
authors.
It was a favourite remark
of the late Mr. Whitbread's, that no man
does any thing from a
single motive. The separate motives, or rather
moods of mind, which
produced the preceding reflections and anecdotes
have been laid open to the
reader in each separate instance. But an
interest in the welfare of
those, who at the present time may be in
circumstances not
dissimilar to my own at my first entrance into life,
has been the constant
accompaniment, and (as it were) the under-song
of all my feelings.
Whitehead exerting the prerogative of his
laureateship addressed to
youthful poets a poetic Charge, which is
perhaps the best, and
certainly the most interesting, of his works.
With no other privilege
than that of sympathy and sincere good wishes,
I would address an
affectionate exhortation to the youthful literati,
grounded on my own
experience. It will be but short; for the
beginning, middle, and end
converge to one charge: never pursue
literature as a trade.
With the exception of one extraordinary man, I
have never known an
individual, least of all an individual of genius,
healthy or happy without a
profession, that is, some regular
employment, which does not
depend on the will of the moment, and which
can be carried on so far
mechanically that an average quantum only of
health, spirits, and
intellectual exertion are requisite to its
faithful discharge. Three
hours of leisure, unannoyed by any alien
anxiety, and looked
forward to with delight as a change and
recreation, will suffice
to realize in literature a larger product of
what is truly genial, than
weeks of compulsion. Money, and immediate
reputation form only an
arbitrary and accidental end of literary
labour. The hope of
increasing them by any given exertion will often
prove a stimulant to
industry; but the necessity of acquiring them
will in all works of
genius convert the stimulant into a narcotic.
Motives by excess reverse
their very nature, and instead of exciting,
stun and stupify the mind.
For it is one contradistinction of genius
from talent, that its
predominant end is always comprised in the
means; and this is one of
the many points, which establish an analogy
between genius and virtue.
Now though talents may exist without
genius, yet as genius
cannot exist, certainly not manifest itself,
without talents, I would
advise every scholar, who feels the genial
power working within him,
so far to make a division between the two,
as that he should devote
his talents to the acquirement of competence
in some known trade or
profession, and his genius to objects of his
tranquil and unbiassed
choice; while the consciousness of being
actuated in both alike by
the sincere desire to perform his duty, will
alike ennoble both.
"My dear young friend," (I would say) "suppose
yourself established in
any honourable occupation. From the
manufactory or counting
house, from the law-court, or from having
visited your last patient,
you return at evening,
Dear tranquil time, when the sweet sense of Home
Is sweetest------
to your family, prepared
for its social enjoyments, with the very
countenances of your wife
and children brightened, and their voice of
welcome made doubly
welcome, by the knowledge that, as far as they are
concerned, you have
satisfied the demands of the day by the labour of
the day. Then, when you
retire into your study, in the books on your
shelves you revisit so
many venerable friends with whom you can
converse. Your own spirit
scarcely less free from personal anxieties
than the great minds, that
in those books are still living for you!
Even your writing desk
with its blank paper and all its other
implements will appear as
a chain of flowers, capable of linking your
feelings as well as
thoughts to events and characters past or to come;
not a chain of iron, which
binds you down to think of the future and
the remote by recalling
the claims and feelings of the peremptory
present. But why should I
say retire? The habits of active life and
daily intercourse with the
stir of the world will tend to give you
such self-command, that
the presence of your family will be no
interruption. Nay, the
social silence, or undisturbing voices of a
wife or sister will be
like a restorative atmosphere, or soft music
which moulds a dream
without becoming its object. If facts are
required to prove the
possibility of combining weighty performances in
literature with full and
independent employment, the works of Cicero
and Xenophon among the
ancients; of Sir Thomas More, Bacon, Baxter, or
to refer at once to later
and contemporary instances, Darwin and
Roscoe, are at once
decisive of the question."
But all men may not dare
promise themselves a sufficiency of self-
control for the imitation
of those examples: though strict scrutiny
should always be made,
whether indolence, restlessness, or a vanity
impatient for immediate
gratification, have not tampered with the
judgment and assumed the
vizard of humility for the purposes of self-
delusion. Still the Church
presents to every man of learning and
genius a profession, in
which he may cherish a rational hope of being
able to unite the widest
schemes of literary utility with the
strictest performance of
professional duties. Among the numerous
blessings of Christianity,
the introduction of an established Church
makes an especial claim on
the gratitude of scholars and philosophers;
in England, at least,
where the principles of Protestantism have
conspired with the freedom
of the government to double all its
salutary powers by the
removal of its abuses.
That not only the maxims,
but the grounds of a pure morality, the mere
fragments of which
------the lofty grave tragedians taught
In chorus or iambic, teachers best
Of moral prudence, with delight received
In brief sententious precepts; [43]
and that the sublime
truths of the divine unity and attributes, which
a Plato found most hard to
learn and deemed it still more difficult to
reveal; that these should
have become the almost hereditary property
of childhood and poverty,
of the hovel and the workshop; that even to
the unlettered they sound
as common place, is a phaenomenon, which
must withhold all but
minds of the most vulgar cast from undervaluing
the services even of the
pulpit and the reading desk. Yet those, who
confine the efficiency of
an established Church to its public offices,
can hardly be placed in a
much higher rank of intellect. That to every
parish throughout the
kingdom there is transplanted a germ of
civilization; that in the
remotest villages there is a nucleus, round
which the capabilities of
the place may crystallize and brighten; a
model sufficiently
superior to excite, yet sufficiently near to
encourage and facilitate,
imitation; this, the unobtrusive, continuous
agency of a protestant
church establishment, this it is, which the
patriot, and the
philanthropist, who would fain unite the love of
peace with the faith in
the progressive melioration of mankind, cannot
estimate at too high a
price. It cannot be valued with the gold of
Ophir, with the precious
onyx, or the sapphire. No mention shall be
made of coral, or of
pearls: for the price of wisdom is above rubies.
The clergyman is with his
parishioners and among them; he is neither
in the cloistered cell,
nor in the wilderness, but a neighbour and a
family-man, whose
education and rank admit him to the mansion of the
rich landholder, while his
duties make him the frequent visitor of the
farmhouse and the cottage.
He is, or he may become, connected, with
the families of his parish
or its vicinity by marriage. And among the
instances of the
blindness, or at best of the short-sightedness, which
it is the nature of
cupidity to inflict, I know few more striking than
the clamours of the
farmers against Church property. Whatever was not
paid to the clergyman
would inevitably at the next lease be paid to
the landholder, while, as
the case at present stands, the revenues of
the Church are in some
sort the reversionary property of every family,
that may have a member
educated for the Church, or a daughter that may
marry a clergyman. Instead
of being foreclosed and immovable, it is in
fact the only species of
landed property, that is essentially moving
and circulative. That there
exist no inconveniences, who will pretend
to assert? But I have yet
to expect the proof, that the inconveniences
are greater in this than
in any other species; or that either the
farmers or the clergy
would be benefited by forcing the latter to
become either Trullibers
or salaried placemen. Nay, I do not hesitate
to declare my firm
persuasion, that whatever reason of discontent the
farmers may assign, the
true cause is this; that they may cheat the
parson, but cannot cheat
the steward; and that they are disappointed,
if they should have been
able to withhold only two pounds less than
the legal claim, having
expected to withhold five. At all events,
considered relatively to
the encouragement of learning and genius, the
establishment presents a
patronage at once so effective and
unburdensome, that it
would be impossible to afford the like or equal
in any but a Christian and
Protestant country. There is scarce a
department of human
knowledge without some bearing on the various
critical, historical,
philosophical and moral truths, in which the
scholar must be interested
as a clergyman; no one pursuit worthy of a
man of genius, which may
not be followed without incongruity. To give
the history of the Bible
as a book, would be little less than to
relate the origin or first
excitement of all the literature and
science, that we now
possess. The very decorum, which the profession
imposes, is favourable to
the best purposes of genius, and tends to
counteract its most
frequent defects. Finally, that man must be
deficient in sensibility,
who would not find an incentive to emulation
in the great and burning
lights, which in a long series have
illustrated the church of
England; who would not hear from within an
echo to the voice from
their sacred shrines,
Et Pater Aeneas et avunculus excitat Hector.
But, whatever be the
profession or trade chosen, the advantages are
many and important,
compared with the state of a mere literary man,
who in any degree depends
on the sale of his works for the necessaries
and comforts of life. In
the former a man lives in sympathy with the
world, in which he lives.
At least he acquires a better and quicker
tact for the knowledge of
that, with which men in general can
sympathize. He learns to
manage his genius more prudently and
efficaciously. His powers
and acquirements gain him likewise more real
admiration; for they
surpass the legitimate expectations of others. He
is something besides an
author, and is not therefore considered merely
as an author. The hearts
of men are open to him, as to one of their
own class; and whether he
exerts himself or not in the conversational
circles of his
acquaintance, his silence is not attributed to pride,
nor his communicativeness
to vanity. To these advantages I will
venture to add a superior
chance of happiness in domestic life, were
it only that it is as
natural for the man to be out of the circle of
his household during the
day, as it is meritorious for the woman to
remain for the most part
within it. But this subject involves points
of consideration so
numerous and so delicate, and would not only
permit, but require such
ample documents from the biography of
literary men, that I now
merely allude to it in transitu. When the
same circumstance has
occurred at very different times to very
different persons, all of
whom have some one thing in common; there is
reason to suppose that
such circumstance is not merely attributable to
the persons concerned, but
is in some measure occasioned by the one
point in common to them
all. Instead of the vehement and almost
slanderous dehortation
from marriage, which the Misogyne, Boccaccio
[44] addresses to literary
men, I would substitute the simple advice:
be not merely a man of
letters! Let literature be an honourable
augmentation to your arms;
but not constitute the coat, or fill the
escutcheon!
To objections from
conscience I can of course answer in no other way,
than by requesting the
youthful objector (as I have already done on a
former occasion) to ascertain
with strict self-examination, whether
other influences may not
be at work; whether spirits, "not of health,"
and with whispers
"not from heaven," may not be walking in the
twilight of his
consciousness. Let him catalogue his scruples, and
reduce them to a distinct
intelligible form; let him be certain, that
he has read with a docile
mind and favourable dispositions the best
and most fundamental works
on the subject; that he has had both mind
and heart opened to the
great and illustrious qualities of the many
renowned characters, who
had doubted like himself, and whose
researches had ended in
the clear conviction, that their doubts had
been groundless, or at
least in no proportion to the counter-weight.
Happy will it be for such
a man, if among his contemporaries elder
than himself he should
meet with one, who, with similar powers and
feelings as acute as his
own, had entertained the same scruples; had
acted upon them; and who
by after-research (when the step was, alas!
irretrievable, but for
that very reason his research undeniably
disinterested) had
discovered himself to have quarrelled with received
opinions only to embrace
errors, to have left the direction tracked
out for him on the high
road of honourable exertion, only to deviate
into a labyrinth, where
when he had wandered till his head was giddy,
his best good fortune was
finally to have found his way out again, too
late for prudence though
not too late for conscience or for truth!
Time spent in such delay
is time won: for manhood in the meantime is
advancing, and with it
increase of knowledge, strength of judgment,
and above all, temperance
of feelings. And even if these should effect
no change, yet the delay
will at least prevent the final approval of
the decision from being
alloyed by the inward censure of the rashness
and vanity, by which it
had been precipitated. It would be a sort of
irreligion, and scarcely
less than a libel on human nature to believe,
that there is any
established and reputable profession or employment,
in which a man may not
continue to act with honesty and honour; and
doubtless there is
likewise none, which may not at times present
temptations to the
contrary. But wofully will that man find himself
mistaken, who imagines
that the profession of literature, or (to speak
more plainly) the trade of
authorship, besets its members with fewer
or with less insidious
temptations, than the Church, the law, or the
different branches of
commerce. But I have treated sufficiently on
this unpleasant subject in
an early chapter of this volume. I will
conclude the present
therefore with a short extract from Herder, whose
name I might have added to
the illustrious list of those, who have
combined the successful
pursuit of the Muses, not only with the
faithful discharge, but
with the highest honours and honourable
emoluments of an
established profession. The translation the reader
will find in a note below
[45]. "Am sorgfaeltigsten, meiden sie die
Autorschaft. Zu frueh oder
unmaessig gebraucht, macht sie den Kopf
wueste and das Herz leer;
wenn sie auch sonst keine ueble Folgen
gaebe. Ein Mensch, der nur
lieset um zu druecken, lieset
wahrscheinlich uebel; und
wer jeden Gedanken, der ihm aufstosst, durch
Feder and Presse
versendet, hat sie in kurzer Zeit alle versandt, und
wird bald ein blosser
Diener der Druckerey, ein Buchstabensetzer
werden."
CHAPTER XII
A chapter of requests and
premonitions concerning the perusal or
omission of the chapter
that follows.
In the perusal of philosophical
works I have been greatly benefited by
a resolve, which, in the
antithetic form and with the allowed
quaintness of an adage or
maxim, I have been accustomed to word thus:
until you understand a
writer's ignorance, presume yourself ignorant
of his understanding. This
golden rule of mine does, I own, resemble
those of Pythagoras in its
obscurity rather than in its depth. If
however the reader will
permit me to be my own Hierocles, I trust,
that he will find its
meaning fully explained by the following
instances. I have now
before me a treatise of a religious fanatic,
full of dreams and
supernatural experiences. I see clearly the
writer's grounds, and
their hollowness. I have a complete insight into
the causes, which through
the medium of his body has acted on his
mind; and by application
of received and ascertained laws I can
satisfactorily explain to
my own reason all the strange incidents,
which the writer records
of himself. And this I can do without
suspecting him of any
intentional falsehood. As when in broad day-
light a man tracks the
steps of a traveller, who had lost his way in a
fog or by a treacherous
moonshine, even so, and with the same tranquil
sense of certainty, can I
follow the traces of this bewildered
visionary. I understand
his ignorance.
On the other hand, I have
been re-perusing with the best energies of
my mind the TIMAEUS of
Plato. Whatever I comprehend, impresses me with
a reverential sense of the
author's genius; but there is a
considerable portion of the
work, to which I can attach no consistent
meaning. In other
treatises of the same philosopher, intended for the
average comprehensions of
men, I have been delighted with the masterly
good sense, with the
perspicuity of the language, and the aptness of
the inductions. I
recollect likewise, that numerous passages in this
author, which I thoroughly
comprehend, were formerly no less
unintelligible to me, than
the passages now in question. It would, I
am aware, be quite
fashionable to dismiss them at once as Platonic
jargon. But this I cannot
do with satisfaction to my own mind, because
I have sought in vain for
causes adequate to the solution of the
assumed inconsistency. I
have no insight into the possibility of a man
so eminently wise, using
words with such half-meanings to himself, as
must perforce pass into no
meaning to his readers. When in addition to
the motives thus suggested
by my own reason, I bring into distinct
remembrance the number and
the series of great men, who, after long
and zealous study of these
works had joined in honouring the name of
Plato with epithets, that
almost transcend humanity, I feel, that a
contemptuous verdict on my
part might argue want of modesty, but would
hardly be received by the
judicious, as evidence of superior
penetration. Therefore,
utterly baffled in all my attempts to
understand the ignorance
of Plato, I conclude myself ignorant of his
understanding.
In lieu of the various
requests which the anxiety of authorship
addresses to the unknown
reader, I advance but this one; that he will
either pass over the
following chapter altogether, or read the whole
connectedly. The fairest
part of the most beautiful body will appear
deformed and monstrous, if
dissevered from its place in the organic
whole. Nay, on delicate
subjects, where a seemingly trifling
difference of more or less
may constitute a difference in kind, even a
faithful display of the
main and supporting ideas, if yet they are
separated from the forms
by which they are at once clothed and
modified, may perchance
present a skeleton indeed; but a skeleton to
alarm and deter. Though I
might find numerous precedents, I shall not
desire the reader to strip
his mind of all prejudices, nor to keep all
prior systems out of view
during his examination of the present. For
in truth, such requests
appear to me not much unlike the advice given
to hypochondriacal
patients in Dr. Buchan's domestic medicine;
videlicet, to preserve
themselves uniformly tranquil and in good
spirits. Till I had discovered
the art of destroying the memory a
parte post, without injury
to its future operations, and without
detriment to the judgment,
I should suppress the request as premature;
and therefore, however
much I may wish to be read with an unprejudiced
mind, I do not presume to
state it as a necessary condition.
The extent of my daring is
to suggest one criterion, by which it may
be rationally conjectured
beforehand, whether or no a reader would
lose his time, and perhaps
his temper, in the perusal of this, or any
other treatise constructed
on similar principles. But it would be
cruelly misinterpreted, as
implying the least disrespect either for
the moral or intellectual
qualities of the individuals thereby
precluded. The criterion
is this: if a man receives as fundamental
facts, and therefore of
course indemonstrable and incapable of further
analysis, the general
notions of matter, spirit, soul, body, action,
passiveness, time, space,
cause and effect, consciousness, perception,
memory and habit; if he
feels his mind completely at rest concerning
all these, and is
satisfied, if only he can analyse all other notions
into some one or more of
these supposed elements with plausible
subordination and apt
arrangement: to such a mind I would as
courteously as possible
convey the hint, that for him the chapter was
not written.
Vir bonus es, doctus, prudens; ast haud tibi
spiro.
For these terms do in
truth include all the difficulties, which the
human mind can propose for
solution. Taking them therefore in mass,
and unexamined, it
required only a decent apprenticeship in logic, to
draw forth their contents
in all forms and colours, as the professors
of legerdemain at our
village fairs pull out ribbon after ribbon from
their mouths. And not more
difficult is it to reduce them back again
to their different genera.
But though this analysis is highly useful
in rendering our knowledge
more distinct, it does not really add to
it. It does not increase,
though it gives us a greater mastery over,
the wealth which we before
possessed. For forensic purposes, for all
the established
professions of society, this is sufficient. But for
philosophy in its highest
sense as the science of ultimate truths, and
therefore scientia
scientiarum, this mere analysis of terms is
preparative only, though
as a preparative discipline indispensable.
Still less dare a
favourable perusal be anticipated from the
proselytes of that
compendious philosophy, which talking of mind but
thinking of brick and
mortar, or other images equally abstracted from
body, contrives a theory
of spirit by nicknaming matter, and in a few
hours can qualify its
dullest disciples to explain the omne scibile by
reducing all things to
impressions, ideas, and sensations.
But it is time to tell the
truth; though it requires some courage to
avow it in an age and
country, in which disquisitions on all subjects,
not privileged to adopt
technical terms or scientific symbols, must be
addressed to the Public. I
say then, that it is neither possible nor
necessary for all men, nor
for many, to be philosophers. There is a
philosophic (and inasmuch
as it is actualized by an effort of freedom,
an artificial)
consciousness, which lies beneath or (as it were)
behind the spontaneous
consciousness natural to all reflecting beings.
As the elder Romans
distinguished their northern provinces into Cis-
Alpine and Trans-Alpine,
so may we divide all the objects of human
knowledge into those on
this side, and those on the other side of the
spontaneous consciousness;
citra et trans conscientiam communem. The
latter is exclusively the
domain of pure philosophy, which is
therefore properly
entitled transcendental, in order to discriminate
it at once, both from mere
reflection and representation on the one
hand, and on the other
from those flights of lawless speculation
which, abandoned by all
distinct consciousness, because transgressing
the bounds and purposes of
our intellectual faculties, are justly
condemned, as transcendent
[46]. The first range of hills, that
encircles the scanty vale
of human life, is the horizon for the
majority of its
inhabitants. On its ridges the common sun is born and
departs. From them the
stars rise, and touching them they vanish. By
the many, even this range,
the natural limit and bulwark of the vale,
is but imperfectly known.
Its higher ascents are too often hidden by
mists and clouds from
uncultivated swamps, which few have courage or
curiosity to penetrate. To
the multitude below these vapours appear,
now as the dark haunts of
terrific agents, on which none may intrude
with impunity; and now all
aglow, with colours not their own, they are
gazed at as the splendid
palaces of happiness and power. But in all
ages there have been a
few, who measuring and sounding the rivers of
the vale at the feet of
their furthest inaccessible falls have
learned, that the sources
must be far higher and far inward; a few,
who even in the level
streams have detected elements, which neither
the vale itself nor the
surrounding mountains contained or could
supply [47]. How and
whence to these thoughts, these strong
probabilities, the
ascertaining vision, the intuitive knowledge may
finally supervene, can be
learnt only by the fact. I might oppose to
the question the words
with which [48] Plotinus supposes Nature to
answer a similar
difficulty. "Should any one interrogate her, how she
works, if graciously she
vouchsafe to listen and speak, she will
reply, it behoves thee not
to disquiet me with interrogatories, but to
understand in silence,
even as I am silent, and work without words."
Likewise in the fifth book
of the fifth Ennead, speaking of the
highest and intuitive
knowledge as distinguished from the discursive,
or in the language of
Wordsworth,
"The vision and the faculty divine;"
he says: "it is not
lawful to inquire from whence it sprang, as if it
were a thing subject to
place and motion, for it neither approached
hither, nor again departs
from hence to some other place; but it
either appears to us or it
does not appear. So that we ought not to
pursue it with a view of
detecting its secret source, but to watch in
quiet till it suddenly
shines upon us; preparing ourselves for the
blessed spectacle as the
eye waits patiently for the rising sun." They
and they only can acquire
the philosophic imagination, the sacred
power of self-intuition,
who within themselves can interpret and
understand the symbol,
that the wings of the air-sylph are forming
within the skin of the
caterpillar; those only, who feel in their own
spirits the same instinct,
which impels the chrysalis of the horned
fly to leave room in its
involucrum for antenna, yet to come. They
know and feel, that the
potential works in them, even as the actual
works on them! In short,
all the organs of sense are framed for a
corresponding world of
sense; and we have it. All the organs of spirit
are framed for a
correspondent world of spirit: though the latter
organs are not developed
in all alike. But they exist in all, and
their first appearance
discloses itself in the moral being. How else
could it be, that even
worldlings, not wholly debased, will
contemplate the man of
simple and disinterested goodness with
contradictory feelings of
pity and respect? "Poor man! he is not made
for this world." Oh!
herein they utter a prophecy of universal
fulfilment; for man must
either rise or sink.
It is the essential mark
of the true philosopher to rest satisfied
with no imperfect light,
as long as the impossibility of attaining a
fuller knowledge has not
been demonstrated. That the common
consciousness itself will
furnish proofs by its own direction, that it
is connected with
master-currents below the surface, I shall merely
assume as a postulate pro
tempore. This having been granted, though
but in expectation of the
argument, I can safely deduce from it the
equal truth of my former
assertion, that philosophy cannot be
intelligible to all, even
of the most learned and cultivated classes.
A system, the first
principle of which it is to render the mind
intuitive of the spiritual
in man (i.e. of that which lies on the
other side of our natural
consciousness) must needs have a great
obscurity for those, who
have never disciplined and strengthened this
ulterior consciousness. It
must in truth be a land of darkness, a
perfect Anti-Goshen, for
men to whom the noblest treasures of their
own being are reported
only through the imperfect translation of
lifeless and sightless
motions. Perhaps, in great part, through words
which are but the shadows
of notions; even as the notional
understanding itself is
but the shadowy abstraction of living and
actual truth. On the
IMMEDIATE, which dwells in every man, and on the
original intuition, or
absolute affirmation of it, (which is likewise
in every man, but does not
in every man rise into consciousness) all
the certainty of our
knowledge depends; and this becomes intelligible
to no man by the ministry
of mere words from without. The medium, by
which spirits understand
each other, is not the surrounding air; but
the freedom which they
possess in common, as the common ethereal
element of their being,
the tremulous reciprocations of which
propagate themselves even
to the inmost of the soul. Where the spirit
of a man is not filled
with the consciousness of freedom (were it only
from its restlessness, as
of one still struggling in bondage) all
spiritual intercourse is
interrupted, not only with others, but even
with himself. No wonder
then, that he remains incomprehensible to
himself as well as to
others. No wonder, that, in the fearful desert
of his consciousness, he
wearies himself out with empty words, to
which no friendly echo
answers, either from his own heart, or the
heart of a fellow being;
or bewilders himself in the pursuit of
notional phantoms, the
mere refractions from unseen and distant truths
through the distorting
medium of his own unenlivened and stagnant
understanding! To remain
unintelligible to such a mind, exclaims
Schelling on a like
occasion, is honour and a good name before God and
man.
The history of philosophy
(the same writer observes) contains
instances of systems,
which for successive generations have remained
enigmatic. Such he deems
the system of Leibnitz, whom another writer
(rashly I think, and
invidiously) extols as the only philosopher, who
was himself deeply
convinced of his own doctrines. As hitherto
interpreted, however, they
have not produced the effect, which
Leibnitz himself, in a
most instructive passage, describes as the
criterion of a true
philosophy; namely, that it would at once explain
and collect the fragments
of truth scattered through systems
apparently the most
incongruous. The truth, says he, is diffused more
widely than is commonly
believed; but it is often painted, yet oftener
masked, and is sometimes
mutilated and sometimes, alas! in close
alliance with mischievous
errors. The deeper, however, we penetrate
into the ground of things,
the more truth we discover in the doctrines
of the greater number of
the philosophical sects. The want of
substantial reality in the
objects of the senses, according to the
sceptics; the harmonies or
numbers, the prototypes and ideas, to which
the Pythagoreans and
Platonists reduced all things: the ONE and ALL of
Parmenides and Plotinus,
without [49] Spinozism; the necessary
connection of things
according to the Stoics, reconcilable with the
spontaneity of the other
schools; the vital-philosophy of the
Cabalists and Hermetists,
who assumed the universality of sensation;
the substantial forms and
entelechies of Aristotle and the schoolmen,
together with the
mechanical solution of all particular phaenomena
according to Democritus
and the recent philosophers--all these we
shall find united in one
perspective central point, which shows
regularity and a
coincidence of all the parts in the very object,
which from every other
point of view must appear confused and
distorted. The spirit of
sectarianism has been hitherto our fault, and
the cause of our failures.
We have imprisoned our own conceptions by
the lines, which we have
drawn, in order to exclude the conceptions of
others. J'ai trouve que la
plupart des Sectes ont raison dans une
bonne partie de ce
qu'elles avancent, mais non pas tant en ce qu'elles
nient.
A system, which aims to
deduce the memory with all the other functions
of intelligence, must of
course place its first position from beyond
the memory, and anterior
to it, otherwise the principle of solution
would be itself a part of
the problem to be solved. Such a position
therefore must, in the
first instance be demanded, and the first
question will be, by what
right is it demanded? On this account I
think it expedient to make
some preliminary remarks on the
introduction of Postulates
in philosophy. The word postulate is
borrowed from the science
of mathematics [50]. In geometry the primary
construction is not
demonstrated, but postulated. This first and most
simple construction in
space is the point in motion, or the line.
Whether the point is moved
in one and the same direction, or whether
its direction is
continually changed, remains as yet undetermined. But
if the direction of the
point have been determined, it is either by a
point without it, and then
there arises the straight line which
incloses no space; or the
direction of the point is not determined by
a point without it, and
then it must flow back again on itself, that
is, there arises a
cyclical line, which does enclose a space. If the
straight line be assumed
as the positive, the cyclical is then the
negation of the straight.
It is a line, which at no point strikes out
into the straight, but
changes its direction continuously. But if the
primary line be conceived
as undetermined, and the straight line as
determined throughout,
then the cyclical is the third compounded of
both. It is at once
undetermined and determined; undetermined through
any point without, and
determined through itself. Geometry therefore
supplies philosophy with
the example of a primary intuition, from
which every science that
lays claim to evidence must take its
commencement. The
mathematician does not begin with a demonstrable
proposition, but with an
intuition, a practical idea.
But here an important
distinction presents itself. Philosophy is
employed on objects of the
inner SENSE, and cannot, like geometry,
appropriate to every
construction a correspondent outward intuition.
Nevertheless, philosophy,
if it is to arrive at evidence, must proceed
from the most original
construction, and the question then is, what is
the most original
construction or first productive act for the inner
sense. The answer to this
question depends on the direction which is
given to the inner sense.
But in philosophy the inner sense cannot
have its direction
determined by an outward object. To the original
construction of the line I
can be compelled by a line drawn before me
on the slate or on sand.
The stroke thus drawn is indeed not the line
itself, but only the image
or picture of the line. It is not from it,
that we first learn to
know the line; but, on the contrary, we bring
this stroke to the
original line generated by the act of the
imagination; otherwise we
could not define it as without breadth or
thickness. Still however
this stroke is the sensuous image of the
original or ideal line,
and an efficient mean to excite every
imagination to the
intuition of it.
It is demanded then,
whether there be found any means in philosophy to
determine the direction of
the inner sense, as in mathematics it is
determinable by its
specific image or outward picture. Now the inner
sense has its direction
determined for the greater part only by an act
of freedom. One man's
consciousness extends only to the pleasant or
unpleasant sensations
caused in him by external impressions; another
enlarges his inner sense
to a consciousness of forms and quantity; a
third in addition to the
image is conscious of the conception or
notion of the thing; a
fourth attains to a notion of his notions--he
reflects on his own
reflections; and thus we may say without
impropriety, that the one
possesses more or less inner sense, than the
other. This more or less
betrays already, that philosophy in its first
principles must have a
practical or moral, as well as a theoretical or
speculative side. This
difference in degree does not exist in the
mathematics. Socrates in
Plato shows, that an ignorant slave may be
brought to understand and
of himself to solve the most difficult
geometrical problem.
Socrates drew the figures for the slave in the
sand. The disciples of the
critical philosophy could likewise (as was
indeed actually done by La
Forge and some other followers of Des
Cartes) represent the
origin of our representations in copper-plates;
but no one has yet
attempted it, and it would be utterly useless. To
an Esquimaux or New
Zealander our most popular philosophy would be
wholly unintelligible. The
sense, the inward organ, for it is not yet
born in him. So is there
many a one among us, yes, and some who think
themselves philosophers too,
to whom the philosophic organ is entirely
wanting. To such a man
philosophy is a mere play of words and notions,
like a theory of music to
the deaf, or like the geometry of light to
the blind. The connection
of the parts and their logical dependencies
may be seen and
remembered; but the whole is groundless and hollow,
unsustained by living
contact, unaccompanied with any realizing
intuition which exists by
and in the act that affirms its existence,
which is known, because it
is, and is, because it is known. The words
of Plotinus, in the
assumed person of Nature, hold true of the
philosophic energy. To
theoroun mou, theoraema poiei, osper oi
geometrai theorountes
graphousin; all' emon mae graphousaes,
theorousaes de,
uphistantai ai ton somaton grammai. With me the act of
contemplation makes the
thing contemplated, as the geometricians
contemplating describe
lines correspondent; but I not describing
lines, but simply
contemplating, the representative forms of things
rise up into existence.
The postulate of
philosophy and at the same time the test of
philosophic capacity, is
no other than the heaven-descended KNOW
THYSELF! (E coelo
descendit, Gnothi seauton). And this at once
practically and
speculatively. For as philosophy is neither a science
of the reason or
understanding only, nor merely a science of morals,
but the science of BEING
altogether, its primary ground can be neither
merely speculative nor
merely practical, but both in one. All
knowledge rests on the
coincidence of an object with a subject. (My
readers have been warned
in a former chapter that, for their
convenience as well as the
writer's, the term, subject, is used by me
in its scholastic sense as
equivalent to mind or sentient being, and
as the necessary
correlative of object or quicquid objicitur menti.)
For we can know that only
which is true: and the truth is universally
placed in the coincidence
of the thought with the thing, of the
representation with the
object represented.
Now the sum of all that is
merely OBJECTIVE, we will henceforth call
NATURE, confining the term
to its passive and material sense, as
comprising all the
phaenomena by which its existence is made known to
us. On the other hand the
sum of all that is SUBJECTIVE, we may
comprehend in the name of
the SELF or INTELLIGENCE. Both conceptions
are in necessary
antithesis. Intelligence is conceived of as
exclusively
representative, nature as exclusively represented; the one
as conscious, the other as
without consciousness. Now in all acts of
positive knowledge there
is required a reciprocal concurrence of both,
namely of the conscious
being, and of that which is in itself
unconscious. Our problem
is to explain this concurrence, its
possibility and its
necessity.
During the act of
knowledge itself, the objective and subjective are
so instantly united, that
we cannot determine to which of the two the
priority belongs. There is
here no first, and no second; both are
coinstantaneous and one.
While I am attempting to explain this
intimate coalition, I must
suppose it dissolved. I must necessarily
set out from the one, to
which therefore I give hypothetical
antecedence, in order to
arrive at the other. But as there are but two
factors or elements in the
problem, subject and object, and as it is
left indeterminate from
which of them I should commence, there are two
cases equally possible.
1. EITHER THE OBJECTIVE IS
TAKEN AS THE FIRST, AND THEN WE HAVE TO
ACCOUNT FOR THE
SUPERVENTION OF THE SUBJECTIVE, WHICH COALESCES WITH
IT.
The notion of the
subjective is not contained in the notion of the
objective. On the contrary
they mutually exclude each other. The
subjective therefore must
supervene to the objective. The conception
of nature does not
apparently involve the co-presence of an
intelligence making an
ideal duplicate of it, that is, representing
it. This desk for instance
would (according to our natural notions)
be, though there should
exist no sentient being to look at it. This
then is the problem of
natural philosophy. It assumes the objective or
unconscious nature as the
first, and as therefore to explain how
intelligence can supervene
to it, or how itself can grow into
intelligence. If it should
appear, that all enlightened naturalists,
without having distinctly
proposed the problem to themselves, have yet
constantly moved in the
line of its solution, it must afford a strong
presumption that the
problem itself is founded in nature. For if all
knowledge has, as it were,
two poles reciprocally required and
presupposed, all sciences
must proceed from the one or the other, and
must tend toward the
opposite as far as the equatorial point in which
both are reconciled and
become identical. The necessary tendency
therefore of all natural
philosophy is from nature to intelligence;
and this, and no other is
the true ground and occasion of the
instinctive striving to
introduce theory into our views of natural
phaenomena. The highest
perfection of natural philosophy would consist
in the perfect
spiritualization of all the laws of nature into laws of
intuition and intellect.
The phaenomena (the material) most wholly
disappear, and the laws
alone (the formal) must remain. Thence it
comes, that in nature
itself the more the principle of law breaks
forth, the more does the
husk drop off, the phaenomena themselves
become more spiritual and
at length cease altogether in our
consciousness. The optical
phaenomena are but a geometry, the lines of
which are drawn by light,
and the materiality of this light itself has
already become matter of
doubt. In the appearances of magnetism all
trace of matter is lost,
and of the phaenomena of gravitation, which
not a few among the most
illustrious Newtonians have declared no
otherwise comprehensible
than as an immediate spiritual influence,
there remains nothing but
its law, the execution of which on a vast
scale is the mechanism of
the heavenly motions. The theory of natural
philosophy would then be
completed, when all nature was demonstrated
to be identical in essence
with that, which in its highest known power
exists in man as
intelligence and self-consciousness; when the heavens
and the earth shall
declare not only the power of their maker, but the
glory and the presence of
their God, even as he appeared to the great
prophet during the vision
of the mount in the skirts of his divinity.
This may suffice to show,
that even natural science, which commences
with the material
phaenomenon as the reality and substance of things
existing, does yet by the
necessity of theorizing unconsciously, and
as it were instinctively,
end in nature as an intelligence; and by
this tendency the science
of nature becomes finally natural
philosophy, the one of the
two poles of fundamental science.
2. OR THE SUBJECTIVE IS
TAKEN AS THE FIRST, AND THE PROBLEM THEN IS,
HOW THERE SUPERVENES TO IT
A COINCIDENT OBJECTIVE.
In the pursuit of these
sciences, our success in each, depends on an
austere and faithful
adherence to its own principles, with a careful
separation and exclusion
of those, which appertain to the opposite
science. As the natural
philosopher, who directs his views to the
objective, avoids above
all things the intermixture of the subjective
in his knowledge, as for
instance, arbitrary suppositions or rather
suflictions, occult
qualities, spiritual agents, and the substitution
of final for efficient
causes; so on the other hand, the
transcendental or
intelligential philosopher is equally anxious to
preclude all
interpellation of the objective into the subjective
principles of his science,
as for instance the assumption of impresses
or configurations in the
brain, correspondent to miniature pictures on
the retina painted by rays
of light from supposed originals, which are
not the immediate and real
objects of vision, but deductions from it
for the purposes of
explanation. This purification of the mind is
effected by an absolute
and scientific scepticism, to which the mind
voluntarily determines
itself for the specific purpose of future
certainty. Des Cartes who
(in his meditations) himself first, at least
of the moderns, gave a
beautiful example of this voluntary doubt, this
self-determined
indetermination, happily expresses its utter
difference from the
scepticism of vanity or irreligion: Nec tamen in
Scepticos imitabar, qui
dubitant tantum ut dubitent, et praeter
incertitudinem ipsam nihil
quaerunt. Nam contra totus in eo eram ut
aliquid certi reperirem
[51]. Nor is it less distinct in its motives
and final aim, than in its
proper objects, which are not as in
ordinary scepticism the
prejudices of education and circumstance, but
those original and innate
prejudices which nature herself has planted
in all men, and which to
all but the philosopher are the first
principles of knowledge,
and the final test of truth.
Now these essential
prejudices are all reducible to the one
fundamental presumption,
THAT THERE EXIST THINGS WITHOUT US. As this
on the one hand
originates, neither in grounds nor arguments, and yet
on the other hand remains
proof against all attempts to remove it by
grounds or arguments
(naturam furca expellas tamen usque redibit;) on
the one hand lays claim to
IMMEDIATE certainty as a position at once
indemonstrable and
irresistible, and yet on the other hand, inasmuch
as it refers to something
essentially different from ourselves, nay
even in opposition to
ourselves, leaves it inconceivable how it could
possibly become a part of
our immediate consciousness; (in other words
how that, which ex
hypothesi is and continues to be extrinsic and
alien to our being, should
become a modification of our being) the
philosopher therefore
compels himself to treat this faith as nothing
more than a prejudice,
innate indeed and connatural, but still a
prejudice.
The other position, which
not only claims but necessitates the
admission of its immediate
certainty, equally for the scientific
reason of the philosopher
as for the common sense of mankind at large,
namely, I AM, cannot so
properly be entitled a prejudice. It is
groundless indeed; but
then in the very idea it precludes all ground,
and separated from the
immediate consciousness loses its whole sense
and import. It is
groundless; but only because it is itself the ground
of all other certainty.
Now the apparent contradiction, that the
former position, namely,
the existence of things without us, which
from its nature cannot be
immediately certain, should be received as
blindly and as
independently of all grounds as the existence of our
own being, the
Transcendental philosopher can solve only by the
supposition, that the
former is unconsciously involved in the latter;
that it is not only
coherent but identical, and one and the same thing
with our own immediate
self consciousness. To demonstrate this
identity is the office and
object of his philosophy.
If it be said, that this
is idealism, let it be remembered that it is
only so far idealism, as
it is at the same time, and on that very
account, the truest and
most binding realism. For wherein does the
realism of mankind properly
consist? In the assertion that there
exists a something without
them, what, or how, or where they know not,
which occasions the
objects of their perception? Oh no! This is
neither connatural nor
universal. It is what a few have taught and
learned in the schools,
and which the many repeat without asking
themselves concerning
their own meaning. The realism common to all
mankind is far elder and
lies infinitely deeper than this hypothetical
explanation of the origin
of our perceptions, an explanation skimmed
from the mere surface of
mechanical philosophy. It is the table
itself, which the man of
common sense believes himself to see, not the
phantom of a table, from
which he may argumentatively deduce the
reality of a table, which
he does not see. If to destroy the reality
of all, that we actually
behold, be idealism, what can be more
egregiously so, than the
system of modern metaphysics, which banishes
us to a land of shadows,
surrounds us with apparitions, and
distinguishes truth from
illusion only by the majority of those who
dream the same dream?
"I asserted that the world was mad," exclaimed
poor Lee, "and the
world said, that I was mad, and confound them, they
outvoted me."
It is to the true and
original realism, that I would direct the
attention. This believes
and requires neither more nor less, than the
object which it beholds or
presents to itself, is the real and very
object. In this sense,
however much we may strive against it, we are
all collectively born
idealists, and therefore and only therefore are
we at the same time
realists. But of this the philosophers of the
schools know nothing, or
despise the faith as the prejudice of the
ignorant vulgar, because
they live and move in a crowd of phrases and
notions from which human
nature has long ago vanished. Oh, ye that
reverence yourselves, and
walk humbly with the divinity in your own
hearts, ye are worthy of a
better philosophy! Let the dead bury the
dead, but do you preserve
your human nature, the depth of which was
never yet fathomed by a
philosophy made up of notions and mere logical
entities.
In the third treatise of
my Logosophia, announced at the end of this
volume, I shall give (Deo
volente) the demonstrations and
constructions of the
Dynamic Philosophy scientifically arranged. It
is, according to my
conviction, no other than the system of Pythagoras
and of Plato revived and
purified from impure mixtures. Doctrina per
tot manus tradita tandem
in vappam desiit! The science of arithmetic
furnishes instances, that
a rule may be useful in practical
application, and for the
particular purpose may be sufficiently
authenticated by the
result, before it has itself been fully
demonstrated. It is
enough, if only it be rendered intelligible. This
will, I trust, have been
effected in the following Theses for those of
my readers, who are
willing to accompany me through the following
chapter, in which the
results will be applied to the deduction of the
Imagination, and with it
the principles of production and of genial
criticism in the fine
arts.
THESIS I
Truth is correlative to
being. Knowledge without a correspondent
reality is no knowledge;
if we know, there must be somewhat known by
us. To know is in its very
essence a verb active.
THESIS II
All truth is either
mediate, that is, derived from some other truth or
truths; or immediate and
original. The latter is absolute, and its
formula A. A.; the former
is of dependent or conditional certainty,
and represented in the
formula B. A. The certainty, which adheres in
A, is attributable to B.
SCHOLIUM. A chain without
a staple, from which all the links derived
their stability, or a
series without a first, has been not inaptly
allegorized, as a string
of blind men, each holding the skirt of the
man before him, reaching
far out of sight, but all moving without the
least deviation in one
straight line. It would be naturally taken for
granted, that there was a
guide at the head of the file: what if it
were answered, No! Sir,
the men are without number, and infinite
blindness supplies the
place of sight?
Equally inconceivable is a
cycle of equal truths without a common and
central principle, which
prescribes to each its proper sphere in the
system of science. That
the absurdity does not so immediately strike
us, that it does not seem
equally unimaginable, is owing to a
surreptitious act of the
imagination, which, instinctively and without
our noticing the same, not
only fills up the intervening spaces, and
contemplates the cycle (of
B. C. D. E. F. etc.) as a continuous circle
(A.) giving to all
collectively the unity of their common orbit; but
likewise supplies, by a
sort of subintelligitur, the one central
power, which renders the
movement harmonious and cyclical.
THESIS III
We are to seek therefore
for some absolute truth capable of
communicating to other
positions a certainty, which it has not itself
borrowed; a truth
self-grounded, unconditional and known by its own
light. In short, we have
to find a somewhat which is, simply because
it is. In order to be
such, it must be one which is its own predicate,
so far at least that all
other nominal predicates must be modes and
repetitions of itself. Its
existence too must be such, as to preclude
the possibility of
requiring a cause or antecedent without an
absurdity.
THESIS IV
That there can be but one
such principle, may be proved a priori; for
were there two or more,
each must refer to some other, by which its
equality is affirmed;
consequently neither would be self-established,
as the hypothesis demands.
And a posteriori, it will be proved by the
principle itself when it
is discovered, as involving universal
antecedence in its very
conception.
SCHOLIUM. If we affirm of
a board that it is blue, the predicate
(blue) is accidental, and
not implied in the subject, board. If we
affirm of a circle that it
is equi-radial, the predicate indeed is
implied in the definition
of the subject; but the existence of the
subject itself is
contingent, and supposes both a cause and a
percipient. The same
reasoning will apply to the indefinite number of
supposed indemonstrable
truths exempted from the profane approach of
philosophic investigation
by the amiable Beattie, and other less
eloquent and not more
profound inaugurators of common sense on the
throne of philosophy; a
fruitless attempt, were it only that it is the
two-fold function of
philosophy to reconcile reason with common sense,
and to elevate common
sense into reason.
THESIS V
Such a principle cannot be
any THING or OBJECT. Each thing is what it
is in consequence of some
other thing. An infinite, independent [52]
thing, is no less a
contradiction, than an infinite circle or a
sideless triangle. Besides
a thing is that, which is capable of being
an object which itself is
not the sole percipient. But an object is
inconceivable without a
subject as its antithesis. Omne perceptum
percipientem supponit.
But neither can the
principle be found in a subject as a subject,
contra-distinguished from
an object: for unicuique percipienti aliquid
objicitur perceptum. It is
to be found therefore neither in object nor
subject taken separately,
and consequently, as no other third is
conceivable, it must be
found in that which is neither subject nor
object exclusively, but
which is the identity of both.
THESIS VI
This principle, and so
characterised manifests itself in the SUM or I
AM; which I shall
hereafter indiscriminately express by the words
spirit, self, and
self-consciousness. In this, and in this alone,
object and subject, being
and knowing, are identical, each involving
and supposing the other.
In other words, it is a subject which becomes
a subject by the act of
constructing itself objectively to itself; but
which never is an object
except for itself, and only so far as by the
very same act it becomes a
subject. It may be described therefore as a
perpetual self-duplication
of one and the same power into object and
subject, which presuppose
each other, and can exist only as
antitheses.
SCHOLIUM. If a man be
asked how he knows that he is? he can only
answer, sum quia sum. But
if (the absoluteness of this certainty
having been admitted) he
be again asked, how he, the individual
person, came to be, then
in relation to the ground of his existence,
not to the ground of his
knowledge of that existence, he might reply,
sum quia Deus est, or
still more philosophically, sum quia in Deo sum.
But if we elevate our
conception to the absolute self, the great
eternal I AM, then the
principle of being, and of knowledge, of idea,
and of reality; the ground
of existence, and the ground of the
knowledge of existence,
are absolutely identical, Sum quia sum [53]; I
am, because I affirm
myself to be; I affirm myself to be, because I
am.
THESIS VII
If then I know myself only
through myself, it is contradictory to
require any other
predicate of self, but that of self-consciousness.
Only in the
self-consciousness of a spirit is there the required
identity of object and of
representation; for herein consists the
essence of a spirit, that
it is self-representative. If therefore this
be the one only immediate
truth, in the certainty of which the reality
of our collective
knowledge is grounded, it must follow that the
spirit in all the objects
which it views, views only itself. If this
could be proved, the
immediate reality of all intuitive knowledge
would be assured. It has
been shown, that a spirit is that, which is
its own object, yet not
originally an object, but an absolute subject
for which all, itself
included, may become an object. It must
therefore be an ACT; for
every object is, as an object, dead, fixed,
incapable in itself of any
action, and necessarily finite. Again the
spirit (originally the
identity of object and subject) must in some
sense dissolve this
identity, in order to be conscious of it; fit
alter et idem. But this
implies an act, and it follows therefore that
intelligence or
self-consciousness is impossible, except by and in a
will. The self-conscious
spirit therefore is a will; and freedom must
be assumed as a ground of
philosophy, and can never be deduced from
it.
THESIS VIII
Whatever in its origin is
objective, is likewise as such necessarily
finite. Therefore, since
the spirit is not originally an object, and
as the subject exists in
antithesis to an object, the spirit cannot
originally be finite. But
neither can it be a subject without becoming
an object, and, as it is
originally the identity of both, it can be
conceived neither as
infinite nor finite exclusively, but as the most
original union of both. In
the existence, in the reconciling, and the
recurrence of this
contradiction consists the process and mystery of
production and life.
THESIS IX
This principium commune
essendi et cognoscendi, as subsisting in a
WILL, or primary ACT of
self-duplication, is the mediate or indirect
principle of every
science; but it is the immediate and direct
principle of the ultimate
science alone, i.e. of transcendental
philosophy alone. For it
must be remembered, that all these Theses
refer solely to one of the
two Polar Sciences, namely, to that which
commences with, and
rigidly confines itself within, the subjective,
leaving the objective (as
far as it is exclusively objective) to
natural philosophy, which
is its opposite pole. In its very idea
therefore as a systematic
knowledge of our collective KNOWING,
(scientia scientiae) it
involves the necessity of some one highest
principle of knowing, as
at once the source and accompanying form in
all particular acts of
intellect and perception. This, it has been
shown, can be found only
in the act and evolution of self-
consciousness. We are not
investigating an absolute principium
essendi; for then, I
admit, many valid objections might be started
against our theory; but an
absolute principium cognoscendi. The result
of both the sciences, or
their equatorial point, would be the
principle of a total and
undivided philosophy, as, for prudential
reasons, I have chosen to
anticipate in the Scholium to Thesis VI and
the note subjoined. In
other words, philosophy would pass into
religion, and religion
become inclusive of philosophy. We begin with
the I KNOW MYSELF, in
order to end with the absolute I AM. We proceed
from the SELF, in order to
lose and find all self in GOD.
THESIS X
The transcendental
philosopher does not inquire, what ultimate ground
of our knowledge there may
lie out of our knowing, but what is the
last in our knowing
itself, beyond which we cannot pass. The principle
of our knowing is sought
within the sphere of our knowing. It must be
some thing therefore,
which can itself be known. It is asserted only,
that the act of
self-consciousness is for us the source and principle
of all our possible
knowledge. Whether abstracted from us there exists
any thing higher and
beyond this primary self-knowing, which is for us
the form of all our
knowing must be decided by the result.
That the
self-consciousness is the fixed point, to which for us all is
mortised and annexed,
needs no further proof. But that the self-
consciousness may be the
modification of a higher form of being,
perhaps of a higher
consciousness, and this again of a yet higher, and
so on in an infinite
regressus; in short, that self-consciousness may
be itself something
explicable into something, which must lie beyond
the possibility of our
knowledge, because the whole synthesis of our
intelligence is first
formed in and through the self-consciousness,
does not at all concern us
as transcendental philosophers. For to us,
self-consciousness is not
a kind of being, but a kind of knowing, and
that too the highest and
farthest that exists for us. It may however
be shown, and has in part
already been shown earlier, that even when
the Objective is assumed
as the first, we yet can never pass beyond
the principle of
self-consciousness. Should we attempt it, we must be
driven back from ground to
ground, each of which would cease to be a
ground the moment we
pressed on it. We must be whirled down the gulf
of an infinite series. But
this would make our reason baffle the end
and purpose of all reason,
namely, unity and system. Or we must break
off the series
arbitrarily, and affirm an absolute something that is
in and of itself at once
cause and effect (causa sui), subject and
object, or rather the
absolute identity of both. But as this is
inconceivable, except in a
self-consciousness, it follows, that even
as natural philosophers we
must arrive at the same principle from
which as transcendental
philosophers we set out; that is, in a self-
consciousness in which the
principium essendi does not stand to the
principlum cognoscende in
the relation of cause to effect, but both
the one and the other are
co-inherent and identical. Thus the true
system of natural
philosophy places the sole reality of things in an
ABSOLUTE, which is at once
causa sui et effectus, pataer autopator,
uios heautou--in the
absolute identity of subject and object, which it
calls nature, and which in
its highest power is nothing else than
self-conscious will or
intelligence. In this sense the position of
Malebranche, that we see
all things in God, is a strict philosophical
truth; and equally true is
the assertion of Hobbes, of Hartley, and of
their masters in ancient
Greece, that all real knowledge supposes a
prior sensation. For
sensation itself is but vision nascent, not the
cause of intelligence, but
intelligence itself revealed as an earlier
power in the process of
self-construction.
Makar, ilathi moi;
Pater, ilathi moi
Ei para kosmon,
Ei para moiran
Ton son ethigon!
Bearing then this in mind,
that intelligence is a self-development,
not a quality supervening
to a substance, we may abstract from all
degree, and for the
purpose of philosophic construction reduce it to
kind, under the idea of an
indestructible power with two opposite and
counteracting forces,
which by a metaphor borrowed from astronomy, we
may call the centrifugal
and centripetal forces. The intelligence in
the one tends to objectize
itself, and in the other to know itself in
the object. It will be
hereafter my business to construct by a series
of intuitions the
progressive schemes, that must follow from such a
power with such forces,
till I arrive at the fulness of the human
intelligence. For my
present purpose, I assume such a power as my
principle, in order to
deduce from it a faculty, the generation,
agency, and application of
which form the contents of the ensuing
chapter.
In a preceding page I have
justified the use of technical terms in
philosophy, whenever they
tend to preclude confusion of thought, and
when they assist the
memory by the exclusive singleness of their
meaning more than they
may, for a short time, bewilder the attention
by their strangeness. I
trust, that I have not extended this privilege
beyond the grounds on
which I have claimed it; namely, the conveniency
of the scholastic phrase
to distinguish the kind from all degrees, or
rather to express the kind
with the abstraction of degree, as for
instance multeity instead
of multitude; or secondly, for the sake of
correspondence in sound in
interdependent or antithetical terms, as
subject and object; or
lastly, to avoid the wearying recurrence of
circumlocutions and
definitions. Thus I shall venture to use potence,
in order to express a
specific degree of a power, in imitation of the
Algebraists. I have even
hazarded the new verb potenziate, with its
derivatives, in order to
express the combination or transfer of
powers. It is with new or
unusual terms, as with privileges in courts
of justice or legislature;
there can be no legitimate privilege, where
there already exists a
positive law adequate to the purpose; and when
there is no law in
existence, the privilege is to be justified by its
accordance with the end,
or final cause, of all law. Unusual and new-
coined words are doubtless
an evil; but vagueness, confusion, and
imperfect conveyance of
our thoughts, are a far greater. Every system,
which is under the
necessity of using terms not familiarized by the
metaphysics in fashion,
will be described as written in an
unintelligible style, and
the author must expect the charge of having
substituted learned jargon
for clear conception; while, according to
the creed of our modern
philosophers, nothing is deemed a clear
conception, but what is
representable by a distinct image. Thus the
conceivable is reduced
within the bounds of the picturable. Hinc
patet, qui fiat, ut cum
irrepraesentabile et impossibile vulgo ejusdem
significatus habeantur,
conceptus tam continui, quam infiniti, a
plurimis rejiciantur,
quippe quorum, secundum leges cognitionis
intuitivae, repraesentatio
est impossibilis. Quanquam autem harum e
non paucis scholis
explosarum notionum, praesertim prioris, causam hic
non gero, maximi tamen
momendi erit monuisse. gravissimo illos errore
labi, qui tam perverse
argumentandi ratione utuntur. Quicquid enim
repugnat legibus
intellectus et rationis, utique est impossibile; quod
autem, cum rationis purae
sit objectum, legibus cognitionis intuitivae
tantummodo non subest, non
item. Nam hic dissensus inter facultatem
sensitivam et
intellectualem, (quarum indolem mox exponam,) nihil
indigitat, nisi, quas mens
ab intellectu acceptas fert ideas
abstractas, illas in
concreto exsequi et in intuitus commutare
saepenumero non posse.
Haec autem reluctantia subjectiva mentitur, ut
plurimum, repugnantiam
aliquam objectivam, et incautos facile fallit,
limitibus, quibus mens
humana circumscribitur, pro iis habitis, quibus
ipsa rerum essentia
continetur. [54]
Critics, who are most
ready to bring this charge of pedantry and
unintelligibility, are the
most apt to overlook the important fact,
that, besides the language
of words, there is a language of spirits--
(sermo interior)--and that
the former is only the vehicle of the
latter. Consequently their
assurance, that they do not understand the
philosophic writer,
instead of proving any thing against the
philosophy, may furnish an
equal, and (caeteris paribus) even a
stronger presumption
against their own philosophic talent.
Great indeed are the
obstacles which an English metaphysician has to
encounter. Amongst his
most respectable and intelligent judges, there
will be many who have
devoted their attention exclusively to the
concerns and interests of
human life, and who bring with them to the
perusal of a philosophic
system an habitual aversion to all
speculations, the utility
and application of which are not evident and
immediate. To these I
would in the first instance merely oppose an
authority, which they
themselves hold venerable, that of Lord Bacon:
non inutiles Scientiae
existimandae sunt, quarum in se nullus est
usus, si ingenia acuant et
ordinent.
There are others, whose
prejudices are still more formidable, inasmuch
as they are grounded in
their moral feelings and religious principles,
which had been alarmed and
shocked by the impious and pernicious
tenets defended by Hume,
Priestley, and the French fatalists or
necessitarians; some of
whom had perverted metaphysical reasonings to
the denial of the
mysteries and indeed of all the peculiar doctrines
of Christianity; and
others even to the subversion of all distinction
between right and wrong. I
would request such men to consider what an
eminent and successful
defender of the Christian faith has observed,
that true metaphysics are
nothing else but true divinity, and that in
fact the writers, who have
given them such just offence, were
sophists, who had taken
advantage of the general neglect into which
the science of logic has
unhappily fallen, rather than metaphysicians,
a name indeed which those
writers were the first to explode as
unmeaning. Secondly, I
would remind them, that as long as there are
men in the world to whom
the Gnothi seauton is an instinct and a
command from their own
nature, so long will there be metaphysicians
and metaphysical
speculations; that false metaphysics can be
effectually counteracted
by true metaphysics alone; and that if the
reasoning be clear, solid
and pertinent, the truth deduced can never
be the less valuable on
account of the depth from which it may have
been drawn.
A third class profess
themselves friendly to metaphysics, and believe
that they are themselves
metaphysicians. They have no objection to
system or terminology,
provided it be the method and the nomenclature
to which they have been
familiarized in the writings of Locke, Hume,
Hartley, Condillac, or
perhaps Dr. Reid, and Professor Stewart. To
objections from this
cause, it is a sufficient answer, that one main
object of my attempt was
to demonstrate the vagueness or insufficiency
of the terms used in the
metaphysical schools of France and Great
Britain since the
revolution, and that the errors which I propose to
attack cannot subsist,
except as they are concealed behind the mask of
a plausible and indefinite
nomenclature.
But the worst and widest
impediment still remains. It is the
predominance of a popular
philosophy, at once the counterfeit and the
mortal enemy of all true
and manly metaphysical research. It is that
corruption, introduced by
certain immethodical aphorisming eclectics,
who, dismissing not only
all system, but all logical connection, pick
and choose whatever is
most plausible and showy; who select, whatever
words can have some
semblance of sense attached to them without the
least expenditure of
thought; in short whatever may enable men to talk
of what they do not
understand, with a careful avoidance of every
thing that might awaken
them to a moment's suspicion of their
ignorance. This alas! is
an irremediable disease, for it brings with
it, not so much an
indisposition to any particular system, but an
utter loss of taste and
faculty for all system and for all philosophy.
Like echoes that beget
each other amongst the mountains, the praise or
blame of such men rolls in
volleys long after the report from the
original blunderbuss.
Sequacitas est potius et coitio quam consensus:
et tamen (quod pessimum
est) pusillanimitas ista non sine arrogantia
et fastidio se offert.
[55]
I shall now proceed to the
nature and genesis of the Imagination; but
I must first take leave to
notice, that after a more accurate perusal
of Mr. Wordsworth's
remarks on the Imagination, in his preface to the
new edition of his poems,
I find that my conclusions are not so
consentient with his as, I
confess, I had taken for granted. In an
article contributed by me
to Mr. Southey's Omniana, On the soul and
its organs of sense, are
the following sentences. "These (the human
faculties) I would arrange
under the different senses and powers: as
the eye, the ear, the
touch, etc.; the imitative power, voluntary and
automatic; the
imagination, or shaping and modifying power; the fancy,
or the aggregative and
associative power; the understanding, or the
regulative, substantiating
and realizing power; the speculative
reason, vis theoretica et
scientifica, or the power by which we
produce or aim to produce
unity, necessity, and universality in all
our knowledge by means of
principles a priori [56]; the will, or
practical reason; the
faculty of choice (Germanice, Willkuehr) and
(distinct both from the
moral will and the choice,) the sensation of
volition, which I have
found reason to include under the head of
single and double
touch." To this, as far as it relates to the subject
in question, namely the
words (the aggregative and associative power)
Mr. Wordsworth's
"objection is only that the definition is too
general. To aggregate and
to associate, to evoke and to combine,
belong as well to the
Imagination as to the Fancy." I reply, that if,
by the power of evoking
and combining, Mr. Wordsworth means the same
as, and no more than, I
meant by the aggregative and associative, I
continue to deny, that it
belongs at all to the Imagination; and I am
disposed to conjecture,
that he has mistaken the copresence of Fancy
with Imagination for the
operation of the latter singly. A man may
work with two very
different tools at the same moment; each has its
share in the work, but the
work effected by each is distinct and
different. But it will
probably appear in the next chapter, that
deeming it necessary to go
back much further than Mr. Wordsworth's
subject required or
permitted, I have attached a meaning to both Fancy
and Imagination, which he
had not in view, at least while he was
writing that preface. He
will judge. Would to Heaven, I might meet
with many such readers! I
will conclude with the words of Bishop
Jeremy Taylor: "He to
whom all things are one, who draweth all things
to one, and seeth all
things in one, may enjoy true peace and rest of
spirit." [57]
CHAPTER XIII
On the imagination, or
esemplastic power
O Adam, One Almighty is, from whom
All things proceed, and up to him return,
If not deprav'd from good, created all
Such to perfection, one first matter all,
Endued with various forms, various degrees
Of substance, and, in things that live, of life;
But more refin'd, more spiritous and pure,
As nearer to him plac'd, or nearer tending,
Each in their several active spheres assigu'd,
Till body up to spirit work, in bounds
Proportion'd to each kind. So from the root
Springs lighter the green stalk, from thence the
leaves
More aery: last the bright consummate flower
Spirits odorous breathes: flowers and their
fruit,
Man's nourishment, by gradual scale sublim'd,
To vital spirits aspire: to animal:
To intellectual!--give both life and sense,
Fancy and understanding; whence the soul
REASON receives, and reason is her being,
Discursive or intuitive. [58]
"Sane dicerentur si
res corporales nil nisi materiale continerent,
verissime in fluxu
consistere, neque habere substantiale quicquam,
quemadmodum et Platonici
olim recte agnovere."
"Hinc igitur, praeter
pure mathematica et phantasiae subjecta, collegi
quaedam metaphysica
solaque mente perceptibilia, esse admittenda et
massae materiali
principium quoddam superius et, ut sic dicam, formale
addendum: quandoquidem omnes
veritates rerum corporearum ex solis
axiomatibus logisticis et
geometricis, nempe de magno et parvo, toto
et parte, figura et situ,
colligi non possint; sed alia de causa et
effectu, actioneque et
passione, accedere debeant, quibus ordinis
rerum rationes salventur.
Id principium rerum, an entelecheian an vim
appellemus, non refert,
modo meminerimus, per solam Virium notionem
intelligibiliter
explicari." [59]
Sebomai noeron
Kruphian taxin
Chorei TI MESON
Ou katachuthen. [60]
Des Cartes, speaking as a
naturalist, and in imitation of Archimedes,
said, give me matter and
motion and I will construct you the universe.
We must of course
understand him to have meant; I will render the
construction of the
universe intelligible. In the same sense the
transcendental philosopher
says; grant me a nature having two contrary
forces, the one of which
tends to expand infinitely, while the other
strives to apprehend or
find itself in this infinity, and I will cause
the world of intelllgences
with the whole system of their
representations to rise up
before you. Every other science presupposes
intelligence as already
existing and complete: the philosopher
contemplates it in its
growth, and as it were represents its history
to the mind from its birth
to its maturity.
The venerable sage of
Koenigsberg has preceded the march of this
master-thought as an
effective pioneer in his essay on the
introduction of negative
quantities into philosophy, published 1763.
In this he has shown, that
instead of assailing the science of
mathematics by
metaphysics, as Berkeley did in his ANALYST, or of
sophisticating it, as Wolf
did, by the vain attempt of deducing the
first principles of
geometry from supposed deeper grounds of ontology,
it behoved the
metaphysician rather to examine whether the only
province of knowledge,
which man has succeeded in erecting into a pure
science, might not furnish
materials, or at least hints, for
establishing and pacifying
the unsettled, warring, and embroiled
domain of philosophy. An
imitation of the mathematical method had
indeed been attempted with
no better success than attended the essay
of David to wear the
armour of Saul. Another use however is possible
and of far greater
promise, namely, the actual application of the
positions which had so
wonderfully enlarged the discoveries of
geometry, mutatis
mutandis, to philosophical subjects. Kant having
briefly illustrated the
utility of such an attempt in the questions of
space, motion, and
infinitely small quantities, as employed by the
mathematician, proceeds to
the idea of negative quantities and the
transfer of them to
metaphysical investigation. Opposites, he well
observes, are of two
kinds, either logical, that is, such as are
absolutely incompatible;
or real, without being contradictory. The
former he denominates
Nihil negativum irrepraesentabile, the
connection of which
produces nonsense. A body in motion is something--
Aliquid cogitabile; but a
body, at one and the same time in motion and
not in motion, is nothing,
or, at most, air articulated into nonsense.
But a motory force of a
body in one direction, and an equal force of
the same body in an
opposite direction is not incompatible, and the
result, namely, rest, is
real and representable. For the purposes of
mathematical calculus it
is indifferent which force we term negative,
and which positive, and
consequently we appropriate the latter to
that, which happens to be
the principal object in our thoughts. Thus
if a man's capital be ten
and his debts eight, the subtraction will be
the same, whether we call
the capital negative debt, or the debt
negative capital. But in
as much as the latter stands practically in
reference to the former,
we of course represent the sum as 10-8. It is
equally clear that two
equal forces acting in opposite directions,
both being finite and each
distinguished from the other by its
direction only, must
neutralize or reduce each other to inaction. Now
the transcendental
philosophy demands; first, that two forces should
be conceived which
counteract each other by their essential nature;
not only not in
consequence of the accidental direction of each, but
as prior to all direction,
nay, as the primary forces from which the
conditions of all possible
directions are derivative and deducible:
secondly, that these
forces should be assumed to be both alike
infinite, both alike
indestructible. The problem will then be to
discover the result or
product of two such forces, as distinguished
from the result of those
forces which are finite, and derive their
difference solely from the
circumstance of their direction. When we
have formed a scheme or
outline of these two different kinds of force,
and of their different
results, by the process of discursive
reasoning, it will then
remain for us to elevate the thesis from
notional to actual, by
contemplating intuitively this one power with
its two inherent
indestructible yet counteracting forces, and the
results or generations to
which their inter-penetration gives
existence, in the living
principle and in the process of our own self-
consciousness. By what
instrument this is possible the solution itself
will discover, at the same
time that it will reveal to and for whom it
is possible. Non omnia
possumus omnes. There is a philosophic no less
than a poetic genius,
which is differenced from the highest perfection
of talent, not by degree
but by kind.
The counteraction then of
the two assumed forces does not depend on
their meeting from
opposite directions; the power which acts in them
is indestructible; it is
therefore inexhaustibly re-ebullient; and as
something must be the
result of these two forces, both alike infinite,
and both alike
indestructible; and as rest or neutralization cannot be
this result; no other
conception is possible, but that the product
must be a tertium aliquid,
or finite generation. Consequently this
conception is necessary.
Now this tertium aliquid can be no other than
an inter-penetration of
the counteracting powers, partaking of both.
* * * * * *
Thus far had the work been
transcribed for the press, when I received
the following letter from
a friend, whose practical judgment I have
had ample reason to
estimate and revere, and whose taste and
sensibility preclude all
the excuses which my self-love might possibly
have prompted me to set up
in plea against the decision of advisers of
equal good sense, but with
less tact and feeling.
"Dear C.
"You ask my opinion concerning your Chapter
on the Imagination,
both as to the impressions
it made on myself, and as to those which I
think it will make on the
Public, i.e. that part of the public, who,
from the title of the work
and from its forming a sort of introduction
to a volume of poems, are
likely to constitute the great majority of
your readers.
"As to myself, and
stating in the first place the effect on my
understanding, your
opinions and method of argument were not only so
new to me, but so directly
the reverse of all I had ever been
accustomed to consider as
truth, that even if I had comprehended your
premises sufficiently to
have admitted them, and had seen the
necessity of your
conclusions, I should still have been in that state
of mind, which in your
note in Chap. IV you have so ingeniously
evolved, as the antithesis
to that in which a man is, when he makes a
bull. In your own words, I
should have felt as if I had been standing
on my head.
"The effect on my
feelings, on the other hand, I cannot better
represent, than by
supposing myself to have known only our light airy
modern chapels of ease,
and then for the first time to have been
placed, and left alone, in
one of our largest Gothic cathedrals in a
gusty moonlight night of
autumn. 'Now in glimmer, and now in gloom;'
often in palpable darkness
not without a chilly sensation of terror;
then suddenly emerging
into broad yet visionary lights with coloured
shadows of fantastic
shapes, yet all decked with holy insignia and
mystic symbols; and ever
and anon coming out full upon pictures and
stone-work images of great
men, with whose names I was familiar, but
which looked upon me with
countenances and an expression, the most
dissimilar to all I had
been in the habit of connecting with those
names. Those whom I had
been taught to venerate as almost super-human
in magnitude of intellect,
I found perched in little fret-work niches,
as grotesque dwarfs; while
the grotesques, in my hitherto belief,
stood guarding the high
altar with all the characters of apotheosis.
In short, what I had
supposed substances were thinned away into
shadows, while everywhere
shadows were deepened into substances:
If substance might be call'd that shadow seem'd,
For each seem'd either!
"Yet after all, I
could not but repeat the lines which you had quoted
from a MS. poem of your
own in the FRIEND, and applied to a work of
Mr. Wordsworth's though
with a few of the words altered:
------An Orphic tale indeed,
A tale obscure of high and passionate thoughts
To a strange music chanted!
"Be assured, however,
that I look forward anxiously to your great book
on the CONSTRUCTIVE
PHILOSOPHY, which you have promised and announced:
and that I will do my best
to understand it. Only I will not promise
to descend into the dark
cave of Trophonius with you, there to rub my
own eyes, in order to make
the sparks and figured flashes, which I am
required to see.
"So much for myself.
But as for the Public I do not hesitate a moment
in advising and urging you
to withdraw the Chapter from the present
work, and to reserve it
for your announced treatises on the Logos or
communicative intellect in
Man and Deity. First, because imperfectly
as I understand the
present Chapter, I see clearly that you have done
too much, and yet not
enough. You have been obliged to omit so many
links, from the necessity
of compression, that what remains, looks (if
I may recur to my former
illustration) like the fragments of the
winding steps of an old
ruined tower. Secondly, a still stronger
argument (at least one
that I am sure will be more forcible with you)
is, that your readers will
have both right and reason to complain of
you. This Chapter, which
cannot, when it is printed, amount to so
little as an hundred
pages, will of necessity greatly increase the
expense of the work; and
every reader who, like myself, is neither
prepared nor perhaps
calculated for the study of so abstruse a subject
so abstrusely treated,
will, as I have before hinted, be almost
entitled to accuse you of
a sort of imposition on him. For who, he
might truly observe, could
from your title-page, to wit, "My Literary
Life and Opinions,"
published too as introductory to a volume of
miscellaneous poems, have
anticipated, or even conjectured, a long
treatise on Ideal Realism
which holds the same relation in
abstruseness to Plotinus,
as Plotinus does to Plato. It will be well,
if already you have not
too much of metaphysical disquisition in your
work, though as the larger
part of the disquisition is historical, it
will doubtless be both
interesting and instructive to many to whose
unprepared minds your
speculations on the esemplastic power would be
utterly unintelligible. Be
assured, if you do publish this Chapter in
the present work, you will
be reminded of Bishop Berkeley's Siris,
announced as an Essay on
Tar-water, which beginning with Tar ends with
the Trinity, the omne
scibile forming the interspace. I say in the
present work. In that
greater work to which you have devoted so many
years, and study so
intense and various, it will be in its proper
place. Your prospectus
will have described and announced both its
contents and their nature;
and if any persons purchase it, who feel no
interest in the subjects
of which it treats, they will have themselves
only to blame.
"I could add to these
arguments one derived from pecuniary motives,
and particularly from the
probable effects on the sale of your present
publication; but they
would weigh little with you compared with the
preceding. Besides, I have
long observed, that arguments drawn from
your own personal
interests more often act on you as narcotics than as
stimulants, and that in
money concerns you have some small portion of
pig-nature in your moral
idiosyncrasy, and, like these amiable
creatures, must
occasionally be pulled backward from the boat in order
to make you enter it. All
success attend you, for if hard thinking and
hard reading are merits,
you have deserved it.
Your affectionate, etc."
In consequence of this
very judicious letter, which produced complete
conviction on my mind, I
shall content myself for the present with
stating the main result of
the chapter, which I have reserved for that
future publication, a
detailed prospectus of which the reader will
find at the close of the
second volume.
The Imagination then I
consider either as primary, or secondary. The
primary Imagination I hold
to be the living power and prime agent of
all human perception, and
as a repetition in the finite mind of the
eternal act of creation in
the infinite I AM. The secondary
Imagination I consider as
an echo of the former, co-existing with the
conscious will, yet still
as identical with the primary in the kind of
its agency, and differing
only in degree, and in the mode of its
operation. It dissolves,
diffuses, dissipates, in order to recreate:
or where this process is
rendered impossible, yet still at all events
it struggles to idealize
and to unify. It is essentially vital, even
as all objects (as
objects) are essentially fixed and dead.
FANCY, on the contrary,
has no other counters to play with, but
fixities and definites.
The fancy is indeed no other than a mode of
memory emancipated from
the order of time and space; while it is
blended with, and modified
by that empirical phaenomenon of the will,
which we express by the
word Choice. But equally with the ordinary
memory the Fancy must
receive all its materials ready made from the
law of association.
CHAPTER XIV
Occasion of the Lyrical
Ballads, and the objects originally proposed--
Preface to the second
edition--The ensuing controversy, its causes and
acrimony--Philosophic
definitions of a Poem and Poetry with scholia.
During the first year that
Mr. Wordsworth and I were neighbours, our
conversations turned
frequently on the two cardinal points of poetry,
the power of exciting the
sympathy of the reader by a faithful
adherence to the truth of
nature, and the power of giving the interest
of novelty by the
modifying colours of imagination. The sudden charm,
which accidents of light
and shade, which moon-light or sunset
diffused over a known and
familiar landscape, appeared to represent
the practicability of
combining both. These are the poetry of nature.
The thought suggested
itself--(to which of us I do not recollect)--
that a series of poems
might be composed of two sorts. In the one, the
incidents and agents were
to be, in part at least, supernatural; and
the excellence aimed at
was to consist in the interesting of the
affections by the dramatic
truth of such emotions, as would naturally
accompany such situations,
supposing them real. And real in this sense
they have been to every
human being who, from whatever source of
delusion, has at any time
believed himself under supernatural agency.
For the second class,
subjects were to be chosen from ordinary life;
the characters and
incidents were to be such as will be found in every
village and its vicinity,
where there is a meditative and feeling mind
to seek after them, or to
notice them, when they present themselves.
In this idea originated
the plan of the LYRICAL BALLADS; in which it
was agreed, that my
endeavours should be directed to persons and
characters supernatural,
or at least romantic; yet so as to transfer
from our inward nature a
human interest and a semblance of truth
sufficient to procure for
these shadows of imagination that willing
suspension of disbelief
for the moment, which constitutes poetic
faith. Mr. Wordsworth, on
the other hand, was to propose to himself as
his object, to give the
charm of novelty to things of every day, and
to excite a feeling
analogous to the supernatural, by awakening the
mind's attention to the
lethargy of custom, and directing it to the
loveliness and the wonders
of the world before us; an inexhaustible
treasure, but for which,
in consequence of the film of familiarity and
selfish solicitude, we
have eyes, yet see not, ears that hear not, and
hearts that neither feel
nor understand.
With this view I wrote THE
ANCIENT MARINER, and was preparing among
other poems, THE DARK
LADIE, and the CHRISTABEL, in which I should
have more nearly realized
my ideal, than I had done in my first
attempt. But Mr.
Wordsworth's industry had proved so much more
successful, and the number
of his poems so much greater, that my
compositions, instead of
forming a balance, appeared rather an
interpolation of
heterogeneous matter. Mr. Wordsworth added two or
three poems written in his
own character, in the impassioned, lofty,
and sustained diction,
which is characteristic of his genius. In this
form the LYRICAL BALLADS
were published; and were presented by him, as
an experiment, whether
subjects, which from their nature rejected the
usual ornaments and
extra-colloquial style of poems in general, might
not be so managed in the
language of ordinary life as to produce the
pleasurable interest,
which it is the peculiar business of poetry to
impart. To the second
edition he added a preface of considerable
length; in which,
notwithstanding some passages of apparently a
contrary import, he was
understood to contend for the extension of
this style to poetry of
all kinds, and to reject as vicious and
indefensible all phrases
and forms of speech that were not included in
what he (unfortunately, I
think, adopting an equivocal expression)
called the language of
real life. From this preface, prefixed to poems
in which it was impossible
to deny the presence of original genius,
however mistaken its
direction might be deemed, arose the whole long-
continued controversy. For
from the conjunction of perceived power
with supposed heresy I
explain the inveteracy and in some instances, I
grieve to say, the
acrimonious passions, with which the controversy
has been conducted by the
assailants.
Had Mr. Wordsworth's poems
been the silly, the childish things, which
they were for a long time
described as being had they been really
distinguished from the
compositions of other poets merely by meanness
of language and inanity of
thought; had they indeed contained nothing
more than what is found in
the parodies and pretended imitations of
them; they must have sunk
at once, a dead weight, into the slough of
oblivion, and have dragged
the preface along with them. But year after
year increased the number
of Mr. Wordsworth's admirers. They were
found too not in the lower
classes of the reading public, but chiefly
among young men of strong
sensibility and meditative minds; and their
admiration (inflamed
perhaps in some degree by opposition) was
distinguished by its
intensity, I might almost say, by its religious
fervour. These facts, and
the intellectual energy of the author, which
was more or less
consciously felt, where it was outwardly and even
boisterously denied,
meeting with sentiments of aversion to his
opinions, and of alarm at
their consequences, produced an eddy of
criticism, which would of
itself have borne up the poems by the
violence with which it
whirled them round and round. With many parts
of this preface in the
sense attributed to them and which the words
undoubtedly seem to
authorize, I never concurred; but on the contrary
objected to them as
erroneous in principle, and as contradictory (in
appearance at least) both
to other parts of the same preface, and to
the author's own practice
in the greater part of the poems themselves.
Mr. Wordsworth in his
recent collection has, I find, degraded this
prefatory disquisition to
the end of his second volume, to be read or
not at the reader's choice.
But he has not, as far as I can discover,
announced any change in
his poetic creed. At all events, considering
it as the source of a
controversy, in which I have been honoured more
than I deserve by the
frequent conjunction of my name with his, I
think it expedient to
declare once for all, in what points I coincide
with the opinions
supported in that preface, and in what points I
altogether differ. But in
order to render myself intelligible I must
previously, in as few
words as possible, explain my views, first, of a
Poem; and secondly, of
Poetry itself, in kind, and in essence.
The office of
philosophical disquisition consists in just distinction;
while it is the privilege
of the philosopher to preserve himself
constantly aware, that
distinction is not division. In order to obtain
adequate notions of any
truth, we must intellectually separate its
distinguishable parts; and
this is the technical process of
philosophy. But having so
done, we must then restore them in our
conceptions to the unity,
in which they actually co-exist; and this is
the result of philosophy.
A poem contains the same elements as a prose
composition; the
difference therefore must consist in a different
combination of them, in
consequence of a different object being
proposed. According to the
difference of the object will be the
difference of the
combination. It is possible, that the object may be
merely to facilitate the
recollection of any given facts or
observations by artificial
arrangement; and the composition will be a
poem, merely because it is
distinguished from prose by metre, or by
rhyme, or by both
conjointly. In this, the lowest sense, a man might
attribute the name of a
poem to the well-known enumeration of the days
in the several months;
"Thirty days hath September,
April, June, and November," etc.
and others of the same
class and purpose. And as a particular pleasure
is found in anticipating
the recurrence of sounds and quantities, all
compositions that have
this charm super-added, whatever be their
contents, may be entitled
poems.
So much for the
superficial form. A difference of object and contents
supplies an additional
ground of distinction. The immediate purpose
may be the communication
of truths; either of truth absolute and
demonstrable, as in works
of science; or of facts experienced and
recorded, as in history.
Pleasure, and that of the highest and most
permanent kind, may result
from the attainment of the end; but it is
not itself the immediate
end. In other works the communication of
pleasure may be the
immediate purpose; and though truth, either moral
or intellectual, ought to
be the ultimate end, yet this will
distinguish the character
of the author, not the class to which the
work belongs. Blest indeed
is that state of society, in which the
immediate purpose would be
baffled by the perversion of the proper
ultimate end; in which no
charm of diction or imagery could exempt the
BATHYLLUS even of an
Anacreon, or the ALEXIS of Virgil, from disgust
and aversion!
But the communication of
pleasure may be the immediate object of a
work not metrically
composed; and that object may have been in a high
degree attained, as in
novels and romances. Would then the mere
superaddition of metre,
with or without rhyme, entitle these to the
name of poems? The answer
is, that nothing can permanently please,
which does not contain in
itself the reason why it is so, and not
otherwise. If metre be
superadded, all other parts must be made
consonant with it. They
must be such, as to justify the perpetual and
distinct attention to each
part, which an exact correspondent
recurrence of accent and
sound are calculated to excite. The final
definition then, so
deduced, may be thus worded. A poem is that
species of composition,
which is opposed to works of science, by
proposing for its
immediate object pleasure, not truth; and from all
other species--(having
this object in common with it)--it is
discriminated by proposing
to itself such delight from the whole, as
is compatible with a
distinct gratification from each component part.
Controversy is not seldom
excited in consequence of the disputants
attaching each a different
meaning to the same word; and in few
instances has this been
more striking, than in disputes concerning the
present subject. If a man
chooses to call every composition a poem,
which is rhyme, or
measure, or both, I must leave his opinion
uncontroverted. The
distinction is at least competent to characterize
the writer's intention. If
it were subjoined, that the whole is
likewise entertaining or
affecting, as a tale, or as a series of
interesting reflections; I
of course admit this as another fit
ingredient of a poem, and
an additional merit. But if the definition
sought for be that of a
legitimate poem, I answer, it must be one, the
parts of which mutually
support and explain each other; all in their
proportion harmonizing
with, and supporting the purpose and known
influences of metrical
arrangement. The philosophic critics of all
ages coincide with the
ultimate judgment of all countries, in equally
denying the praises of a
just poem, on the one hand, to a series of
striking lines or
distiches, each of which, absorbing the whole
attention of the reader to
itself, becomes disjoined from its context,
and forms a separate
whole, instead of a harmonizing part; and on the
other hand, to an
unsustained composition, from which the reader
collects rapidly the
general result unattracted by the component
parts. The reader should
be carried forward, not merely or chiefly by
the mechanical impulse of
curiosity, or by a restless desire to arrive
at the final solution; but
by the pleasureable activity of mind
excited by the attractions
of the journey itself. Like the motion of a
serpent, which the
Egyptians made the emblem of intellectual power; or
like the path of sound
through the air;--at every step he pauses and
half recedes; and from the
retrogressive movement collects the force
which again carries him
onward. Praecipitandus est liber spiritus,
says Petronius most
happily. The epithet, liber, here balances the
preceding verb; and it is
not easy to conceive more meaning condensed
in fewer words.
But if this should be
admitted as a satisfactory character of a poem,
we have still to seek for
a definition of poetry. The writings of
Plato, and Jeremy Taylor,
and Burnet's Theory of the Earth, furnish
undeniable proofs that
poetry of the highest kind may exist without
metre, and even without
the contradistringuishing objects of a poem.
The first chapter of
Isaiah--(indeed a very large portion of the whole
book)--is poetry in the
most emphatic sense; yet it would be not less
irrational than strange to
assert, that pleasure, and not truth was
the immediate object of
the prophet. In short, whatever specific
import we attach to the
word, Poetry, there will be found involved in
it, as a necessary
consequence, that a poem of any length neither can
be, nor ought to be, all
poetry. Yet if an harmonious whole is to be
produced, the remaining
parts must be preserved in keeping with the
poetry; and this can be no
otherwise effected than by such a studied
selection and artificial
arrangement, as will partake of one, though
not a peculiar property of
poetry. And this again can be no other than
the property of exciting a
more continuous and equal attention than
the language of prose aims
at, whether colloquial or written.
My own conclusions on the
nature of poetry, in the strictest use of
the word, have been in
part anticipated in some of the remarks on the
Fancy and Imagination in
the early part of this work. What is poetry?
--is so nearly the same
question with, what is a poet?--that the answer
to the one is involved in
the solution of the other. For it is a
distinction resulting from
the poetic genius itself, which sustains
and modifies the images,
thoughts, and emotions of the poet's own
mind.
The poet, described in
ideal perfection, brings the whole soul of man
into activity, with the
subordination of its faculties to each other
according to their
relative worth and dignity. He diffuses a tone and
spirit of unity, that
blends, and (as it were) fuses, each into each,
by that synthetic and
magical power, to which I would exclusively
appropriate the name of
Imagination. This power, first put in action
by the will and
understanding, and retained under their irremissive,
though gentle and
unnoticed, control, laxis effertur habenis, reveals
"itself in the
balance or reconcilement of opposite or discordant"
qualities: of sameness,
with difference; of the general with the
concrete; the idea with
the image; the individual with the
representative; the sense
of novelty and freshness with old and
familiar objects; a more
than usual state of emotion with more than
usual order; judgment ever
awake and steady self-possession with
enthusiasm and feeling
profound or vehement; and while it blends and
harmonizes the natural and
the artificial, still subordinates art to
nature; the manner to the
matter; and our admiration of the poet to
our sympathy with the
poetry. Doubtless, as Sir John Davies observes
of the soul--(and his
words may with slight alteration be applied, and
even more appropriately,
to the poetic Imagination)--
Doubtless this could not be, but that she turns
Bodies to spirit by sublimation
strange,
As fire converts to fire the things it burns,
As we our food into our nature
change.
From their gross matter she abstracts their
forms,
And draws a kind of quintessence
from things;
Which to her proper nature she transforms
To bear them light on her celestial
wings.
Thus does she, when from individual states
She doth abstract the universal
kinds;
Which then re-clothed in divers names and fates
Steal access through the senses to
our minds.
Finally, Good Sense is the
Body of poetic genius, Fancy its Drapery,
Motion its Life, and
Imagination the Soul that is everywhere, and in
each; and forms all into
one graceful and intelligent whole.
CHAPTER XV
The specific symptoms of
poetic power elucidated in a critical
analysis of Shakespeare's
VENUS AND ADONIS, and RAPE of LUCRECE.
In the application of
these principles to purposes of practical
criticism, as employed in
the appraisement of works more or less
imperfect, I have
endeavoured to discover what the qualities in a poem
are, which may be deemed
promises and specific symptoms of poetic
power, as distinguished
from general talent determined to poetic
composition by accidental
motives, by an act of the will, rather than
by the inspiration of a
genial and productive nature. In this
investigation, I could
not, I thought, do better, than keep before me
the earliest work of the
greatest genius, that perhaps human nature
has yet produced, our
myriad-minded [61] Shakespeare. I mean the VENUS
AND ADONIS, and the
LUCRECE; works which give at once strong promises
of the strength, and yet
obvious proofs of the immaturity, of his
genius. From these I
abstracted the following marks, as
characteristics of
original poetic genius in general.
1. In the VENUS AND
ADONIS, the first and most obvious excellence is
the perfect sweetness of
the versification; its adaptation to the
subject; and the power
displayed in varying the march of the words
without passing into a
loftier and more majestic rhythm than was
demanded by the thoughts,
or permitted by the propriety of preserving
a sense of melody
predominant. The delight in richness and sweetness
of sound, even to a faulty
excess, if it be evidently original, and
not the result of an
easily imitable mechanism, I regard as a highly
favourable promise in the
compositions of a young man. The man that
hath not music in his soul
can indeed never be a genuine poet.
Imagery,--(even taken from
nature, much more when transplanted from
books, as travels,
voyages, and works of natural history),--affecting
incidents, just thoughts,
interesting personal or domestic feelings,
and with these the art of
their combination or intertexture in the
form of a poem,--may all
by incessant effort be acquired as a trade,
by a man of talent and
much reading, who, as I once before observed,
has mistaken an intense
desire of poetic reputation for a natural
poetic genius; the love of
the arbitrary end for a possession of the
peculiar means. But the
sense of musical delight, with the power of
producing it, is a gift of
imagination; and this together with the
power of reducing
multitude into unity of effect, and modifying a
series of thoughts by some
one predominant thought or feeling, may be
cultivated and improved,
but can never be learned. It is in these that
"poeta nascitur non
fit."
2. A second promise of
genius is the choice of subjects very remote
from the private interests
and circumstances of the writer himself. At
least I have found, that
where the subject is taken immediately from
the author's personal
sensations and experiences, the excellence of a
particular poem is but an
equivocal mark, and often a fallacious
pledge, of genuine poetic
power. We may perhaps remember the tale of
the statuary, who had
acquired considerable reputation for the legs of
his goddesses, though the
rest of the statue accorded but
indifferently with ideal
beauty; till his wife, elated by her
husband's praises,
modestly acknowledged that she had been his
constant model. In the
VENUS AND ADONIS this proof of poetic power
exists even to excess. It
is throughout as if a superior spirit more
intuitive, more intimately
conscious, even than the characters
themselves, not only of
every outward look and act, but of the flux
and reflux of the mind in
all its subtlest thoughts and feelings, were
placing the whole before
our view; himself meanwhile unparticipating
in the passions, and
actuated only by that pleasurable excitement,
which had resulted from
the energetic fervour of his own spirit in so
vividly exhibiting what it
had so accurately and profoundly
contemplated. I think, I
should have conjectured from these poems,
that even then the great
instinct, which impelled the poet to the
drama, was secretly
working in him, prompting him--by a series and
never broken chain of
imagery, always vivid and, because unbroken,
often minute; by the
highest effort of the picturesque in words, of
which words are capable,
higher perhaps than was ever realized by any
other poet, even Dante not
excepted; to provide a substitute for that
visual language, that
constant intervention and running comment by
tone, look and gesture,
which in his dramatic works he was entitled to
expect from the players.
His Venus and Adonis seem at once the
characters themselves, and
the whole representation of those
characters by the most
consummate actors. You seem to be told nothing,
but to see and hear
everything. Hence it is, from the perpetual
activity of attention
required on the part of the reader; from the
rapid flow, the quick
change, and the playful nature of the thoughts
and images; and above all
from the alienation, and, if I may hazard
such an expression, the
utter aloofness of the poet's own feelings,
from those of which he is
at once the painter and the analyst; that
though the very subject
cannot but detract from the pleasure of a
delicate mind, yet never
was poem less dangerous on a moral account.
Instead of doing as
Ariosto, and as, still more offensively, Wieland
has done, instead of
degrading and deforming passion into appetite,
the trials of love into
the struggles of concupiscence; Shakespeare
has here represented the
animal impulse itself, so as to preclude all
sympathy with it, by
dissipating the reader's notice among the
thousand outward images,
and now beautiful, now fanciful
circumstances, which form
its dresses and its scenery; or by diverting
our attention from the
main subject by those frequent witty or
profound reflections,
which the poet's ever active mind has deduced
from, or connected with,
the imagery and the incidents. The reader is
forced into too much
action to sympathize with the merely passive of
our nature. As little can
a mind thus roused and awakened be brooded
on by mean and indistinct
emotion, as the low, lazy mist can creep
upon the surface of a
lake, while a strong gale is driving it onward
in waves and billows.
3. It has been before
observed that images, however beautiful, though
faithfully copied from
nature, and as accurately represented in words,
do not of themselves
characterize the poet. They become proofs of
original genius only as
far as they are modified by a predominant
passion; or by associated
thoughts or images awakened by that passion;
or when they have the
effect of reducing multitude to unity, or
succession to an instant;
or lastly, when a human and intellectual
life is transferred to
them from the poet's own spirit,
Which shoots its being through earth, sea, and
air.
In the two following lines
for instance, there is nothing
objectionable, nothing
which would preclude them from forming, in
their proper place, part
of a descriptive poem:
Behold yon row of pines, that shorn and bow'd
Bend from the sea-blast, seen at twilight eve.
But with a small
alteration of rhythm, the same words would be equally
in their place in a book
of topography, or in a descriptive tour. The
same image will rise into
semblance of poetry if thus conveyed:
Yon row of bleak and visionary pines,
By twilight glimpse discerned, mark! how they
flee
From the fierce sea-blast, all their tresses
wild
Streaming before them.
I have given this as an
illustration, by no means as an instance, of
that particular excellence
which I had in view, and in which
Shakespeare even in his
earliest, as in his latest, works surpasses
all other poets. It is by
this, that he still gives a dignity and a
passion to the objects
which he presents. Unaided by any previous
excitement, they burst
upon us at once in life and in power,--
"Full many a glorious morning have I seen
Flatter the mountain tops with sovereign
eye."
"Not mine own fears, nor the prophetic soul
Of the wide world dreaming on things to
come--
* * * * * *
* * * * * *
The mortal moon hath her eclipse endured,
And the sad augurs mock their own presage;
Incertainties now crown themselves assur'd,
And Peace proclaims olives of endless age.
Now with the drops of this most balmy time
My love looks fresh, and Death to me subscribes,
Since spite of him, I'll live in this poor
rhyme,
While he insults o'er dull and speechless tribes.
And thou in this shalt find thy monument,
When tyrants' crests, and tombs of brass are
spent."
As of higher worth, so
doubtless still more characteristic of poetic
genius does the imagery
become, when it moulds and colours itself to
the circumstances,
passion, or character, present and foremost in the
mind. For unrivalled
instances of this excellence, the reader's own
memory will refer him to
the LEAR, OTHELLO, in short to which not of
the "great, ever
living, dead man's" dramatic works? Inopem em copia
fecit. How true it is to
nature, he has himself finely expressed in
the instance of love in
his 98th Sonnet.
From you have I been absent in the spring,
When proud-pied April drest in all its trim,
Hath put a spirit of youth in every thing;
That heavy Saturn laugh'd and leap'd with him.
Yet nor the lays of birds, nor the sweet smell
Of different flowers in odour and in hue,
Could make me any summer's story tell,
Or from their proud lap pluck them, where they
grew
Nor did I wonder at the lilies white,
Nor praise the deep vermilion in the rose;
They were, tho' sweet, but figures of delight,
Drawn after you, you pattern of all those.
Yet seem'd it winter still, and, you away,
As with your shadow, I with these did
play!"
Scarcely less sure, or if
a less valuable, not less indispensable mark
Gonimon men poiaetou------
------hostis rhaema gennaion lakoi,
will the imagery supply,
when, with more than the power of the
painter, the poet gives us
the liveliest image of succession with the
feeling of
simultaneousness:--
With this, he breaketh from the sweet embrace
Of those fair arms, which bound him to her
breast,
And homeward through the dark laund runs
apace;--
* * * * * *
Look! how a bright star shooteth from the sky,
So glides he in the night from Venus' eye.
4. The last character I
shall mention, which would prove indeed but
little, except as taken
conjointly with the former;--yet without which
the former could scarce
exist in a high degree, and (even if this were
possible) would give
promises only of transitory flashes and a
meteoric power;--is depth,
and energy of thought. No man was ever yet
a great poet, without
being at the same time a profound philosopher.
For poetry is the blossom
and the fragrancy of all human knowledge,
human thoughts, human
passions, emotions, language. In Shakespeare's
poems the creative power
and the intellectual energy wrestle as in a
war embrace. Each in its
excess of strength seems to threaten the
extinction of the other.
At length in the drama they were reconciled,
and fought each with its
shield before the breast of the other. Or
like two rapid streams,
that, at their first meeting within narrow and
rocky banks, mutually
strive to repel each other and intermix
reluctantly and in tumult;
but soon finding a wider channel and more
yielding shores blend, and
dilate, and flow on in one current and with
one voice. The VENUS AND
ADONIS did not perhaps allow the display of
the deeper passions. But
the story of Lucretia seems to favour and
even demand their
intensest workings. And yet we find in Shakespeare's
management of the tale
neither pathos, nor any other dramatic quality.
There is the same minute
and faithful imagery as in the former poem,
in the same vivid colours,
inspirited by the same impetuous vigour of
thought, and diverging and
contracting with the same activity of the
assimilative and of the
modifying faculties; and with a yet larger
display, a yet wider range
of knowledge and reflection; and lastly,
with the same perfect
dominion, often domination, over the whole world
of language. What then
shall we say? even this; that Shakespeare, no
mere child of nature; no
automaton of genius; no passive vehicle of
inspiration, possessed by
the spirit, not possessing it; first studied
patiently, meditated
deeply, understood minutely, till knowledge,
become habitual and
intuitive, wedded itself to his habitual feelings,
and at length gave birth
to that stupendous power, by which he stands
alone, with no equal or
second in his own class; to that power which
seated him on one of the
two glory-smitten summits of the poetic
mountain, with Milton as
his compeer not rival. While the former darts
himself forth, and passes
into all the forms of human character and
passion, the one Proteus
of the fire and the flood; the other attracts
all forms and things to
himself, into the unity of his own ideal. All
things and modes of action
shape themselves anew in the being of
Milton; while Shakespeare
becomes all things, yet for ever remaining
himself. O what great men
hast thou not produced, England, my
country!--Truly indeed--
We must be free or die, who speak the tongue,
Which Shakespeare spake; the faith and morals
hold,
Which Milton held. In everything we are sprung
Of earth's first blood, have titles manifold.
CHAPTER XVI
Striking points of
difference between the Poets of the present age and
those of the fifteenth and
sixteenth centuries--Wish expressed for the
union of the
characteristic merits of both.
Christendom, from its
first settlement on feudal rights, has been so
far one great body,
however imperfectly organized, that a similar
spirit will be found in
each period to have been acting in all its
members. The study of
Shakespeare's poems--(I do not include his
dramatic works, eminently
as they too deserve that title)--led me to a
more careful examination
of the contemporary poets both in England and
in other countries. But my
attention was especially fixed on those of
Italy, from the birth to
the death of Shakespeare; that being the
country in which the fine
arts had been most sedulously, and hitherto
most successfully
cultivated. Abstracted from the degrees and
peculiarities of
individual genius, the properties common to the good
writers of each period
seem to establish one striking point of
difference between the
poetry of the fifteenth and sixteenth
centuries, and that of the
present age. The remark may perhaps be
extended to the sister art
of painting. At least the latter will serve
to illustrate the former.
In the present age the poet--(I would wish
to be understood as
speaking generally, and without allusion to
individual names)--seems
to propose to himself as his main object, and
as that which is the most
characteristic of his art, new and striking
images; with incidents
that interest the affections or excite the
curiosity. Both his
characters and his descriptions he renders, as
much as possible, specific
and individual, even to a degree of
portraiture. In his
diction and metre, on the other hand, he is
comparatively careless.
The measure is either constructed on no
previous system, and
acknowledges no justifying principle but that of
the writer's convenience;
or else some mechanical movement is adopted,
of which one couplet or
stanza is so far an adequate specimen, as that
the occasional differences
appear evidently to arise from accident, or
the qualities of the
language itself, not from meditation and an
intelligent purpose. And
the language from Pope's translation of
Homer, to Darwin's Temple
of Nature [62], may, notwithstanding some
illustrious exceptions, be
too faithfully characterized, as claiming
to be poetical for no
better reason, than that it would be intolerable
in conversation or in
prose. Though alas! even our prose writings, nay
even the style of our more
set discourses, strive to be in the
fashion, and trick
themselves out in the soiled and over-worn finery
of the meretricious muse.
It is true that of late a great improvement
in this respect is
observable in our most popular writers. But it is
equally true, that this
recurrence to plain sense and genuine mother
English is far from being
general; and that the composition of our
novels, magazines, public
harangues, and the like is commonly as
trivial in thought, and
yet enigmatic in expression, as if Echo and
Sphinx had laid their
heads together to construct it. Nay, even of
those who have most
rescued themselves from this contagion, I should
plead inwardly guilty to
the charge of duplicity or cowardice, if I
withheld my conviction,
that few have guarded the purity of their
native tongue with that
jealous care, which the sublime Dante in his
tract De la volgare
Eloquenza, declares to be the first duty of a
poet. For language is the
armoury of the human mind; and at once
contains the trophies of
its past, and the weapons of its future
conquests. Animadverte,
says Hobbes, quam sit ab improprietate
verborum pronum hominihus
prolabi in errores circa ipsas res! Sat
[vero], says Sennertus, in
hac vitae brevitate et naturae obscuritate,
rerum est, quibus
cognoscendis tempus impendatur, ut [confusis et
multivotis] sermonibus
intelligendis illud consumere opus non sit.
[Eheu! quantas strages
paravere verba nubila, quae tot dicunt ut nihil
dicunt;--nubes potius, e
quibus et in rebus politicis et in ecclesia
turbines et tonitrua
erumpunt!] Et proinde recte dictum putamus a
Platone in Gorgia: os an
ta onomata eidei, eisetai kai ta pragmata: et
ab Epicteto, archae
paideuseos hae ton onomaton episkepsis: et
prudentissime Galenus
scribit, hae ton onomaton chraesis tarachtheisa
kai taen ton pragmaton
epitarattei gnosin.
Egregie vero J. C.
Scaliger, in Lib. I. de Plantis: Est primum,
inquit, sapientis
officium, bene sentire, ut sibi vivat: proximum,
bene loqui, ut patriae
vivat.
Something analogous to the
materials and structure of modern poetry I
seem to have noticed--(but
here I beg to be understood as speaking
with the utmost
diffidence)--in our common landscape painters. Their
foregrounds and
intermediate distances are comparatively unattractive:
while the main interest of
the landscape is thrown into the
background, where
mountains and torrents and castles forbid the eye to
proceed, and nothing
tempts it to trace its way back again. But in the
works of the great Italian
and Flemish masters, the front and middle
objects of the landscape are
the most obvious and determinate, the
interest gradually dies
away in the background, and the charm and
peculiar worth of the
picture consists, not so much in the specific
objects which it conveys
to the understanding in a visual language
formed by the substitution
of figures for words, as in the beauty and
harmony of the colours,
lines, and expression, with which the objects
are represented. Hence
novelty of subject was rather avoided than
sought for. Superior
excellence in the manner of treating the same
subjects was the trial and
test of the artist's merit.
Not otherwise is it with
the more polished poets of the fifteenth and
sixteenth centuries,
especially those of Italy. The imagery is almost
always general: sun, moon,
flowers, breezes, murmuring streams,
warbling songsters,
delicious shades, lovely damsels cruel as fair,
nymphs, naiads, and
goddesses, are the materials which are common to
all, and which each shaped
and arranged according to his judgment or
fancy, little solicitous to
add or to particularize. If we make an
honourable exception in
favour of some English poets, the thoughts too
are as little novel as the
images; and the fable of their narrative
poems, for the most part
drawn from mythology, or sources of equal
notoriety, derive their
chief attractions from the manner of treating
them; from impassioned
flow, or picturesque arrangement. In opposition
to the present age, and
perhaps in as faulty an extreme, they placed
the essence of poetry in
the art. The excellence, at which they aimed,
consisted in the exquisite
polish of the diction, combined with
perfect simplicity. This
their prime object they attained by the
avoidance of every word,
which a gentleman would not use in dignified
conversation, and of every
word and phrase, which none but a learned
man would use; by the
studied position of words and phrases, so that
not only each part should
be melodious in itself, but contribute to
the harmony of the whole,
each note referring and conducting to the
melody of all the
foregoing and following words of the same period or
stanza; and lastly with
equal labour, the greater because unbetrayed,
by the variation and
various harmonies of their metrical movement.
Their measures, however,
were not indebted for their variety to the
introduction of new
metres, such as have been attempted of late in the
Alonzo and Imogen, and
others borrowed from the German, having in
their very mechanism a
specific overpowering tune, to which the
generous reader humours
his voice and emphasis, with more indulgence
to the author than
attention to the meaning or quantity of the words;
but which, to an ear
familiar with the numerous sounds of the Greek
and Roman poets, has an
effect not unlike that of galloping over a
paved road in a German
stage-waggon without springs. On the contrary,
the elder bards both of
Italy and England produced a far greater as
well as more charming
variety by countless modifications, and subtle
balances of sound in the
common metres of their country. A lasting and
enviable reputation awaits
that man of genius, who should attempt and
realize a union;--who
should recall the high finish, the
appropriateness, the
facility, the delicate proportion, and above all,
the perfusive and
omnipresent grace, which have preserved, as in a
shrine of precious amber,
the Sparrow of Catullus, the Swallow, the
Grasshopper, and all the
other little loves of Anacreon; and which,
with bright, though
diminished glories, revisited the youth and early
manhood of Christian Europe,
in the vales of [63] Arno, and the groves
of Isis and of Cam; and
who with these should combine the keener
interest, deeper pathos,
manlier reflection, and the fresher and more
various imagery, which
give a value and a name that will not pass away
to the poets who have done
honour to our own times, and to those of
our immediate
predecessors.
CHAPTER XVII
Examination of the tenets
peculiar to Mr. Wordsworth--Rustic life
(above all, low and rustic
life) especially unfavourable to the
formation of a human
diction--The best parts of language the product
of philosophers, not of
clowns or shepherds--Poetry essentially ideal
and generic--The language
of Milton as much the language of real life,
yea, incomparably more so
than that of the cottager.
As far then as Mr.
Wordsworth in his preface contended, and most ably
contended, for a
reformation in our poetic diction, as far as he has
evinced the truth of
passion, and the dramatic propriety of those
figures and metaphors in
the original poets, which, stripped of their
justifying reasons, and
converted into mere artifices of connection or
ornament, constitute the
characteristic falsity in the poetic style of
the moderns; and as far as
he has, with equal acuteness and clearness,
pointed out the process by
which this change was effected, and the
resemblances between that
state into which the reader's mind is thrown
by the pleasurable
confusion of thought from an unaccustomed train of
words and images; and that
state which is induced by the natural
language of impassioned
feeling; he undertook a useful task, and
deserves all praise, both
for the attempt and for the execution. The
provocations to this
remonstrance in behalf of truth and nature were
still of perpetual
recurrence before and after the publication of this
preface. I cannot likewise
but add, that the comparison of such poems
of merit, as have been
given to the public within the last ten or
twelve years, with the
majority of those produced previously to the
appearance of that
preface, leave no doubt on my mind, that Mr.
Wordsworth is fully
justified in believing his efforts to have been by
no means ineffectual. Not
only in the verses of those who have
professed their admiration
of his genius, but even of those who have
distinguished themselves
by hostility to his theory, and depreciation
of his writings, are the
impressions of his principles plainly
visible. It is possible,
that with these principles others may have
been blended, which are
not equally evident; and some which are
unsteady and subvertible
from the narrowness or imperfection of their
basis. But it is more than
possible, that these errors of defect or
exaggeration, by kindling
and feeding the controversy, may have
conduced not only to the
wider propagation of the accompanying truths,
but that, by their
frequent presentation to the mind in an excited
state, they may have won
for them a more permanent and practical
result. A man will borrow
a part from his opponent the more easily, if
he feels himself justified
in continuing to reject a part. While there
remain important points in
which he can still feel himself in the
right, in which he still
finds firm footing for continued resistance,
he will gradually adopt
those opinions, which were the least remote
from his own convictions,
as not less congruous with his own theory
than with that which he
reprobates. In like manner with a kind of
instinctive prudence, he
will abandon by little and little his weakest
posts, till at length he
seems to forget that they had ever belonged
to him, or affects to
consider them at most as accidental and "petty
annexments," the
removal of which leaves the citadel unhurt and
unendangered.
My own differences from
certain supposed parts of Mr. Wordsworth's
theory ground themselves
on the assumption, that his words had been
rightly interpreted, as
purporting that the proper diction for poetry
in general consists
altogether in a language taken, with due
exceptions, from the
mouths of men in real life, a language which
actually constitutes the
natural conversation of men under the
influence of natural
feelings. My objection is, first, that in any
sense this rule is
applicable only to certain classes of poetry;
secondly, that even to
these classes it is not applicable, except in
such a sense, as hath
never by any one (as far as I know or have
read,) been denied or
doubted; and lastly, that as far as, and in that
degree in which it is
practicable, it is yet as a rule useless, if not
injurious, and therefore
either need not, or ought not to be
practised. The poet
informs his reader, that he had generally chosen
low and rustic life; but
not as low and rustic, or in order to repeat
that pleasure of doubtful
moral effect, which persons of elevated rank
and of superior refinement
oftentimes derive from a happy imitation of
the rude unpolished
manners and discourse of their inferiors. For the
pleasure so derived may be
traced to three exciting causes. The first
is the naturalness, in
fact, of the things represented. The second is
the apparent naturalness
of the representation, as raised and
qualified by an
imperceptible infusion of the author's own knowledge
and talent, which infusion
does, indeed, constitute it an imitation as
distinguished from a mere
copy. The third cause may be found in the
reader's conscious feeling
of his superiority awakened by the contrast
presented to him; even as
for the same purpose the kings and great
barons of yore retained,
sometimes actual clowns and fools, but more
frequently shrewd and
witty fellows in that character. These, however,
were not Mr. Wordsworth's
objects. He chose low and rustic life,
"because in that
condition the essential passions of the heart find a
better soil, in which they
can attain their maturity, are less under
restraint, and speak a
plainer and more emphatic language; because in
that condition of life our
elementary feelings coexist in a state of
greater simplicity, and
consequently may be more accurately
contemplated, and more
forcibly communicated; because the manners of
rural life germinate from
those elementary feelings; and from the
necessary character of
rural occupations are more easily comprehended,
and are more durable; and
lastly, because in that condition the
passions of men are
incorporated with the beautiful and permanent
forms of nature."
Now it is clear to me,
that in the most interesting of the poems, in
which the author is more
or less dramatic, as THE BROTHERS, MICHAEL,
RUTH, THE MAD MOTHER, and
others, the persons introduced are by no
means taken from low or
rustic life in the common acceptation of those
words! and it is not less
clear, that the sentiments and language, as
far as they can be
conceived to have been really transferred from the
minds and conversation of
such persons, are attributable to causes and
circumstances not
necessarily connected with "their occupations and
abode." The thoughts,
feelings, language, and manners of the shepherd-
farmers in the vales of
Cumberland and Westmoreland, as far as they
are actually adopted in
those poems, may be accounted for from causes,
which will and do produce
the same results in every state of life,
whether in town or
country. As the two principal I rank that
independence, which raises
a man above servitude, or daily toil for
the profit of others, yet
not above the necessity of industry and a
frugal simplicity of
domestic life; and the accompanying unambitious,
but solid and religious,
education, which has rendered few books
familiar, but the Bible, and
the Liturgy or Hymn book. To this latter
cause, indeed, which is so
far accidental, that it is the blessing of
particular countries and a
particular age, not the product of
particular places or
employments, the poet owes the show of
probability, that his
personages might really feel, think, and talk
with any tolerable
resemblance to his representation. It is an
excellent remark of Dr.
Henry More's, that "a man of confined
education, but of good
parts, by constant reading of the Bible will
naturally form a more
winning and commanding rhetoric than those that
are learned: the
intermixture of tongues and of artificial phrases
debasing their
style."
It is, moreover, to be
considered that to the formation of healthy
feelings, and a reflecting
mind, negations involve impediments not
less formidable than
sophistication and vicious intermixture. I am
convinced, that for the
human soul to prosper in rustic life a certain
vantage-ground is
prerequisite. It is not every man that is likely to
be improved by a country
life or by country labours. Education, or
original sensibility, or
both, must pre-exist, if the changes, forms,
and incidents of nature
are to prove a sufficient stimulant. And where
these are not sufficient,
the mind contracts and hardens by want of
stimulants: and the man
becomes selfish, sensual, gross, and hard-
hearted. Let the
management of the Poor Laws in Liverpool, Manchester,
or Bristol be compared
with the ordinary dispensation of the poor
rates in agricultural
villages, where the farmers are the overseers
and guardians of the poor.
If my own experience have not been
particularly unfortunate,
as well as that of the many respectable
country clergymen with
whom I have conversed on the subject, the
result would engender more
than scepticism concerning the desirable
influences of low and
rustic life in and for itself. Whatever may be
concluded on the other
side, from the stronger local attachments and
enterprising spirit of the
Swiss, and other mountaineers, applies to a
particular mode of
pastoral life, under forms of property that permit
and beget manners truly
republican, not to rustic life in general, or
to the absence of
artificial cultivation. On the contrary the
mountaineers, whose
manners have been so often eulogized, are in
general better educated
and greater readers than men of equal rank
elsewhere. But where this
is not the case, as among the peasantry of
North Wales, the ancient
mountains, with all their terrors and all
their glories, are
pictures to the blind, and music to the deaf.
I should not have entered
so much into detail upon this passage, but
here seems to be the
point, to which all the lines of difference
converge as to their
source and centre;--I mean, as far as, and in
whatever respect, my
poetic creed does differ from the doctrines
promulgated in this
preface. I adopt with full faith, the principle of
Aristotle, that poetry, as
poetry, is essentially ideal, that it
avoids and excludes all
accident; that its apparent individualities of
rank, character, or
occupation must be representative of a class; and
that the persons of poetry
must be clothed with generic attributes,
with the common attributes
of the class: not with such as one gifted
individual might possibly
possess, but such as from his situation it
is most probable
before-hand that he would possess. If my premises are
right and my deductions
legitimate, it follows that there can be no
poetic medium between the
swains of Theocritus and those of an
imaginary golden age.
The characters of the
vicar and the shepherd-mariner in the poem of
THE BROTHERS, and that of
the shepherd of Green-head Ghyll in the
MICHAEL, have all the
verisimilitude and representative quality, that
the purposes of poetry can
require. They are persons of a known and
abiding class, and their
manners and sentiments the natural product of
circumstances common to
the class. Take Michael for instance:
An old man stout of heart, and strong of limb.
His bodily frame had been from youth to age
Of an unusual strength: his mind was keen,
Intense, and frugal, apt for all affairs,
And in his shepherd's calling he was prompt
And watchful more than ordinary men.
Hence he had learned the meaning of all winds,
Of blasts of every tone; and oftentimes
When others heeded not, He heard the South
Make subterraneous music, like the noise
Of bagpipers on distant Highland hills.
The Shepherd, at such warning, of his flock
Bethought him, and he to himself would say,
`The winds are now devising work for me!'
And truly, at all times, the storm, that drives
The traveller to a shelter, summoned him
Up to the mountains: he had been alone
Amid the heart of many thousand mists,
That came to him and left him on the heights.
So lived he, until his eightieth year was past.
And grossly that man errs, who should suppose
That the green valleys, and the streams and
rocks,
Were things indifferent to the Shepherd's
thoughts.
Fields, where with cheerful spirits he had
breathed
The common air; the hills, which he so oft
Had climbed with vigorous steps; which had
impressed
So many incidents upon his mind
Of hardship, skill or courage, joy or fear;
Which, like a book, preserved the memory
Of the dumb animals, whom he had saved,
Had fed or sheltered, linking to such acts,
So grateful in themselves, the certainty
Of honourable gain; these fields, these hills
Which were his living Being, even more
Than his own blood--what could they less? had
laid
Strong hold on his affections, were to him
A pleasurable feeling of blind love,
The pleasure which there is in life itself.
On the other hand, in the
poems which are pitched in a lower key, as
the HARRY GILL, and THE
IDIOT BOY, the feelings are those of human
nature in general; though
the poet has judiciously laid the scene in
the country, in order to
place himself in the vicinity of interesting
images, without the
necessity of ascribing a sentimental perception of
their beauty to the
persons of his drama. In THE IDIOT BOY, indeed,
the mother's character is
not so much the real and native product of a
"situation where the
essential passions of the heart find a better
soil, in which they can
attain their maturity and speak a plainer and
more emphatic
language," as it is an impersonation of an instinct
abandoned by judgment.
Hence the two following charges seem to me not
wholly groundless: at
least, they are the only plausible objections,
which I have heard to that
fine poem. The one is, that the author has
not, in the poem itself,
taken sufficient care to preclude from the
reader's fancy the
disgusting images of ordinary morbid idiocy, which
yet it was by no means his
intention to represent. He was even by the
"burr, burr,
burr," uncounteracted by any preceding description of the
boy's beauty, assisted in
recalling them. The other is, that the
idiocy of the boy is so
evenly balanced by the folly of the mother, as
to present to the general
reader rather a laughable burlesque on the
blindness of anile dotage,
than an analytic display of maternal
affection in its ordinary
workings.
In THE THORN, the poet
himself acknowledges in a note the necessity of
an introductory poem, in
which he should have portrayed the character
of the person from whom
the words of the poem are supposed to proceed:
a superstitious man
moderately imaginative, of slow faculties and deep
feelings, "a captain
of a small trading vessel, for example, who,
being past the middle age
of life, had retired upon an annuity, or
small independent income,
to some village or country town of which he
was not a native, or in
which he had not been accustomed to live. Such
men having nothing to do
become credulous and talkative from
indolence." But in a
poem, still more in a lyric poem--and the Nurse
in ROMEO AND JULIET alone
prevents me from extending the remark even
to dramatic poetry, if
indeed even the Nurse can be deemed altogether
a case in point--it is not
possible to imitate truly a dull and
garrulous discourser,
without repeating the effects of dullness and
garrulity. However this
may be, I dare assert, that the parts--(and
these form the far larger
portion of the whole)--which might as well
or still better have
proceeded from the poet's own imagination, and
have been spoken in his
own character, are those which have given, and
which will continue to
give, universal delight; and that the passages
exclusively appropriate to
the supposed narrator, such as the last
couplet of the third
stanza [64]; the seven last lines of the tenth
[65]; and the five
following stanzas, with the exception of the four
admirable lines at the
commencement of the fourteenth, are felt by
many unprejudiced and
unsophisticated hearts, as sudden and unpleasant
sinkings from the height
to which the poet had previously lifted them,
and to which he again
re-elevates both himself and his reader.
If then I am compelled to
doubt the theory, by which the choice of
characters was to be
directed, not only a priori, from grounds of
reason, but both from the
few instances in which the poet himself need
be supposed to have been
governed by it, and from the comparative
inferiority of those
instances; still more must I hesitate in my
assent to the sentence
which immediately follows the former citation;
and which I can neither
admit as particular fact, nor as general rule.
"The language, too,
of these men has been adopted (purified indeed
from what appear to be its
real defects, from all lasting and rational
causes of dislike or
disgust) because such men hourly communicate with
the best objects from
which the best part of language is originally
derived; and because, from
their rank in society and the sameness and
narrow circle of their
intercourse, being less under the action of
social vanity, they convey
their feelings and notions in simple and
unelaborated
expressions." To this I reply; that a rustic's language,
purified from all
provincialism and grossness, and so far
reconstructed as to be
made consistent with the rules of grammar--
(which are in essence no
other than the laws of universal logic,
applied to psychological
materials)--will not differ from the language
of any other man of common
sense, however learned or refined he may
be, except as far as the
notions, which the rustic has to convey, are
fewer and more
indiscriminate. This will become still clearer, if we
add the
consideration--(equally important though less obvious)--that
the rustic, from the more
imperfect development of his faculties, and
from the lower state of
their cultivation, aims almost solely to
convey insulated facts,
either those of his scanty experience or his
traditional belief; while
the educated man chiefly seeks to discover
and express those
connections of things, or those relative bearings of
fact to fact, from which
some more or less general law is deducible.
For facts are valuable to
a wise man, chiefly as they lead to the
discovery of the
indwelling law, which is the true being of things,
the sole solution of their
modes of existence, and in the knowledge of
which consists our dignity
and our power.
As little can I agree with
the assertion, that from the objects with
which the rustic hourly
communicates the best part of language is
formed. For first, if to
communicate with an object implies such an
acquaintance with it, as
renders it capable of being discriminately
reflected on, the distinct
knowledge of an uneducated rustic would
furnish a very scanty
vocabulary. The few things and modes of action
requisite for his bodily
conveniences would alone be individualized;
while all the rest of
nature would be expressed by a small number of
confused general terms.
Secondly, I deny that the words and
combinations of words
derived from the objects, with which the rustic
is familiar, whether with
distinct or confused knowledge, can be
justly said to form the
best part of language. It is more than
probable, that many
classes of the brute creation possess
discriminating sounds, by
which they can convey to each other notices
of such objects as concern
their food, shelter, or safety. Yet we
hesitate to call the
aggregate of such sounds a language, otherwise
than metaphorically. The
best part of human language, properly so
called, is derived from
reflection on the acts of the mind itself. It
is formed by a voluntary
appropriation of fixed symbols to internal
acts, to processes and
results of imagination, the greater part of
which have no place in the
consciousness of uneducated man; though in
civilized society, by
imitation and passive remembrance of what they
hear from their religious
instructors and other superiors, the most
uneducated share in the
harvest which they neither sowed, nor reaped.
If the history of the
phrases in hourly currency among our peasants
were traced, a person not
previously aware of the fact would be
surprised at finding so
large a number, which three or four centuries
ago were the exclusive
property of the universities and the schools;
and, at the commencement
of the Reformation, had been transferred from
the school to the pulpit,
and thus gradually passed into common life.
The extreme difficulty,
and often the impossibility, of finding words
for the simplest moral and
intellectual processes of the languages of
uncivilized tribes has
proved perhaps the weightiest obstacle to the
progress of our most
zealous and adroit missionaries. Yet these tribes
are surrounded by the same
nature as our peasants are; but in still
more impressive forms; and
they are, moreover, obliged to
particularize many more of
them. When, therefore, Mr. Wordsworth adds,
"accordingly, such a
language"--(meaning, as before, the language of
rustic life purified from
provincialism)--"arising out of repeated
experience and regular
feelings, is a more permanent, and a far more
philosophical language,
than that which is frequently substituted for
it by Poets, who think
that they are conferring honour upon themselves
and their art in proportion
as they indulge in arbitrary and
capricious habits of
expression;" it may be answered, that the
language, which he has in
view, can be attributed to rustics with no
greater right, than the
style of Hooker or Bacon to Tom Brown or Sir
Roger L'Estrange.
Doubtless, if what is peculiar to each were omitted
in each, the result must
needs be the same. Further, that the poet,
who uses an illogical
diction, or a style fitted to excite only the
low and changeable
pleasure of wonder by means of groundless novelty,
substitutes a language of
folly and vanity, not for that of the
rustic, but for that of
good sense and natural feeling.
Here let me be permitted
to remind the reader, that the positions,
which I controvert, are
contained in the sentences--"a selection of
the real language of
men;"--"the language of these men" (that is, men
in low and rustic life)
"has been adopted; I have proposed to myself
to imitate, and, as far as
is possible, to adopt the very language of
men."
"Between the language
of prose and that of metrical composition, there
neither is, nor can be,
any essential difference:" it is against these
exclusively that my
opposition is directed.
I object, in the very
first instance, to an equivocation in the use of
the word "real."
Every man's language varies, according to the extent
of his knowledge, the
activity of his faculties, and the depth or
quickness of his feelings.
Every man's language has, first, its
individualities; secondly,
the common properties of the class to which
he belongs; and thirdly,
words and phrases of universal use. The
language of Hooker, Bacon,
Bishop Taylor, and Burke differs from the
common language of the
learned class only by the superior number and
novelty of the thoughts
and relations which they had to convey. The
language of Algernon
Sidney differs not at all from that, which every
well-educated gentleman
would wish to write, and (with due allowances
for the undeliberateness,
and less connected train, of thinking
natural and proper to conversation)
such as he would wish to talk.
Neither one nor the other
differ half as much from the general
language of cultivated
society, as the language of Mr. Wordsworth's
homeliest composition
differs from that of a common peasant. For
"real"
therefore, we must substitute ordinary, or lingua communis. And
this, we have proved, is
no more to be found in the phraseology of low
and rustic life than in
that of any other class. Omit the
peculiarities of each and
the result of course must be common to all.
And assuredly the
omissions and changes to be made in the language of
rustics, before it could
be transferred to any species of poem, except
the drama or other
professed imitation, are at least as numerous and
weighty, as would be
required in adapting to the same purpose the
ordinary language of
tradesmen and manufacturers. Not to mention, that
the language so highly
extolled by Mr. Wordsworth varies in every
county, nay in every
village, according to the accidental character of
the clergyman, the
existence or non-existence of schools; or even,
perhaps, as the exciteman,
publican, and barber happen to be, or not
to be, zealous
politicians, and readers of the weekly newspaper pro
bono publico. Anterior to
cultivation the lingua communis of every
country, as Dante has well
observed, exists every where in parts, and
no where as a whole.
Neither is the case
rendered at all more tenable by the addition of
the words, "in a
state of excitement." For the nature of a man's
words, where he is strongly
affected by joy, grief, or anger, must
necessarily depend on the
number and quality of the general truths,
conceptions and images,
and of the words expressing them, with which
his mind had been
previously stored. For the property of passion is
not to create; but to set
in increased activity. At least, whatever
new connections of
thoughts or images, or --(which is equally, if not
more than equally, the
appropriate effect of strong excitement)--
whatever generalizations
of truth or experience the heat of passion
may produce; yet the terms
of their conveyance must have pre-existed
in his former
conversations, and are only collected and crowded
together by the unusual
stimulation. It is indeed very possible to
adopt in a poem the
unmeaning repetitions, habitual phrases, and other
blank counters, which an
unfurnished or confused understanding
interposes at short
intervals, in order to keep hold of his subject,
which is still slipping
from him, and to give him time for
recollection; or, in mere aid
of vacancy, as in the scanty companies
of a country stage the
same player pops backwards and forwards, in
order to prevent the
appearance of empty spaces, in the procession of
Macbeth, or Henry VIII.
But what assistance to the poet, or ornament
to the poem, these can
supply, I am at a loss to conjecture. Nothing
assuredly can differ
either in origin or in mode more widely from the
apparent tautologies of
intense and turbulent feeling, in which the
passion is greater and of
longer endurance than to be exhausted or
satisfied by a single
representation of the image or incident exciting
it. Such repetitions I
admit to be a beauty of the highest kind; as
illustrated by Mr.
Wordsworth himself from the song of Deborah. At her
feet he bowed, he fell, he
lay down: at her feet he bowed, he fell:
where he bowed, there he
fell down dead. Judges v. 27.
CHAPTER XVIII
Language of metrical
composition, why and wherein essentially
different from that of
prose--Origin and elements of metre--Its
necessary consequences,
and the conditions thereby imposed on the
metrical writer in the
choice of his diction.
I conclude, therefore,
that the attempt is impracticable; and that,
were it not impracticable,
it would still be useless. For the very
power of making the
selection implies the previous possession of the
language selected. Or
where can the poet have lived? And by what rules
could he direct his
choice, which would not have enabled him to select
and arrange his words by
the light of his own judgment? We do not
adopt the language of a
class by the mere adoption of such words
exclusively, as that class
would use, or at least understand; but
likewise by following the
order, in which the words of such men are
wont to succeed each
other. Now this order, in the intercourse of
uneducated men, is
distinguished from the diction of their superiors
in knowledge and power, by
the greater disjunction and separation in
the component parts of
that, whatever it be, which they wish to
communicate. There is a
want of that prospectiveness of mind, that
surview, which enables a
man to foresee the whole of what he is to
convey, appertaining to
any one point; and by this means so to
subordinate and arrange
the different parts according to their
relative importance, as to
convey it at once, and as an organized
whole.
Now I will take the first
stanza, on which I have chanced to open, in
the Lyrical Ballads. It is
one the most simple and the least peculiar
in its language.
"In distant countries have I been,
And yet I have not often seen
A healthy man, a man full grown,
Weep in the public roads, alone.
But such a one, on English ground,
And in the broad highway, I met;
Along the broad highway he came,
His cheeks with tears were wet
Sturdy he seemed, though he was sad;
And in his arms a lamb he had."
The words here are
doubtless such as are current in all ranks of life;
and of course not less so
in the hamlet and cottage than in the shop,
manufactory, college, or
palace. But is this the order, in which the
rustic would have placed
the words? I am grievously deceived, if the
following less compact
mode of commencing the same tale be not a far
more faithful copy.
"I have been in a many parts, far and near, and I
don't know that I ever saw
before a man crying by himself in the
public road; a grown man I
mean, that was neither sick nor hurt,"
etc., etc. But when I turn
to the following stanza in The Thorn:
"At all times of the day and night
This wretched woman thither goes;
And she is known to every star,
And every wind that blows
And there, beside the Thorn, she sits,
When the blue day-light's in the skies,
And when the whirlwind's on the hill,
Or frosty air is keen and still,
And to herself she cries,
Oh misery! Oh misery!
Oh woe is me! Oh misery!"
and compare this with the
language of ordinary men; or with that which
I can conceive at all
likely to proceed, in real life, from such a
narrator, as is supposed
in the note to the poem; compare it either in
the succession of the
images or of the sentences; I am reminded of the
sublime prayer and hymn of
praise, which Milton, in opposition to an
established liturgy,
presents as a fair specimen of common extemporary
devotion, and such as we
might expect to hear from every self-inspired
minister of a conventicle!
And I reflect with delight, how little a
mere theory, though of his
own workmanship, interferes with the
processes of genuine
imagination in a man of true poetic genius, who
possesses, as Mr.
Wordsworth, if ever man did, most assuredly does
possess,
"The Vision and the Faculty divine."
One point then alone
remains, but that the most important; its
examination having been,
indeed, my chief inducement for the preceding
inquisition. "There
neither is nor can be any essential difference
between the language of
prose and metrical composition." Such is Mr.
Wordsworth's assertion.
Now prose itself, at least in all
argumentative and
consecutive works, differs, and ought to differ,
from the language of
conversation; even as [66] reading ought to
differ from talking.
Unless therefore the difference denied be that of
the mere words, as
materials common to all styles of writing, and not
of the style itself in the
universally admitted sense of the term, it
might be naturally
presumed that there must exist a still greater
between the ordonnance of
poetic composition and that of prose, than
is expected to distinguish
prose from ordinary conversation.
There are not, indeed,
examples wanting in the history of literature,
of apparent paradoxes that
have summoned the public wonder as new and
startling truths, but
which, on examination, have shrunk into tame and
harmless truisms; as the
eyes of a cat, seen in the dark, have been
mistaken for flames of
fire. But Mr. Wordsworth is among the last men,
to whom a delusion of this
kind would be attributed by anyone, who had
enjoyed the slightest
opportunity of understanding his mind and
character. Where an
objection has been anticipated by such an author
as natural, his answer to
it must needs be interpreted in some sense
which either is, or has
been, or is capable of being controverted. My
object then must be to
discover some other meaning for the term
"essential
difference" in this place, exclusive of the indistinction
and community of the words
themselves. For whether there ought to
exist a class of words in
the English, in any degree resembling the
poetic dialect of the
Greek and Italian, is a question of very
subordinate importance.
The number of such words would be small
indeed, in our language;
and even in the Italian and Greek, they
consist not so much of
different words, as of slight differences in
the forms of declining and
conjugating the same words; forms,
doubtless, which having
been, at some period more or less remote, the
common grammatic flexions
of some tribe or province, had been
accidentally appropriated
to poetry by the general admiration of
certain master intellects,
the first established lights of
inspiration, to whom that
dialect happened to be native.
Essence, in its primary
signification, means the principle of
individuation, the inmost
principle of the possibility of any thing,
as that particular thing.
It is equivalent to the idea of a thing,
whenever we use the word,
idea, with philosophic precision. Existence,
on the other hand, is
distinguished from essence, by the
superinduction of reality.
Thus we speak of the essence, and essential
properties of a circle;
but we do not therefore assert, that any
thing, which really
exists, is mathematically circular. Thus too,
without any tautology we
contend for the existence of the Supreme
Being; that is, for a
reality correspondent to the idea. There is,
next, a secondary use of
the word essence, in which it signifies the
point or ground of
contra-distinction between two modifications of the
same substance or subject.
Thus we should be allowed to say, that the
style of architecture of
Westminster Abbey is essentially different
from that of St. Paul,
even though both had been built with blocks cut
into the same form, and
from the same quarry. Only in this latter
sense of the term must it
have been denied by Mr. Wordsworth (for in
this sense alone is it
affirmed by the general opinion) that the
language of poetry (that
is the formal construction, or architecture,
of the words and phrases)
is essentially different from that of prose.
Now the burden of the
proof lies with the oppugner, not with the
supporters of the common
belief. Mr. Wordsworth, in consequence,
assigns as the proof of
his position, "that not only the language of a
large portion of every
good poem, even of the most elevated character,
must necessarily, except
with reference to the metre, in no respect
differ from that of good
prose, but likewise that some of the most
interesting parts of the
best poems will be found to be strictly the
language of prose, when
prose is well written. The truth of this
assertion might be
demonstrated by innumerable passages from almost
all the poetical writings,
even of Milton himself." He then quotes
Gray's sonnet--
"In vain to me the smiling mornings shine,
And reddening Phoebus lifts his golden
fire;
The birds in vain their amorous descant
join,
Or cheerful fields resume their green
attire.
These ears, alas! for other notes repine;
_A different object do these eyes require;
My lonely anguish melts no heart but mine;
And
in my breast the imperfect joys expire._
Yet morning smiles the busy race to cheer,
And new-born pleasure brings to happier
men;
The fields to all their wonted tribute
bear;
To warm their little loves the birds
complain:
_I fruitless mourn to him that cannot
hear,
And weep the more, because I weep in
vain."_
and adds the following
remark:--"It will easily be perceived, that the
only part of this Sonnet
which is of any value, is the lines printed
in italics; it is equally
obvious, that, except in the rhyme, and in
the use of the single word
`fruitless' for fruitlessly, which is so
far a defect, the language
of these lines does in no respect differ
from that of prose."
An idealist defending his
system by the fact, that when asleep we
often believe ourselves
awake, was well answered by his plain
neighbour, "Ah, but
when awake do we ever believe ourselves asleep?"
Things identical must be
convertible. The preceding passage seems to
rest on a similar sophism.
For the question is not, whether there may
not occur in prose an
order of words, which would be equally proper in
a poem; nor whether there
are not beautiful lines and sentences of
frequent occurrence in
good poems, which would be equally becoming as
well as beautiful in good
prose; for neither the one nor the other has
ever been either denied or
doubted by any one. The true question must
be, whether there are not
modes of expression, a construction, and an
order of sentences, which
are in their fit and natural place in a
serious prose composition,
but would be disproportionate and
heterogeneous in metrical
poetry; and, vice versa, whether in the
language of a serious poem
there may not be an arrangement both of
words and sentences, and a
use and selection of (what are called)
figures of speech, both as
to their kind, their frequency, and their
occasions, which on a
subject of equal weight would be vicious and
alien in correct and manly
prose. I contend, that in both cases this
unfitness of each for the
place of the other frequently will and ought
to exist.
And first from the origin
of metre. This I would trace to the balance
in the mind effected by
that spontaneous effort which strives to hold
in check the workings of
passion. It might be easily explained
likewise in what manner
this salutary antagonism is assisted by the
very state, which it
counteracts; and how this balance of antagonists
became organized into
metre (in the usual acceptation of that term),
by a supervening act of the
will and judgment, consciously and for the
foreseen purpose of
pleasure. Assuming these principles, as the data
of our argument, we deduce
from them two legitimate conditions, which
the critic is entitled to
expect in every metrical work. First, that,
as the elements of metre
owe their existence to a state of increased
excitement, so the metre
itself should be accompanied by the natural
language of excitement.
Secondly, that as these elements are formed
into metre artificially,
by a voluntary act, with the design and for
the purpose of blending
delight with emotion, so the traces of present
volition should throughout
the metrical language be proportionately
discernible. Now these two
conditions must be reconciled and co-
present. There must be not
only a partnership, but a union; an
interpenetration of
passion and of will, of spontaneous impulse and of
voluntary purpose. Again,
this union can be manifested only in a
frequency of forms and
figures of speech, (originally the offspring of
passion, but now the
adopted children of power), greater than would be
desired or endured, where
the emotion is not voluntarily encouraged
and kept up for the sake
of that pleasure, which such emotion, so
tempered and mastered by
the will, is found capable of communicating.
It not only dictates, but
of itself tends to produce a more frequent
employment of picturesque
and vivifying language, than would be
natural in any other case,
in which there did not exist, as there does
in the present, a previous
and well understood, though tacit, compact
between the poet and his
reader, that the latter is entitled to
expect, and the former
bound to supply this species and degree of
pleasurable excitement. We
may in some measure apply to this union the
answer of Polixenes, in
the Winter's Tale, to Perdita's neglect of the
streaked gilliflowers,
because she had heard it said,
"There is an art, which, in their piedness,
shares
With great creating nature.
POL.
Say there be;
Yet
nature is made better by no mean,
But nature makes that mean; so, o'er that
art,
Which, you say, adds to nature, is an art,
That nature makes. You see, sweet maid, we
marry
A gentler scion to the wildest stock;
And make conceive a bark of baser kind
By bud of nobler race. This is an art,
Which does mend nature,--change it rather;
but
The art itself is nature."
Secondly, I argue from the
effects of metre. As far as metre acts in
and for itself, it tends
to increase the vivacity and susceptibility
both of the general
feelings and of the attention. This effect it
produces by the continued
excitement of surprise, and by the quick
reciprocations of
curiosity still gratified and still re-excited,
which are too slight
indeed to be at any one moment objects of
distinct consciousness,
yet become considerable in their aggregate
influence. As a medicated
atmosphere, or as wine during animated
conversation, they act
powerfully, though themselves unnoticed. Where,
therefore, correspondent
food and appropriate matter are not provided
for the attention and
feelings thus roused there must needs be a
disappointment felt; like
that of leaping in the dark from the last
step of a stair-case, when
we had prepared our muscles for a leap of
three or four.
The discussion on the
powers of metre in the preface is highly
ingenious and touches at
all points on truth. But I cannot find any
statement of its powers
considered abstractly and separately. On the
contrary Mr. Wordsworth
seems always to estimate metre by the powers,
which it exerts during,
(and, as I think, in consequence of), its
combination with other
elements of poetry. Thus the previous
difficulty is left
unanswered, what the elements are, with which it
must be combined, in order
to produce its own effects to any
pleasurable purpose.
Double and tri-syllable rhymes, indeed, form a
lower species of wit, and,
attended to exclusively for their own sake,
may become a source of
momentary amusement; as in poor Smart's distich
to the Welsh Squire who
had promised him a hare:
"Tell me, thou son of great Cadwallader!
Hast sent the hare? or hast thou swallow'd
her?"
But for any poetic
purposes, metre resembles, (if the aptness of the
simile may excuse its
meanness), yeast, worthless or disagreeable by
itself, but giving
vivacity and spirit to the liquor with which it is
proportionally combined.
The reference to THE
CHILDREN IN THE WOOD by no means satisfies my
judgment. We all willingly
throw ourselves back for awhile into the
feelings of our childhood.
This ballad, therefore, we read under such
recollections of our own
childish feelings, as would equally endear to
us poems, which Mr.
Wordsworth himself would regard as faulty in the
opposite extreme of gaudy
and technical ornament. Before the invention
of printing, and in a
still greater degree, before the introduction of
writing, metre, especially
alliterative metre, (whether alliterative
at the beginning of the
words, as in PIERCE PLOUMAN, or at the end, as
in rhymes) possessed an
independent value as assisting the
recollection, and
consequently the preservation, of any series of
truths or incidents. But I
am not convinced by the collation of facts,
that THE CHILDREN IN THE
WOOD owes either its preservation, or its
popularity, to its
metrical form. Mr. Marshal's repository affords a
number of tales in prose
inferior in pathos and general merit, some of
as old a date, and many as
widely popular. TOM HICKATHRIFT, JACK THE
GIANT-KILLER, GOODY
TWO-SHOES, and LITTLE RED RIDING-HOOD are
formidable rivals. And
that they have continued in prose, cannot be
fairly explained by the
assumption, that the comparative meanness of
their thoughts and images
precluded even the humblest forms of metre.
The scene of GOODY
TWO-SHOES in the church is perfectly susceptible of
metrical narration; and,
among the thaumata thaumastotata even of the
present age, I do not
recollect a more astonishing image than that of
the "whole rookery,
that flew out of the giant's beard," scared by the
tremendous voice, with
which this monster answered the challenge of
the heroic TOM
HICKATHRIFT!
If from these we turn to
compositions universally, and independently
of all early associations,
beloved and admired; would the MARIA, THE
MONK, or THE POOR MAN'S
ASS of Sterne, be read with more delight, or
have a better chance of
immortality, had they without any change in
the diction been composed
in rhyme, than in their present state? If I
am not grossly mistaken,
the general reply would be in the negative.
Nay, I will confess, that,
in Mr. Wordsworth's own volumes, the
ANECDOTE FOR FATHERS,
SIMON LEE, ALICE FELL, BEGGARS, and THE SAILOR'S
MOTHER, notwithstanding
the beauties which are to be found in each of
them where the poet
interposes the music of his own thoughts, would
have been more delightful
to me in prose, told and managed, as by Mr.
Wordsworth they would have
been, in a moral essay or pedestrian tour.
Metre in itself is simply
a stimulant of the attention, and therefore
excites the question: Why
is the attention to be thus stimulated? Now
the question cannot be
answered by the pleasure of the metre itself;
for this we have shown to
be conditional, and dependent on the
appropriateness of the
thoughts and expressions, to which the metrical
form is superadded.
Neither can I conceive any other answer that can
be rationally given, short
of this: I write in metre, because I am
about to use a language
different from that of prose. Besides, where
the language is not such,
how interesting soever the reflections are,
that are capable of being
drawn by a philosophic mind from the
thoughts or incidents of
the poem, the metre itself must often become
feeble. Take the last
three stanzas of THE SAILOR'S MOTHER, for
instance. If I could for a
moment abstract from the effect produced on
the author's feelings, as
a man, by the incident at the time of its
real occurrence, I would
dare appeal to his own judgment, whether in
the metre itself he found
a sufficient reason for their being written
metrically?
And, thus continuing, she said,
"I had a Son, who many a day
Sailed on the seas; but he is dead;
In Denmark he was cast away;
And I have travelled far as Hull to see
What clothes he might have left, or other
property.
The Bird and Cage they both were his
'Twas my Son's Bird; and neat and trim
He kept it: many voyages
This Singing-bird hath gone with him;
When last he sailed he left the Bird behind;
As it might be, perhaps, from bodings of his
mind.
He to a Fellow-lodger's care
Had left it, to be watched and fed,
Till he came back again; and there
I found it when my Son was dead;
And now, God help me for my little wit!
I trail it with me, Sir! he took so much delight
in it."
If disproportioning the
emphasis we read these stanzas so as to make
the rhymes perceptible,
even tri-syllable rhymes could scarcely
produce an equal sense of
oddity and strangeness, as we feel here in
finding rhymes at all in
sentences so exclusively colloquial. I would
further ask whether, but
for that visionary state, into which the
figure of the woman and
the susceptibility of his own genius had
placed the poet's
imagination,--(a state, which spreads its influence
and colouring over all,
that co-exists with the exciting cause, and in
which
"The simplest, and the most familiar things
Gain a strange power of spreading awe
around them,") [67]
I would ask the poet
whether he would not have felt an abrupt downfall
in these verses from the
preceding stanza?
"The ancient spirit is not dead;
Old times, thought I, are breathing there;
Proud was I that my country bred
Such strength, a dignity so fair:
She begged an alms, like one in poor
estate;
I looked at her again, nor did my pride
abate."
It must not be omitted,
and is besides worthy of notice, that those
stanzas furnish the only
fair instance that I have been able to
discover in all Mr.
Wordsworth's writings, of an actual adoption, or
true imitation, of the
real and very language of low and rustic life,
freed from provincialisms.
Thirdly, I deduce the
position from all the causes elsewhere assigned,
which render metre the
proper form of poetry, and poetry imperfect and
defective without metre.
Metre, therefore, having been connected with
poetry most often and by a
peculiar fitness, whatever else is combined
with metre must, though it
be not itself essentially poetic, have
nevertheless some property
in common with poetry, as an intermedium of
affinity, a sort, (if I
may dare borrow a well-known phrase from
technical chemistry), of
mordaunt between it and the super-added
metre. Now poetry, Mr.
Wordsworth truly affirms, does always imply
passion: which word must
be here understood in its most general sense,
as an excited state of the
feelings and faculties. And as every
passion has its proper
pulse, so will it likewise have its
characteristic modes of
expression. But where there exists that degree
of genius and talent which
entitles a writer to aim at the honours of
a poet, the very act of
poetic composition itself is, and is allowed
to imply and to produce,
an unusual state of excitement, which of
course justifies and
demands a correspondent difference of language,
as truly, though not
perhaps in as marked a degree, as the excitement
of love, fear, rage, or
jealousy. The vividness of the descriptions or
declamations in Donne or
Dryden, is as much and as often derived from
the force and fervour of
the describer, as from the reflections, forms
or incidents, which
constitute their subject and materials. The wheels
take fire from the mere
rapidity of their motion. To what extent, and
under what modifications,
this may be admitted to act, I shall attempt
to define in an after
remark on Mr. Wordsworth's reply to this
objection, or rather on
his objection to this reply, as already
anticipated in his
preface.
Fourthly, and as
intimately connected with this, if not the same
argument in a more general
form, I adduce the high spiritual instinct
of the human being
impelling us to seek unity by harmonious
adjustment, and thus
establishing the principle that all the parts of
an organized whole must be
assimilated to the more important and
essential parts. This and
the preceding arguments may be strengthened
by the reflection, that
the composition of a poem is among the
imitative arts; and that
imitation, as opposed to copying, consists
either in the interfusion
of the same throughout the radically
different, or of the
different throughout a base radically the same.
Lastly, I appeal to the
practice of the best poets, of all countries
and in all ages, as
authorizing the opinion, (deduced from all the
foregoing,) that in every
import of the word essential, which would
not here involve a mere
truism, there may be, is, and ought to be an
essential difference
between the language of prose and of metrical
composition.
In Mr. Wordsworth's
criticism of Gray's Sonnet, the reader's sympathy
with his praise or blame
of the different parts is taken for granted
rather perhaps too easily.
He has not, at least, attempted to win or
compel it by argumentative
analysis. In my conception at least, the
lines rejected as of no
value do, with the exception of the two first,
differ as much and as
little from the language of common life, as
those which he has printed
in italics as possessing genuine
excellence. Of the five
lines thus honourably distinguished, two of
them differ from prose
even more widely, than the lines which either
precede or follow, in the
position of the words.
"A different object do these eyes require;
My lonely anguish melts no heart but mine;
And in my breast the imperfect joys
expire."
But were it otherwise,
what would this prove, but a truth, of which no
man ever
doubted?--videlicet, that there are sentences, which would be
equally in their place
both in verse and prose. Assuredly it does not
prove the point, which alone
requires proof; namely, that there are
not passages, which would
suit the one and not suit the other. The
first line of this sonnet
is distinguished from the ordinary language
of men by the epithet to
morning. For we will set aside, at present,
the consideration, that
the particular word "smiling" is hackneyed,
and, as it involves a sort
of personification, not quite congruous
with the common and
material attribute of "shining." And, doubtless,
this adjunction of
epithets for the purpose of additional description,
where no particular
attention is demanded for the quality of the
thing, would be noticed as
giving a poetic cast to a man's
conversation. Should the
sportsman exclaim, "Come boys! the rosy
morning calls you
up:" he will be supposed to have some song in his
head. But no one suspects
this, when he says, "A wet morning shall not
confine us to our
beds." This then is either a defect in poetry, or it
is not. Whoever should
decide in the affirmative, I would request him
to re-peruse any one poem,
of any confessedly great poet from Homer to
Milton, or from Aeschylus
to Shakespeare; and to strike out, (in
thought I mean), every
instance of this kind. If the number of these
fancied erasures did not
startle him; or if he continued to deem the
work improved by their
total omission; he must advance reasons of no
ordinary strength and
evidence, reasons grounded in the essence of
human nature. Otherwise, I
should not hesitate to consider him as a
man not so much proof
against all authority, as dead to it.
The second line,
"And reddening Phoebus lifts his golden
fire;--"
has indeed almost as many
faults as words. But then it is a bad line,
not because the language
is distinct from that of prose; but because
it conveys incongruous
images; because it confounds the cause and the
effect; the real thing
with the personified representative of the
thing; in short, because
it differs from the language of good sense!
That the "Phoebus
"is hackneyed, and a school-boy image, is an
accidental fault,
dependent on the age in which the author wrote, and
not deduced from the
nature of the thing. That it is part of an
exploded mythology, is an
objection more deeply grounded. Yet when the
torch of ancient learning
was re-kindled, so cheering were its beams,
that our eldest poets, cut
off by Christianity from all accredited
machinery, and deprived of
all acknowledged guardians and symbols of
the great objects of
nature, were naturally induced to adopt, as a
poetic language, those
fabulous personages, those forms of the
[68]supernatural in
nature, which had given them such dear delight in
the poems of their great
masters. Nay, even at this day what scholar
of genial taste will not
so far sympathize with them, as to read with
pleasure in Petrarch,
Chaucer, or Spenser, what he would perhaps
condemn as puerile in a
modern poet?
I remember no poet, whose
writings would safelier stand the test of
Mr. Wordsworth's theory,
than Spenser. Yet will Mr. Wordsworth say,
that the style of the following
stanza is either undistinguished from
prose, and the language of
ordinary life? Or that it is vicious, and
that the stanzas are blots
in THE FAERY QUEEN?
"By this the northern wagoner had set
His sevenfold teme behind the stedfast
starre,
That was in ocean waves yet never wet,
But firme is fixt and sendeth light from
farre
To all that in the wild deep wandering
arre
And chearfull chaunticlere with his note
shrill
Had warned once that Phoebus' fiery carre
In hast was climbing up the easterne hill,
Full envious that night so long his roome
did fill."
"At last the golden orientall gate
Of greatest heaven gan to open fayre,
And Phoebus fresh, as brydegrome to his
mate,
Came dauncing forth, shaking his deawie
hayre,
And hurl'd his glist'ring beams through
gloomy ayre:
Which when the wakeful elfe perceived,
streightway
He started up, and did him selfe prepayre
In sun-bright armes and battailous array;
For with that pagan proud he combat will
that day."
On the contrary to how
many passages, both in hymn books and in blank
verse poems, could I,
(were it not invidious), direct the reader's
attention, the style of
which is most unpoetic, because, and only
because, it is the style
of prose? He will not suppose me capable of
having in my mind such
verses, as
"I put my hat upon my head
And walk'd into the Strand;
And there I met another man,
Whose hat was in his hand."
To such specimens it would
indeed be a fair and full reply, that these
lines are not bad, because
they are unpoetic; but because they are
empty of all sense and
feeling; and that it were an idle attempt to
prove that "an ape is
not a Newton, when it is self-evident that he is
not a man." But the
sense shall be good and weighty, the language
correct and dignified, the
subject interesting and treated with
feeling; and yet the style
shall, notwithstanding all these merits, be
justly blamable as
prosaic, and solely because the words and the order
of the words would find
their appropriate place in prose, but are not
suitable to metrical
composition. The CIVIL WARS of Daniel is an
instructive, and even
interesting work; but take the following
stanzas, (and from the
hundred instances which abound I might probably
have selected others far
more striking):
"And to the end we may with better ease
Discern the true discourse, vouchsafe to
shew
What were the times foregoing near to
these,
That these we may with better profit know.
Tell how the world fell into this disease;
And how so great distemperature did grow;
So shall we see with what degrees it came;
How things at full do soon wax out of
frame."
"Ten kings had from the Norman Conqu'ror
reign'd
With intermix'd and variable fate,
When England to her greatest height
attain'd
Of power, dominion, glory, wealth, and
state;
After it had with much ado sustain'd
The violence of princes, with debate
For titles and the often mutinies
Of nobles for their ancient
liberties."
"For first, the Norman, conqu'ring all by
might,
By might was forc'd to keep what he had
got;
Mixing our customs and the form of right
With foreign constitutions, he had
brought;
Mast'ring the mighty, humbling the poorer
wight,
By all severest means that could be
wrought;
And, making the succession doubtful, rent
His new-got state, and left it
turbulent."
Will it be contended on
the one side, that these lines are mean and
senseless? Or on the
other, that they are not prosaic, and for that
reason unpoetic? This
poet's well-merited epithet is that of the
"well-languaged
Daniel;" but likewise, and by the consent of his
contemporaries no less
than of all succeeding critics, "the prosaic
Daniel." Yet those,
who thus designate this wise and amiable writer
from the frequent
incorrespondency of his diction to his metre in the
majority of his
compositions, not only deem them valuable and
interesting on other
accounts; but willingly admit, that there are to
be found throughout his
poems, and especially in his EPISTLES and in
his HYMEN'S TRIUMPH, many
and exquisite specimens of that style which,
as the neutral ground of
prose and verse, is common to both. A fine
and almost faultless
extract, eminent as for other beauties, so for
its perfection in this
species of diction, may be seen in Lamb's
DRAMATIC SPECIMENS, a work
of various interest from the nature of the
selections themselves,
(all from the plays of Shakespeare's
contemporaries),--and
deriving a high additional value from the notes,
which are full of just and
original criticism, expressed with all the
freshness of originality.
Among the possible effects
of practical adherence to a theory, that
aims to identify the style
of prose and verse,--(if it does not indeed
claim for the latter a yet
nearer resemblance to the average style of
men in the viva voce
intercourse of real life)--we might anticipate
the following as not the
least likely to occur. It will happen, as I
have indeed before
observed, that the metre itself, the sole
acknowledged difference,
will occasionally become metre to the eye
only. The existence of
prosaisms, and that they detract from the merit
of a poem, must at length
be conceded, when a number of successive
lines can be rendered,
even to the most delicate ear, unrecognizable
as verse, or as having
even been intended for verse, by simply
transcribing them as
prose; when if the poem be in blank verse, this
can be effected without
any alteration, or at most by merely restoring
one or two words to their
proper places, from which they have been
transplanted [69] for no
assignable cause or reason but that of the
author's convenience; but
if it be in rhyme, by the mere exchange of
the final word of each
line for some other of the same meaning,
equally appropriate,
dignified and euphonic.
The answer or objection in
the preface to the anticipated remark "that
metre paves the way to
other distinctions," is contained in the
following words. "The
distinction of rhyme and metre is regular and
uniform, and not, like
that produced by (what is usually called)
poetic diction, arbitrary,
and subject to infinite caprices, upon
which no calculation
whatever can be made. In the one case the reader
is utterly at the mercy of
the poet respecting what imagery or diction
he may choose to connect
with the passion." But is this a poet, of
whom a poet is speaking?
No surely! rather of a fool or madman: or at
best of a vain or ignorant
phantast! And might not brains so wild and
so deficient make just the
same havoc with rhymes and metres, as they
are supposed to effect
with modes and figures of speech? How is the
reader at the mercy of
such men? If he continue to read their
nonsense, is it not his
own fault? The ultimate end of criticism is
much more to establish the
principles of writing, than to furnish
rules how to pass judgment
on what has been written by others; if
indeed it were possible
that the two could be separated. But if it be
asked, by what principles
the poet is to regulate his own style, if he
do not adhere closely to
the sort and order of words which he hears in
the market, wake,
high-road, or plough-field? I reply; by principles,
the ignorance or neglect
of which would convict him of being no poet,
but a silly or
presumptuous usurper of the name. By the principles of
grammar, logic,
psychology. In one word by such a knowledge of the
facts, material and spiritual,
that most appertain to his art, as, if
it have been governed and
applied by good sense, and rendered
instinctive by habit,
becomes the representative and reward of our
past conscious reasonings,
insights, and conclusions, and acquires the
name of Taste. By what
rule that does not leave the reader at the
poet's mercy, and the poet
at his own, is the latter to distinguish
between the language
suitable to suppressed, and the language, which
is characteristic of
indulged, anger? Or between that of rage and that
of jealousy? Is it
obtained by wandering about in search of angry or
jealous people in
uncultivated society, in order to copy their words?
Or not far rather by the
power of imagination proceeding upon the all
in each of human nature?
By meditation, rather than by observation?
And by the latter in
consequence only of the former? As eyes, for
which the former has
pre-determined their field of vision, and to
which, as to its organ, it
communicates a microscopic power? There is
not, I firmly believe, a
man now living, who has, from his own inward
experience, a clearer
intuition, than Mr. Wordsworth himself, that the
last mentioned are the
true sources of genial discrimination. Through
the same process and by
the same creative agency will the poet
distinguish the degree and
kind of the excitement produced by the very
act of poetic composition.
As intuitively will he know, what
differences of style it at
once inspires and justifies; what
intermixture of conscious
volition is natural to that state; and in
what instances such
figures and colours of speech degenerate into mere
creatures of an arbitrary
purpose, cold technical artifices of
ornament or connection.
For, even as truth is its own light and
evidence, discovering at
once itself and falsehood, so is it the
prerogative of poetic
genius to distinguish by parental instinct its
proper offspring from the
changelings, which the gnomes of vanity or
the fairies of fashion may
have laid in its cradle or called by its
names. Could a rule be
given from without, poetry would cease to be
poetry, and sink into a
mechanical art. It would be morphosis, not
poiaesis. The rules of the
Imagination are themselves the very powers
of growth and production.
The words to which they are reducible,
present only the outlines
and external appearance of the fruit. A
deceptive counterfeit of
the superficial form and colours may be
elaborated; but the marble
peach feels cold and heavy, and children
only put it to their
mouths. We find no difficulty in admitting as
excellent, and the
legitimate language of poetic fervour self-
impassioned, Donne's
apostrophe to the Sun in the second stanza of his
PROGRESS OF THE SOUL.
"Thee, eye of heaven! this great Soul
envies not;
By thy male force is all, we have, begot.
In the first East thou now beginn'st to
shine,
Suck'st early balm and island spices
there,
And wilt anon in thy loose-rein'd career
At Tagus, Po, Seine, Thames, and Danow
dine,
And see at night this western world of
mine:
Yet hast thou not more nations seen than
she,
Who before thee one day began to be,
And, thy frail light being quench'd, shall
long, long outlive
thee."
Or the next stanza but
one:
"Great Destiny, the commissary of God,
That hast mark'd out a path and period
For every thing! Who, where we offspring
took,
Our ways and ends see'st at one instant:
thou
Knot of all causes! Thou, whose changeless
brow
Ne'er smiles nor frowns! O! vouchsafe thou
to look,
And shew my story in thy eternal
book," etc.
As little difficulty do we
find in excluding from the honours of
unaffected warmth and
elevation the madness prepense of pseudopoesy,
or the startling hysteric
of weakness over-exerting itself, which
bursts on the unprepared
reader in sundry odes and apostrophes to
abstract terms. Such are
the Odes to jealousy, to Hope, to Oblivion,
and the like, in Dodsley's
collection and the magazines of that day,
which seldom fail to
remind me of an Oxford copy of verses on the two
SUTTONS, commencing with
"Inoculation, heavenly maid! descend!"
It is not to be denied
that men of undoubted talents, and even poets
of true, though not of
first-rate, genius, have from a mistaken theory
deluded both themselves
and others in the opposite extreme. I once
read to a company of
sensible and well-educated women the introductory
period of Cowley's preface
to his "Pindaric Odes," written in
imitation of the style and
manner of the odes of Pindar. "If," (says
Cowley), "a man
should undertake to translate Pindar, word for word,
it would be thought that
one madman had translated another as may
appear, when he, that
understands not the original, reads the verbal
traduction of him into
Latin prose, than which nothing seems more
raving." I then
proceeded with his own free version of the second
Olympic, composed for the
charitable purpose of rationalizing the
Theban Eagle.
"Queen of all harmonious things,
Dancing words and speaking strings,
What god, what hero, wilt thou sing?
What happy man to equal glories bring?
Begin, begin thy noble choice,
And let the hills around reflect the image
of thy voice.
Pisa does to Jove belong,
Jove and Pisa claim thy song.
The fair first-fruits of war, th' Olympic
games,
Alcides, offer'd up to Jove;
Alcides, too, thy strings may move,
But, oh! what man to join with these can
worthy prove?
Join Theron boldly to their sacred names;
Theron the next honour claims;
Theron to no man gives place,
Is first in Pisa's and in Virtue's race;
Theron there, and he alone,
Ev'n his own swift forefathers has
outgone."
One of the company
exclaimed, with the full assent of the rest, that
if the original were
madder than this, it must be incurably mad. I
then translated the ode
from the Greek, and as nearly as possible,
word for word; and the
impression was, that in the general movement of
the periods, in the form
of the connections and transitions, and in
the sober majesty of lofty
sense, it appeared to them to approach more
nearly, than any other
poetry they had heard, to the style of our
Bible, in the prophetic
books. The first strophe will suffice as a
specimen:
"Ye harp-controlling hymns! (or) ye hymns
the sovereigns of harps!
What God? what Hero?
What Man shall we celebrate?
Truly Pisa indeed is of Jove,
But the Olympiad (or the Olympic games)
did Hercules establish,
The first-fruits of the spoils of war.
But Theron for the four-horsed car,
That bore victory to him,
It behoves us now to voice aloud:
The Just, the Hospitable,
The Bulwark of Agrigentum,
Of renowned fathers
The Flower, even him
Who preserves his native city erect and
safe."
But are such rhetorical
caprices condemnable only for their deviation
from the language of real
life? and are they by no other means to be
precluded, but by the
rejection of all distinctions between prose and
verse, save that of metre?
Surely good sense, and a moderate insight
into the constitution of
the human mind, would be amply sufficient to
prove, that such language
and such combinations are the native product
neither of the fancy nor
of the imagination; that their operation
consists in the excitement
of surprise by the juxta-position and
apparent reconciliation of
widely different or incompatible things. As
when, for instance, the
hills are made to reflect the image of a
voice. Surely, no unusual
taste is requisite to see clearly, that this
compulsory juxtaposition
is not produced by the presentation of
impressive or delightful
forms to the inward vision, nor by any
sympathy with the
modifying powers with which the genius of the poet
had united and inspirited
all the objects of his thought; that it is
therefore a species of
wit, a pure work of the will, and implies a
leisure and
self-possession both of thought and of feeling,
incompatible with the
steady fervour of a mind possessed and filled
with the grandeur of its
subject. To sum up the whole in one sentence.
When a poem, or a part of
a poem, shall be adduced, which is evidently
vicious in the figures and
centexture of its style, yet for the
condemnation of which no
reason can be assigned, except that it
differs from the style in
which men actually converse, then, and not
till then, can I hold this
theory to be either plausible, or
practicable, or capable of
furnishing either rule, guidance, or
precaution, that might
not, more easily and more safely, as well as
more naturally, have been
deduced in the author's own mind from
considerations of grammar,
logic, and the truth and nature of things,
confirmed by the authority
of works, whose fame is not of one country
nor of one age.
CHAPTER XIX
Continuation--Concerning
the real object which, it is probable, Mr.
Wordsworth had before him
in his critical preface--Elucidation and
application of this.
It might appear from some
passages in the former part of Mr.
Wordsworth's preface, that
he meant to confine his theory of style,
and the necessity of a
close accordance with the actual language of
men, to those particular
subjects from low and rustic life, which by
way of experiment he had
purposed to naturalize as a new species in
our English poetry. But
from the train of argument that follows; from
the reference to Milton;
and from the spirit of his critique on Gray's
sonnet; those sentences
appear to have been rather courtesies of
modesty, than actual
limitations of his system. Yet so groundless does
this system appear on a
close examination; and so strange and
overwhelming [70] in its
consequences, that I cannot, and I do not,
believe that the poet did
ever himself adopt it in the unqualified
sense, in which his
expressions have been understood by others, and
which, indeed, according
to all the common laws of interpretation they
seem to bear. What then
did he mean? I apprehend, that in the clear
perception, not
unaccompanied with disgust or contempt, of the gaudy
affectations of a style
which passed current with too many for poetic
diction, (though in truth
it had as little pretensions to poetry, as
to logic or common sense,)
he narrowed his view for the time; and
feeling a justifiable
preference for the language of nature and of
good sense, even in its
humblest and least ornamented forms, he
suffered himself to
express, in terms at once too large and too
exclusive, his predilection
for a style the most remote possible from
the false and showy
splendour which he wished to explode. It is
possible, that this
predilection, at first merely comparative,
deviated for a time into
direct partiality. But the real object which
he had in view, was, I
doubt not, a species of excellence which had
been long before most
happily characterized by the judicious and
amiable Garve, whose works
are so justly beloved and esteemed by the
Germans, in his remarks on
Gellert, from which the following is
literally translated.
"The talent, that is required in order to make,
excellent verses, is
perhaps greater than the philosopher is ready to
admit, or would find it in
his power to acquire: the talent to seek
only the apt expression of
the thought, and yet to find at the same
time with it the rhyme and
the metre. Gellert possessed this happy
gift, if ever any one of
our poets possessed it; and nothing perhaps
contributed more to the
great and universal impression which his
fables made on their first
publication, or conduces more to their
continued popularity. It
was a strange and curious phaenomenon, and
such as in Germany had
been previously unheard of, to read verses in
which everything was
expressed just as one would wish to talk, and yet
all dignified, attractive,
and interesting; and all at the same time
perfectly correct as to
the measure of the syllables and the rhyme. It
is certain, that poetry
when it has attained this excellence makes a
far greater impression
than prose. So much so indeed, that even the
gratification which the
very rhymes afford, becomes then no longer a
contemptible or trifling
gratification." [71]
However novel this
phaenomenon may have been in Germany at the time of
Gellert, it is by no means
new, nor yet of recent existence in our
language. Spite of the
licentiousness with which Spenser occasionally
compels the orthography of
his words into a subservience to his
rhymes, the whole FAIRY
QUEEN is an almost continued instance of this
beauty. Waller's song GO,
LOVELY ROSE, is doubtless familiar to most
of my readers; but if I
had happened to have had by me the Poems of
Cotton, more but far less
deservedly celebrated as the author of the
VIRGIL TRAVESTIED, I
should have indulged myself, and I think have
gratified many, who are
not acquainted with his serious works, by
selecting some admirable
specimens of this style. There are not a few
poems in that volume,
replete with every excellence of thought, image,
and passion, which we
expect or desire in the poetry of the milder
muse; and yet so worded,
that the reader sees no one reason either in
the selection or the order
of the words, why he might not have said
the very same in an
appropriate conversation, and cannot conceive how
indeed he could have
expressed such thoughts otherwise without loss or
injury to his meaning.
But in truth our language
is, and from the first dawn of poetry ever
has been, particularly
rich in compositions distinguished by this
excellence. The final e,
which is now mute, in Chaucer's age was
either sounded or dropt
indifferently. We ourselves still use either
"beloved" or
"belov'd" according as the rhyme, or measure, or the
purpose of more or less
solemnity may require. Let the reader then
only adopt the
pronunciation of the poet and of the court, at which he
lived, both with respect
to the final e and to the accentuation of the
last syllable; I would
then venture to ask, what even in the
colloquial language of
elegant and unaffected women, (who are the
peculiar mistresses of
"pure English and undefiled,") what could we
hear more natural, or
seemingly more unstudied, than the following
stanzas from Chaucer's
TROILUS AND CRESEIDE.
"And after this forth to the gate he wente,
Ther as Creseide out rode a ful gode pass,
And up and doun there made he many' a
wente,
And to himselfe ful oft he said, Alas!
Fro hennis rode my blisse and my solas
As woulde blisful God now for his joie,
I might her sene agen come in to Troie!
And to the yondir hil I gan
her Bide,
Alas! and there I toke of her my leve
And yond I saw her to her fathir ride;
For sorow of whiche mine hert shall
to-cleve;
And hithir home I came whan it was eve,
And here I dwel, out-cast from ally joie,
And steal, til I maie sene her efte in
Troie.
"And of himselfe imaginid
he ofte
To ben defaitid, pale and woxin lesse
Than he was wonte, and that men saidin
softe,
What may it be? who can the sothe gesse,
Why
Troilus hath al this hevinesse?
And al this n' as but his melancolie,
That he had of himselfe suche fantasie.
Anothir time imaginin he would
That every wight, that past him by the
wey,
Had of him routhe, and that thei saien
should,
I am right sory, Troilus wol dey!
And thus he drove a daie yet forth or
twey,
As ye have herde: suche life gan he to
lede
As he that stode betwixin hope and drede:
For which him likid in his
songis shewe
Th'
encheson of his wo as he best might,
And made a songe of words but a fewe,
Somwhat his woful herte for to light,
And whan he was from every mann'is sight
With softe voice he of his lady dere,
That absent was, gan sing as ye may here:
* * * * * *
This song, when he thus songin
had, ful Bone
He fil agen into his sighis olde
And every night, as was his wonte to done;
He stode the bright moone to beholde
And all his sorowe to the moone he tolde,
And said: I wis, whan thou art hornid
newe,
I shall be glad, if al the world be
trewe!"
Another exquisite master
of this species of style, where the scholar
and the poet supplies the
material, but the perfect well-bred
gentleman the expressions
and the arrangement, is George Herbert. As
from the nature of the
subject, and the too frequent quaintness of the
thoughts, his TEMPLE; or
SACRED POEMS AND PRIVATE EJACULATIONS are
Comparatively but little
known, I shall extract two poems. The first
is a sonnet, equally
admirable for the weight, number, and expression
of the thoughts, and for
the simple dignity of the language. Unless,
indeed, a fastidious taste
should object to the latter half of the
sixth line. The second is
a poem of greater length, which I have
chosen not only for the
present purpose, but likewise as a striking
example and illustration
of an assertion hazarded in a former page of
these sketches namely,
that the characteristic fault of our elder
poets is the reverse of
that, which distinguishes too many of our more
recent versifiers; the one
conveying the most fantastic thoughts in
the most correct and
natural language; the other in the most fantastic
language conveying the
most trivial thoughts. The latter is a riddle
of words; the former an
enigma of thoughts. The one reminds me of an
odd passage in Drayton's
IDEAS
As other men, so I myself do muse,
Why in this sort I wrest invention so;
And why these giddy metaphors I use,
Leaving the path the greater part do go;
I will resolve you: I am lunatic! [72]
The other recalls a still
odder passage in THE SYNAGOGUE: or THE
SHADOW OF THE TEMPLE, a
connected series of poems in imitation of
Herbert's TEMPLE, and, in
some editions, annexed to it.
O how my mind
Is gravell'd!
Not a thought,
That I can find,
But's ravell'd
All to nought!
Short ends of threds,
And narrow shreds
Of lists,
Knots, snarled ruffs,
Loose broken tufts
Of twists,
Are my torn meditations ragged clothing,
Which, wound and woven, shape a suit for
nothing:
One while I think, and then I am in pain
To think how to unthink that thought again.
Immediately after these
burlesque passages I cannot proceed to the
extracts promised, without
changing the ludicrous tone of feeling by
the interposition of the
three following stanzas of Herbert's.
VIRTUE.
Sweet day, so cool, so calm, so bright,
The bridal of the earth and sky,
The dew shall weep thy fall to-night;
For thou must die.
Sweet rose, whose hue angry and brave
Bids the rash gazer wipe his eye
Thy root is ever in its grave,
And thou must die.
Sweet spring, full of sweet days and roses,
A box,
where sweets compacted lie
My music shews, ye have your closes,
And all must die.
THE BOSOM SIN:
A SONNET BY GEORGE HERBERT.
Lord, with what care hast thou
begirt us round,
Parents first season us; then
schoolmasters
Deliver us to laws; they send us
bound
To rules of reason, holy messengers,
Pulpits and Sundays, sorrow dogging sin,
Afflictions sorted, anguish of all
sizes,
Fine nets and stratagems to catch us
in,
Bibles laid open, millions of surprises;
Blessings beforehand, ties of gratefulness,
The sound of Glory ringing in our
ears
Without, our shame; within, our
consciences;
Angels and grace, eternal hopes and fears.
Yet all these fences and their whole
array
One cunning bosom-sin blows quite
away.
LOVE UNKNOWN.
Dear friend, sit down, the tale is long and sad
And in my faintings, I presume, your love
Will more comply than help. A Lord I had,
And have, of whom some grounds, which may
improve,
I hold for two lives, and both lives in me.
To him I brought a dish of fruit one day,
And in the middle placed my heart. But he
(I sigh to say)
Look'd on a servant, who did know his eye,
Better than you know me, or (which is one)
Than I myself. The servant instantly,
Quitting the fruit, seiz'd on my heart alone,
And threw it in a font, wherein did fall
A stream of blood, which issued from the side
Of a great rock: I well remember all,
And have good cause: there it was dipt and dyed,
And wash'd, and wrung: the very wringing yet
Enforceth tears. "Your heart was foul, I
fear."
Indeed 'tis true. I did and do commit
Many a fault, more than my lease will bear;
Yet still ask'd pardon, and was not denied.
But you shall hear. After my heart was well,
And clean and fair, as I one eventide
(I sigh to tell)
Walk'd by
myself abroad, I saw a large
And spacious furnace flaming, and thereon
A boiling caldron, round about whose verge
Was in great letters set AFFLICTION.
The greatness shew'd the owner. So I went
To fetch a sacrifice out of my fold,
Thinking with that, which I did thus present,
To warm his love, which, I did fear, grew cold.
But as my heart did tender it, the man
Who was to take it from me, slipt his hand,
And threw my heart into the scalding pan;
My heart that brought it (do you understand?)
The offerer's heart. "Your heart was hard,
I fear."
Indeed 'tis true. I found a callous matter
Began to spread and to expatiate there:
But with a richer drug than scalding water
I bath'd it often, ev'n with holy blood,
Which at a board, while many drank bare wine,
A friend did steal into my cup for good,
Ev'n taken inwardly, and most divine
To supple hardnesses. But at the length
Out of the caldron getting, soon I fled
Unto my house, where to repair the strength
Which I had lost, I hasted to my bed:
But when I thought to sleep out all these
faults,
(I sigh to speak)
I found that some had stuff'd the bed with
thoughts,
I would say thorns. Dear, could my heart not
break,
When with my pleasures ev'n my rest was gone?
Full well I understood who had been there:
For I had given the key to none but one:
It must be he. "Your heart was dull, I
fear."
Indeed a slack and sleepy state of mind
Did oft possess me; so that when I pray'd,
Though my lips went, my heart did stay behind.
But all my scores were by another paid,
Who took my guilt upon him. "Truly, Friend,
"For aught I hear, your Master shews to you
"More favour than you wot of. Mark the end.
"The font did only what was old renew
"The caldron suppled what was grown too
hard:
"The thorns did quicken what was grown too
dull:
"All did but strive to mend what you had
marr'd.
"Wherefore be cheer'd, and praise him to
the full
"Each day, each hour, each moment of the
week
"Who fain would have you be new, tender
quick."
CHAPTER XX
The former subject
continued--The neutral style, or that common to
Prose and Poetry,
exemplified by specimens from Chaucer, Herbert, and
others.
I have no fear in
declaring my conviction, that the excellence defined
and exemplified in the
preceding chapter is not the characteristic
excellence of Mr.
Wordsworth's style; because I can add with equal
sincerity, that it is
precluded by higher powers. The praise of
uniform adherence to
genuine, logical English is undoubtedly his; nay,
laying the main emphasis
on the word uniform, I will dare add that, of
all contemporary poets, it
is his alone. For, in a less absolute sense
of the word, I should
certainly include Mr. Bowies, Lord Byron, and,
as to all his later
writings, Mr. Southey, the exceptions in their
works being so few and
unimportant. But of the specific excellence
described in the quotation
from Garve, I appear to find more, and more
undoubted specimens in the
works of others; for instance, among the
minor poems of Mr. Thomas
Moore, and of our illustrious Laureate. To
me it will always remain a
singular and noticeable fact; that a
theory, which would
establish this lingua communis, not only as the
best, but as the only
commendable style, should have proceeded from a
poet, whose diction, next
to that of Shakespeare and Milton, appears
to me of all others the
most individualized and characteristic. And
let it be remembered too,
that I am now interpreting the controverted
passages of Mr.
Wordsworth's critical preface by the purpose and
object, which he may be
supposed to have intended, rather than by the
sense which the words
themselves must convey, if they are taken
without this allowance.
A person of any taste, who
had but studied three or four of
Shakespeare's principal
plays, would without the name affixed scarcely
fail to recognise as
Shakespeare's a quotation from any other play,
though but of a few lines.
A similar peculiarity, though in a less
degree, attends Mr.
Wordsworth's style, whenever he speaks in his own
person; or whenever,
though under a feigned name, it is clear that he
himself is still speaking,
as in the different dramatis personae of
THE RECLUSE. Even in the
other poems, in which he purposes to be most
dramatic, there are few in
which it does not occasionally burst forth.
The reader might often
address the poet in his own words with
reference to the persons
introduced:
"It seems, as I retrace the ballad line by
line
That but half of it is theirs, and the
better half is thine."
Who, having been
previously acquainted with any considerable portion
of Mr. Wordsworth's
publications, and having studied them with a full
feeling of the author's
genius, would not at once claim as
Wordsworthian the little
poem on the rainbow?
"The Child is father of the Man, etc."
Or in the LUCY GRAY?
"No mate, no comrade Lucy knew;
She dwelt on a wide moor;
The sweetest thing that ever grew
Beside a human door."
Or in the IDLE
SHEPHERD-BOYS?
"Along the river's stony marge
The sand-lark chants a joyous song;
The thrush is busy in the wood,
And carols loud and strong.
A thousand lambs are on the rocks,
All newly born! both earth and sky
Keep jubilee, and more than all,
Those boys with their green coronal;
They never hear the cry,
That plaintive cry! which up the hill
Comes from the depth of
Dungeon-Ghyll."
Need I mention the
exquisite description of the Sea-Loch in THE BLIND
HIGHLAND BOY. Who but a
poet tells a tale in such language to the
little ones by the
fire-side as--
"Yet had he many a restless dream;
Both when he heard the eagle's scream,
And when he heard the torrents roar,
And heard the water beat the shore
Near where their
cottage stood.
Beside a
lake their cottage stood,
Not small like our's, a peaceful flood;
But one of mighty size, and strange;
That, rough or smooth, is full of change,
And stirring in its bed.
For to this lake, by night and day,
The great Sea-water finds its way
Through long, long windings of the hills,
And drinks up all the pretty rills
And rivers large and
strong:
Then hurries back the road it came
Returns on errand still the same;
This did it when the earth was new;
And this for evermore will do,
As long as earth shall
last.
And, with the coming of the tide,
Come boats and ships that sweetly ride,
Between the woods and lofty rocks;
And to the shepherds with their flocks
Bring tales of distant
lands."
I might quote almost the
whole of his RUTH, but take the following
stanzas:
But, as you have before been told,
This Stripling, sportive, gay, and bold,
And, with his dancing crest,
So beautiful, through savage lands
Had roamed about with vagrant bands
Of Indians in the West.
The wind, the tempest roaring high,
The tumult of a tropic sky,
Might well be dangerous food
For him, a Youth to whom was given
So much of earth--so much of heaven,
And such impetuous
blood.
Whatever in those climes he found
Irregular in sight or sound
Did to his mind impart
A kindred impulse, seemed allied
To his own powers, and justified
The workings of his
heart.
Nor less, to feed voluptuous thought,
The beauteous forms of nature wrought,
Fair trees and lovely flowers;
The breezes their own languor lent;
The stars had feelings, which they sent
Into those magic bowers.
Yet in his worst pursuits, I ween,
That sometimes there did intervene
Pure hopes of high intent
For passions linked to forms so fair
And stately, needs must have their share
Of noble sentiment."
But from Mr. Wordsworth's
more elevated compositions, which already
form three-fourths of his
works; and will, I trust, constitute
hereafter a still larger
proportion;--from these, whether in rhyme or
blank verse, it would be
difficult and almost superfluous to select
instances of a diction
peculiarly his own, of a style which cannot be
imitated without its being
at once recognised, as originating in Mr.
Wordsworth. It would not
be easy to open on any one of his loftier
strains, that does not contain
examples of this; and more in
proportion as the lines
are more excellent, and most like the author.
For those, who may happen
to have been less familiar with his
writings, I will give
three specimens taken with little choice. The
first from the lines on
the BOY OF WINANDER-MERE,--who
"Blew mimic hootings to the silent owls,
That they might answer him.--And they
would shout
Across the watery vale, and shout again,
With long halloos, and screams, and echoes
loud
Redoubled and redoubled; concourse wild
Of mirth and jocund din! And when it
chanced,
That pauses of deep silence mocked his
skill,
Then sometimes in that silence, while he
hung
Listening, a gentle shock of mild surprise
Has carried far into his heart the voice
Of mountain-torrents; or the visible scene
[73]
Would enter unawares into his mind
With all its solemn imagery, its rocks,
Its woods, and that uncertain heaven,
received
Into the bosom of the steady lake."
The second shall be that
noble imitation of Drayton [74] (if it was
not rather a coincidence)
in the lines TO JOANNA.
--"When I had gazed perhaps two minutes'
space,
Joanna, looking in my eyes, beheld
That ravishment of mine, and laughed aloud.
The Rock, like something starting from a sleep,
Took up the Lady's voice, and laughed again!
That ancient woman seated on Helm-crag
Was ready with her cavern; Hammar-scar
And the tall Steep of Silver-How sent forth
A noise of laughter; southern Lougbrigg heard,
And Fairfield answered with a mountain tone.
Helvellyn far into the clear blue sky
Carried the lady's voice!--old Skiddaw blew
His speaking trumpet!--back out of the clouds
From Glaramara southward came the voice:
And Kirkstone tossed it from its misty
head!"
The third, which is in
rhyme, I take from the SONG AT THE FEAST OF
BROUGHAM CASTLE, upon the
restoration of Lord Clifford, the Shepherd,
to the Estates and Honours
of his Ancestors.
------"Now another
day is come,
Fitter hope, and nobler
doom;
He hath thrown aside his
crook,
And hath buried deep his
book;
Armour rusting in his
halls
On the blood of Clifford
calls,--
'Quell the Scot,'
exclaims the Lance!
Bear me to the heart of
France,
Is the longing of the
Shield--
Tell thy name, thou
trembling Field!--
Field of death, where'er
thou be,
Groan thou with our victory!
Happy day, and mighty
hour,
When our Shepherd, in
his power,
Mailed and horsed, with
lance and sword,
To his ancestors
restored,
Like a re-appearing
Star,
Like a glory from afar,
First shall head the
flock of war!"
"Alas! the fervent harper did not know,
That for a tranquil Soul the Lay was framed,
Who, long compelled in humble walks to go,
Was softened into feeling, soothed, and tamed.
Love had he found in huts where poor men lie;
His daily teachers had been woods and rills,
The silence that is in the starry sky,
The sleep that is among the lonely hills."
The words themselves in
the foregoing extracts, are, no doubt,
sufficiently common for
the greater part.--But in what poem are they
not so, if we except a few
misadventurous attempts to translate the
arts and sciences into
verse? In THE EXCURSION the number of
polysyllabic (or what the
common people call, dictionary) words is
more than usually great.
And so must it needs be, in proportion to the
number and variety of an
author's conceptions, and his solicitude to
express them with
precision.--But are those words in those places
commonly employed in real
life to express the same thought or outward
thing? Are they the style
used in the ordinary intercourse of spoken
words? No! nor are the
modes of connections; and still less the breaks
and transitions. Would any
but a poet--at least could any one without
being conscious that he
had expressed himself with noticeable
vivacity--have described a
bird singing loud by, "The thrush is busy
in the wood?"--or
have spoken of boys with a string of club-moss round
their rusty hats, as the
boys "with their green coronal?"--or have
translated a beautiful
May-day into "Both earth and sky keep jubilee!"
--or have brought all the
different marks and circumstances of a
sealoch before the mind,
as the actions of a living and acting power?
Or have represented the
reflection of the sky in the water, as "That
uncertain heaven received
into the bosom of the steady lake?" Even the
grammatical construction
is not unfrequently peculiar; as "The wind,
the tempest roaring high,
the tumult of a tropic sky, might well be
dangerous food to him, a
youth to whom was given, etc." There is a
peculiarity in the
frequent use of the asymartaeton (that is, the
omission of the connective
particle before the last of several words,
or several sentences used
grammatically as single words, all being in
the same case and
governing or governed by the same verb) and not less
in the construction of
words by apposition ("to him, a youth"). In
short, were there excluded
from Mr. Wordsworth's poetic compositions
all, that a literal
adherence to the theory of his preface would
exclude, two thirds at
least of the marked beauties of his poetry must
be erased. For a far
greater number of lines would be sacrificed than
in any other recent poet;
because the pleasure received from
Wordsworth's poems being
less derived either from excitement of
curiosity or the rapid
flow of narration, the striking passages form a
larger proportion of their
value. I do not adduce it as a fair
criterion of comparative
excellence, nor do I even think it such; but
merely as matter of fact.
I affirm, that from no contemporary writer
could so many lines be
quoted, without reference to the poem in which
they are found, for their
own independent weight or beauty. From the
sphere of my own
experience I can bring to my recollection three
persons of no every-day
powers and acquirements, who had read the
poems of others with more
and more unallayed pleasure, and had thought
more highly of their
authors, as poets; who yet have confessed to me,
that from no modern work
had so many passages started up anew in their
minds at different times,
and as different occasions had awakened a
meditative mood.
CHAPTER XXI
Remarks on the present
mode of conducting critical journals.
Long have I wished to see
a fair and philosophical inquisition into
the character of
Wordsworth, as a poet, on the evidence of his
published works; and a
positive, not a comparative, appreciation of
their characteristic
excellencies, deficiencies, and defects. I know
no claim that the mere
opinion of any individual can have to weigh
down the opinion of the
author himself; against the probability of
whose parental partiality
we ought to set that of his having thought
longer and more deeply on
the subject. But I should call that
investigation fair and
philosophical in which the critic announces and
endeavours to establish
the principles, which he holds for the
foundation of poetry in
general, with the specification of these in
their application to the
different classes of poetry. Having thus
prepared his canons of
criticism for praise and condemnation, he would
proceed to particularize
the most striking passages to which he deems
them applicable,
faithfully noticing the frequent or infrequent
recurrence of similar
merits or defects, and as faithfully
distinguishing what is
characteristic from what is accidental, or a
mere flagging of the wing.
Then if his premises be rational, his
deductions legitimate, and
his conclusions justly applied, the reader,
and possibly the poet
himself, may adopt his judgment in the light of
judgment and in the
independence of free-agency. If he has erred, he
presents his errors in a
definite place and tangible form, and holds
the torch and guides the
way to their detection.
I most willingly admit,
and estimate at a high value, the services
which the EDINBURGH
REVIEW, and others formed afterwards on the same
plan, have rendered to
society in the diffusion of knowledge. I think
the commencement of the
EDINBURGH REVIEW an important epoch in
periodical criticism; and
that it has a claim upon the gratitude of
the literary republic, and
indeed of the reading public at large, for
having originated the
scheme of reviewing those books only, which are
susceptible and deserving
of argumentative criticism. Not less
meritorious, and far more
faithfully and in general far more ably
executed, is their plan of
supplying the vacant place of the trash or
mediocrity, wisely left to
sink into oblivion by its own weight, with
original essays on the
most interesting subjects of the time,
religious, or political;
in which the titles of the books or pamphlets
prefixed furnish only the
name and occasion of the disquisition. I do
not arraign the keenness,
or asperity of its damnatory style, in and
for itself, as long as the
author is addressed or treated as the mere
impersonation of the work
then under trial. I have no quarrel with
them on this account, as
long as no personal allusions are admitted,
and no re-commitment (for
new trial) of juvenile performances, that
were published, perhaps
forgotten, many years before the commencement
of the review: since for
the forcing back of such works to public
notice no motives are
easily assignable, but such as are furnished to
the critic by his own
personal malignity; or what is still worse, by a
habit of malignity in the
form of mere wantonness.
"No private grudge they need, no personal
spite
The viva sectio is its own delight!
All enmity, all envy, they disclaim,
Disinterested thieves of our good name:
Cool, sober murderers of their neighbour's
fame!"
S. T. C.
Every censure, every
sarcasm respecting a publication which the
critic, with the
criticised work before him, can make good, is the
critic's right. The writer
is authorized to reply, but not to
complain. Neither can
anyone prescribe to the critic, how soft or how
hard; how friendly, or how
bitter, shall be the phrases which he is to
select for the expression
of such reprehension or ridicule. The critic
must know, what effect it
is his object to produce; and with a view to
this effect must he weigh
his words. But as soon as the critic
betrays, that he knows
more of his author, than the author's
publications could have
told him; as soon as from this more intimate
knowledge, elsewhere
obtained, he avails himself of the slightest
trait against the author;
his censure instantly becomes personal
injury, his sarcasms
personal insults. He ceases to be a critic, and
takes on him the most
contemptible character to which a rational
creature can be degraded,
that of a gossip, backbiter, and
pasquillant: but with this
heavy aggravation, that he steals the
unquiet, the deforming
passions of the world into the museum; into the
very place which, next to
the chapel and oratory, should be our
sanctuary, and secure
place of refuge; offers abominations on the
altar of the Muses; and
makes its sacred paling the very circle in
which he conjures up the
lying and profane spirit.
This determination of
unlicensed personality, and of permitted and
legitimate censure, (which
I owe in part to the illustrious Lessing,
himself a model of acute,
spirited, sometimes stinging, but always
argumentative and
honourable, criticism) is beyond controversy the
true one: and though I
would not myself exercise all the rights of the
latter, yet, let but the
former be excluded, I submit myself to its
exercise in the hands of
others, without complaint and without
resentment.
Let a communication be
formed between any number of learned men in the
various branches of
science and literature; and whether the president
and central committee be
in London, or Edinburgh, if only they
previously lay aside their
individuality, and pledge themselves
inwardly, as well as
ostensibly, to administer judgment according to a
constitution and code of
laws; and if by grounding this code on the
two-fold basis of
universal morals and philosophic reason, independent
of all foreseen
application to particular works and authors, they
obtain the right to speak
each as the representative of their body
corporate; they shall have
honour and good wishes from me, and I shall
accord to them their fair
dignities, though self-assumed, not less
cheerfully than if I could
inquire concerning them in the herald's
office, or turn to them in
the book of peerage. However loud may be
the outcries for prevented
or subverted reputation, however numerous
and impatient the
complaints of merciless severity and insupportable
despotism, I shall neither
feel, nor utter aught but to the defence
and justification of the
critical machine. Should any literary Quixote
find himself provoked by
its sounds and regular movements, I should
admonish him with Sancho
Panza, that it is no giant but a windmill;
there it stands on its own
place, and its own hillock, never goes out
of its way to attack
anyone, and to none and from none either gives or
asks assistance. When the
public press has poured in any part of its
produce between its
mill-stones, it grinds it off, one man's sack the
same as another, and with
whatever wind may happen to be then blowing.
All the two-and-thirty
winds are alike its friends. Of the whole wide
atmosphere it does not
desire a single finger-breadth more than what
is necessary for its sails
to turn round in. But this space must be
left free and unimpeded.
Gnats, beetles, wasps, butterflies, and the
whole tribe of ephemerals
and insignificants, may flit in and out and
between; may hum, and
buzz, and jar; may shrill their tiny pipes, and
wind their puny horns,
unchastised and unnoticed. But idlers and
bravadoes of larger size
and prouder show must beware, how they place
themselves within its
sweep. Much less may they presume to lay hands
on the sails, the strength
of which is neither greater nor less than
as the wind is, which
drives them round. Whomsoever the remorseless
arm slings aloft, or
whirls along with it in the air, he has himself
alone to blame; though,
when the same arm throws him from it, it will
more often double than
break the force of his fall.
Putting aside the too
manifest and too frequent interference of
national party, and even
personal predilection or aversion; and
reserving for deeper
feelings those worse and more criminal intrusions
into the sacredness of private
life, which not seldom merit legal
rather than literary
chastisement, the two principal objects and
occasions which I find for
blame and regret in the conduct of the
review in question are
first, its unfaithfulness to its own announced
and excellent plan, by
subjecting to criticism works neither indecent
nor immoral, yet of such
trifling importance even in point of size
and, according to the
critic's own verdict, so devoid of all merit, as
must excite in the most
candid mind the suspicion, either that dislike
or vindictive feelings
were at work; or that there was a cold
prudential
pre-determination to increase the sale of the review by
flattering the malignant
passions of human nature. That I may not
myself become subject to
the charge, which I am bringing against
others, by an accusation
without proof, I refer to the article on Dr.
Rennell's sermon in the
very first number of the EDINBURGH REVIEW as
an illustration of my
meaning. If in looking through all the
succeeding volumes the reader
should find this a solitary instance, I
must submit to that
painful forfeiture of esteem, which awaits a
groundless or exaggerated
charge.
The second point of
objection belongs to this review only in common
with all other works of
periodical criticism: at least, it applies in
common to the general
system of all, whatever exception there may be
in favour of particular
articles. Or if it attaches to THE EDINBURGH
REVIEW, and to its only
corrival (THE QUARTERLY), with any peculiar
force, this results from
the superiority of talent, acquirement, and
information which both
have so undeniably displayed; and which
doubtless deepens the
regret though not the blame. I am referring to
the substitution of
assertion for argument; to the frequency of
arbitrary and sometimes
petulant verdicts, not seldom unsupported even
by a single quotation from
the work condemned, which might at least
have explained the
critic's meaning, if it did not prove the justice
of his sentence. Even
where this is not the case, the extracts are too
often made without
reference to any general grounds or rules from
which the faultiness or
inadmissibility of the qualities attributed
may be deduced; and
without any attempt to show, that the qualities
are attributable to the
passage extracted. I have met with such
extracts from Mr.
Wordsworth's poems, annexed to such assertions, as
led me to imagine, that
the reviewer, having written his critique
before he had read the
work, had then pricked with a pin for passages,
wherewith to illustrate
the various branches of his preconceived
opinions. By what
principle of rational choice can we suppose a critic
to have been directed (at
least in a Christian country, and himself,
we hope, a Christian) who
gives the following lines, portraying the
fervour of solitary
devotion excited by the magnificent display of the
Almighty's works, as a
proof and example of an author's tendency to
downright ravings, and
absolute unintelligibility?
"O then what soul was his, when on the tops
Of the high mountains he beheld the sun
Rise up, and bathe the world in light! He
looked--
Ocean and earth, the solid frame of earth,
And ocean's liquid mass, beneath him lay
In gladness and deep joy. The clouds were
touched,
And in their silent faces did he read
Unutterable love. Sound needed none,
Nor any voice of joy: his spirit drank
The spectacle! sensation, soul, and form,
All melted into him; they swallowed up
His animal being; in them did he live,
And by them did he live: they were his
life."
Can it be expected, that
either the author or his admirers, should be
induced to pay any serious
attention to decisions which prove nothing
but the pitiable state of
the critic's own taste and sensibility? On
opening the review they
see a favourite passage, of the force and
truth of which they had an
intuitive certainty in their own inward
experience confirmed, if
confirmation it could receive, by the
sympathy of their most
enlightened friends; some of whom perhaps, even
in the world's opinion,
hold a higher intellectual rank than the
critic himself would
presume to claim. And this very passage they find
selected, as the
characteristic effusion of a mind deserted by
reason!--as furnishing
evidence that the writer was raving, or he
could not have thus strung
words together without sense or purpose! No
diversity of taste seems
capable of explaining such a contrast in
judgment.
That I had over-rated the
merit of a passage or poem, that I had erred
concerning the degree of
its excellence, I might be easily induced to
believe or apprehend. But
that lines, the sense of which I had
analysed and found
consonant with all the best convictions of my
understanding; and the
imagery and diction of which had collected
round those convictions my
noblest as well as my most delightful
feelings; that I should
admit such lines to be mere nonsense or
lunacy, is too much for
the most ingenious arguments to effect. But
that such a revolution of
taste should be brought about by a few broad
assertions, seems little
less than impossible. On the contrary, it
would require an effort of
charity not to dismiss the criticism with
the aphorism of the wise
man, in animam malevolam sapientia haud
intrare potest.
What then if this very
critic should have cited a large number of
single lines and even of
long paragraphs, which he himself
acknowledges to possess
eminent and original beauty? What if he
himself has owned, that
beauties as great are scattered in abundance
throughout the whole book?
And yet, though under this impression,
should have commenced his
critique in vulgar exultation with a
prophecy meant to secure
its own fulfilment? With a "This won't do!"
What? if after such
acknowledgments extorted from his own judgment he
should proceed from charge
to charge of tameness and raving; flights
and flatness; and at
length, consigning the author to the house of
incurables, should
conclude with a strain of rudest contempt evidently
grounded in the
distempered state of his own moral associations?
Suppose too all this done
without a single leading principle
established or even
announced, and without any one attempt at
argumentative deduction,
though the poet had presented a more than
usual opportunity for it,
by having previously made public his own
principles of judgment in
poetry, and supported them by a connected
train of reasoning!
The office and duty of the
poet is to select the most dignified as
well as
"The gayest, happiest attitude of
things."
The reverse, for in all
cases a reverse is possible, is the
appropriate business of
burlesque and travesty, a predominant taste
for which has been always
deemed a mark of a low and degraded mind.
When I was at Rome, among
many other visits to the tomb of Julius II.
I went thither once with a
Prussian artist, a man of genius and great
vivacity of feeling. As we
were gazing on Michael Angelo's MOSES, our
conversation turned on the
horns and beard of that stupendous statue;
of the necessity of each
to support the other; of the super-human
effect of the former, and
the necessity of the existence of both to
give a harmony and
integrity both to the image and the feeling excited
by it. Conceive them
removed, and the statue would become un-natural,
without being
super-natural. We called to mind the horns of the rising
sun, and I repeated the
noble passage from Taylor's HOLY DYING. That
horns were the emblem of
power and sovereignty among the Eastern
nations, and are still retained
as such in Abyssinia; the Achelous of
the ancient Greeks; and
the probable ideas and feelings, that
originally suggested the
mixture of the human and the brute form in
the figure, by which they
realized the idea of their mysterious Pan,
as representing
intelligence blended with a darker power, deeper,
mightier, and more
universal than the conscious intellect of man; than
intelligence;--all these
thoughts and recollections passed in
procession before our
minds. My companion who possessed more than his
share of the hatred, which
his countrymen bore to the French, had just
observed to me, "a
Frenchman, Sir! is the only animal in the human
shape, that by no
possibility can lift itself up to religion or
poetry:" when, lo!
two French officers of distinction and rank entered
the church! "Mark
you," whispered the Prussian, "the first thing which
those scoundrels will
notice--(for they will begin by instantly
noticing the statue in
parts, without one moment's pause of admiration
impressed by the whole)--will
be the horns and the beard. And the
associations, which they
will immediately connect with them will be
those of a he-goat and a
cuckold." Never did man guess more luckily.
Had he inherited a portion
of the great legislator's prophetic powers,
whose statue we had been
contemplating, he could scarcely have uttered
words more coincident with
the result: for even as he had said, so it
came to pass.
In THE EXCURSION the poet
has introduced an old man, born in humble
but not abject circumstances,
who had enjoyed more than usual
advantages of education,
both from books and from the more awful
discipline of nature. This
person he represents, as having been driven
by the restlessness of
fervid feelings, and from a craving intellect
to an itinerant life; and
as having in consequence passed the larger
portion of his time, from
earliest manhood, in villages and hamlets
from door to door,
"A vagrant Merchant bent beneath his
load."
Now whether this be a
character appropriate to a lofty didactick poem,
is perhaps questionable.
It presents a fair subject for controversy;
and the question is to be
determined by the congruity or incongruity
of such a character with
what shall be proved to be the essential
constituents of poetry.
But surely the critic who, passing by all the
opportunities which such a
mode of life would present to such a man;
all the advantages of the
liberty of nature, of solitude, and of
solitary thought; all the
varieties of places and seasons, through
which his track had lain,
with all the varying imagery they bring with
them; and lastly, all the
observations of men,
"Their manners, their enjoyments, and
pursuits,
Their passions and their feelings="
which the memory of these
yearly journeys must have given and recalled
to such a mind--the
critic, I say, who from the multitude of possible
associations should pass
by all these in order to fix his attention
exclusively on the
pin-papers, and stay-tapes, which might have been
among the wares of his
pack; this critic, in my opinion, cannot be
thought to possess a much
higher or much healthier state of moral
feeling, than the
Frenchmen above recorded.
CHAPTER XXII
The characteristic defects
of Wordsworth's poetry, with the principles
from which the judgment,
that they are defects, is deduced--Their
proportion to the
beauties--For the greatest part characteristic of
his theory only.
If Mr. Wordsworth have set
forth principles of poetry which his
arguments are insufficient
to support, let him and those who have
adopted his sentiments be
set right by the confutation of those
arguments, and by the
substitution of more philosophical principles.
And still let the due
credit be given to the portion and importance of
the truths, which are
blended with his theory; truths, the too
exclusive attention to
which had occasioned its errors, by tempting
him to carry those truths
beyond their proper limits. If his mistaken
theory have at all
influenced his poetic compositions, let the effects
be pointed out, and the
instances given. But let it likewise be shown,
how far the influence has
acted; whether diffusively, or only by
starts; whether the number
and importance of the poems and passages
thus infected be great or
trifling compared with the sound portion;
and lastly, whether they
are inwoven into the texture of his works, or
are loose and separable.
The result of such a trial would evince
beyond a doubt, what it is
high time to announce decisively and aloud,
that the supposed characteristics
of Mr. Wordsworth's poetry, whether
admired or reprobated;
whether they are simplicity or simpleness;
faithful adherence to
essential nature, or wilful selections from
human nature of its
meanest forms and under the least attractive
associations; are as
little the real characteristics of his poetry at
large, as of his genius
and the constitution of his mind.
In a comparatively small
number of poems he chose to try an
experiment; and this
experiment we will suppose to have failed. Yet
even in these poems it is
impossible not to perceive that the natural
tendency of the poet's
mind is to great objects and elevated
conceptions. The poem
entitled FIDELITY is for the greater part
written in language, as
unraised and naked as any perhaps in the two
volumes. Yet take the
following stanza and compare it with the
preceding stanzas of the
same poem.
"There sometimes doth a leaping fish
Send through the tarn a lonely cheer;
The crags repeat the raven's croak,
In symphony austere;
Thither the rainbow comes--the cloud--
And mists that spread the flying shroud;
And sun-beams; and the sounding blast,
That, if it could, would hurry past;
But that enormous barrier holds it
fast."
Or compare the four last
lines of the concluding stanza with the
former half.
"Yes, proof was plain that, since the day
On which the Traveller thus had died,
The Dog had watched about the spot,
Or by his Master's side:
How nourish'd here through such long time
He knows, who gave that love sublime,--
And gave that strength of feeling, great
Above all human estimate!"
Can any candid and
intelligent mind hesitate in determining, which of
these best represents the
tendency and native character of the poet's
genius? Will he not decide
that the one was written because the poet
would so write, and the
other because he could not so entirely repress
the force and grandeur of
his mind, but that he must in some part or
other of every composition
write otherwise? In short, that his only
disease is the being out
of his element; like the swan, that, having
amused himself, for a
while, with crushing the weeds on the river's
bank, soon returns to his
own majestic movements on its reflecting and
sustaining surface. Let it
be observed that I am here supposing the
imagined judge, to whom I
appeal, to have already decided against the
poet's theory, as far as
it is different from the principles of the
art, generally
acknowledged.
I cannot here enter into a
detailed examination of Mr. Wordsworth's
works; but I will attempt
to give the main results of my own judgment,
after an acquaintance of
many years, and repeated perusals. And
though, to appreciate the
defects of a great mind it is necessary to
understand previously its
characteristic excellences, yet I have
already expressed myself
with sufficient fulness, to preclude most of
the ill effects that might
arise from my pursuing a contrary
arrangement. I will
therefore commence with what I deem the prominent
defects of his poems
hitherto published.
The first characteristic,
though only occasional defect, which I
appear to myself to find
in these poems is the inconstancy of the
style. Under this name I
refer to the sudden and unprepared
transitions from lines or
sentences of peculiar felicity--(at all
events striking and
original)--to a style, not only unimpassioned but
undistinguished. He sinks
too often and too abruptly to that style,
which I should place in
the second division of language, dividing it
into the three species;
first, that which is peculiar to poetry;
second, that which is only
proper in prose; and third, the neutral or
common to both. There have
been works, such as Cowley's Essay on
Cromwell, in which prose
and verse are intermixed (not as in the
Consolation of Boetius, or
the ARGENIS of Barclay, by the insertion of
poems supposed to have
been spoken or composed on occasions previously
related in prose, but) the
poet passing from one to the other, as the
nature of the thoughts or
his own feelings dictated. Yet this mode of
composition does not
satisfy a cultivated taste. There is something
unpleasant in the being
thus obliged to alternate states of feeling so
dissimilar, and this too
in a species of writing, the pleasure from
which is in part derived
from the preparation and previous expectation
of the reader. A portion
of that awkwardness is felt which hangs upon
the introduction of songs
in our modern comic operas; and to prevent
which the judicious
Metastasio (as to whose exquisite taste there can
be no hesitation, whatever
doubts may be entertained as to his poetic
genius) uniformly placed
the aria at the end of the scene, at the same
time that he almost always
raises and impassions the style of the
recitative immediately
preceding. Even in real life, the difference is
great and evident between
words used as the arbitrary marks of
thought, our smooth
market-coin of intercourse, with the image and
superscription worn out by
currency; and those which convey pictures
either borrowed from one
outward object to enliven and particularize
some other; or used
allegorically to body forth the inward state of
the person speaking; or
such as are at least the exponents of his
peculiar turn and unusual
extent of faculty. So much so indeed, that
in the social circles of
private life we often find a striking use of
the latter put a stop to
the general flow of conversation, and by the
excitement arising from
concentred attention produce a sort of damp
and interruption for some
minutes after. But in the perusal of works
of literary art, we
prepare ourselves for such language; and the
business of the writer,
like that of a painter whose subject requires
unusual splendour and
prominence, is so to raise the lower and neutral
tints, that what in a
different style would be the commanding colours,
are here used as the means
of that gentle degradation requisite in
order to produce the
effect of a whole. Where this is not achieved in
a poem, the metre merely
reminds the reader of his claims in order to
disappoint them; and where
this defect occurs frequently, his feelings
are alternately startled
by anticlimax and hyperclimax.
I refer the reader to the
exquisite stanzas cited for another purpose
from THE BLIND HIGHLAND
BOY; and then annex, as being in my opinion
instances of this
disharmony in style, the two following:
"And one, the rarest, was a shell,
Which he, poor child, had studied well:
The shell of a green turtle, thin
And hollow;--you might sit therein,
It was so wide,
and deep."
"Our Highland Boy oft visited
The house which held this prize; and, led
By choice or chance, did thither come
One day, when no one was at home,
And found the door
unbarred."
Or page 172, vol. I.
"'Tis gone forgotten, let me do
My best. There was a smile or two--
I can remember them, I see
The smiles worth all the world to me.
Dear Baby! I must lay thee down:
Thou troublest me with strange alarms;
Smiles hast thou, sweet ones of thine own;
I cannot keep thee in my arms;
For they confound me: as it is,
I have forgot those smiles of his!"
Or page 269, vol. I.
"Thou hast a nest, for thy love and thy
rest
And though little troubled with sloth
Drunken lark! thou would'st be loth
To be such a traveller as I.
Happy, happy
liver!
_With a soul as strong as a mountain river
Pouring out praise to th' Almighty giver,_
Joy and jollity be with us both!
Hearing thee or else some other,
As merry a brother
I on the earth will go plodding on
By myself cheerfully till the day is
done."
The incongruity, which I
appear to find in this passage, is that of
the two noble lines in
italics with the preceding and following. So
vol. II. page 30.
"Close by a Pond, upon the further side,
He stood alone; a minute's space I guess,
I watch'd him, he continuing motionless
To the Pool's further margin then I drew;
He being all the while before me full in
view."
Compare this with the
repetition of the same image, the next stanza
but two.
"And, still as I drew near with gentle
pace,
Beside the little pond or moorish flood
Motionless as a Cloud the Old Man stood,
That heareth not the loud winds when they
call;
And moveth altogether, if it move at
all."
Or lastly, the second of
the three following stanzas, compared both
with the first and the
third.
"My former thoughts returned; the fear that
kills;
And hope that is unwilling to be fed;
Cold, pain, and labour, and all fleshly
ills;
And mighty Poets in their misery dead.
But now, perplex'd by what the Old Man had
said,
My question eagerly did I renew,
'How is it that you live, and what is it
you do?'
"He with a smile did then his words repeat;
And said, that gathering Leeches far and
wide
He travell'd; stirring thus about his feet
The waters of the Ponds where they abide.
`Once I could meet with them on every
side;
'But they have dwindled long by slow
decay;
'Yet still I persevere, and find them
where I may.'
While he was talking thus, the lonely
place,
The Old Man's shape, and speech, all
troubled me
In my mind's eye I seemed to see him pace
About the weary moors continually,
Wandering about alone and silently."
Indeed this fine poem is
especially characteristic of the author.
There is scarce a defect
or excellence in his writings of which it
would not present a
specimen. But it would be unjust not to repeat
that this defect is only
occasional. From a careful reperusal of the
two volumes of poems, I
doubt whether the objectionable passages would
amount in the whole to one
hundred lines; not the eighth part of the
number of pages. In THE
EXCURSION the feeling of incongruity is seldom
excited by the diction of
any passage considered in itself, but by the
sudden superiority of some
other passage forming the context.
The second defect I can
generalize with tolerable accuracy, if the
reader will pardon an
uncouth and new-coined word. There is, I should
say, not seldom a
matter-of-factness in certain poems. This may be
divided into, first, a
laborious minuteness and fidelity in the
representation of objects,
and their positions, as they appeared to
the poet himself;
secondly, the insertion of accidental circumstances,
in order to the full explanation
of his living characters, their
dispositions and actions;
which circumstances might be necessary to
establish the probability
of a statement in real life, where nothing
is taken for granted by
the hearer; but appear superfluous in poetry,
where the reader is
willing to believe for his own sake. To this
actidentality I object, as
contravening the essence of poetry, which
Aristotle pronounces to be
spoudaiotaton kai philosophotaton genos,
the most intense, weighty
and philosophical product of human art;
adding, as the reason,
that it is the most catholic and abstract. The
following passage from
Davenant's prefatory letter to Hobbes well
expresses this truth.
"When I considered the actions which I meant to
describe; (those inferring
the persons), I was again persuaded rather
to choose those of a
former age, than the present; and in a century so
far removed, as might
preserve me from their improper examinations,
who know not the
requisites of a poem, nor how much pleasure they
lose, (and even the
pleasures of heroic poesy are not unprofitable),
who take away the liberty
of a poet, and fetter his feet in the
shackles of an historian.
For why should a poet doubt in story to mend
the intrigues of fortune
by more delightful conveyances of probable
fictions, because austere
historians have entered into bond to truth?
An obligation, which were
in poets as foolish and unnecessary, as is
the bondage of false
martyrs, who lie in chains for a mistaken
opinion. But by this I
would imply, that truth, narrative and past, is
the idol of historians,
(who worship a dead thing), and truth
operative, and by effects
continually alive, is the mistress of poets,
who hath not her existence
in matter, but in reason."
For this minute accuracy
in the painting of local imagery, the lines
in THE EXCURSION, pp. 96,
97, and 98, may be taken, if not as a
striking instance, yet as
an illustration of my meaning. It must be
some strong motive--(as,
for instance, that the description was
necessary to the intelligibility
of the tale)--which could induce me
to describe in a number of
verses what a draughtsman could present to
the eye with incomparably
greater satisfaction by half a dozen strokes
of his pencil, or the
painter with as many touches of his brush. Such
descriptions too often
occasion in the mind of a reader, who is
determined to understand
his author, a feeling of labour, not very
dissimilar to that, with
which he would construct a diagram, line by
line, for a long
geometrical proposition. It seems to be like taking
the pieces of a dissected
map out of its box. We first look at one
part, and then at another,
then join and dove-tail them; and when the
successive acts of
attention have been completed, there is a
retrogressive effort of
mind to behold it as a whole. The poet should
paint to the imagination,
not to the fancy; and I know no happier case
to exemplify the
distinction between these two faculties. Master-
pieces of the former mode
of poetic painting abound in the writings of
Milton, for example:
"The fig-tree; not that kind for fruit
renown'd,
"But such as at this day, to Indians known,
"In Malabar or Decan spreads her arms
"Branching so broad and long, that in the
ground
"The bended twigs take root, and daughters
grow
"About the mother tree, a pillar'd shade
"High over-arch'd and ECHOING WALKS
BETWEEN;
"There oft the Indian herdsman, shunning
heat,
"Shelters in cool, and tends his pasturing
herds
"At hoop-holes cut through thickest
shade."
This is creation rather
than painting, or if painting, yet such, and
with such co-presence of
the whole picture flashed at once upon the
eye, as the sun paints in
a camera obscura. But the poet must likewise
understand and command
what Bacon calls the vestigia communia of the
senses, the latency of all
in each, and more especially as by a
magical penny duplex, the
excitement of vision by sound and the
exponents of sound. Thus,
"The echoing walks between," may be almost
said to reverse the fable
in tradition of the head of Memnon, in the
Egyptian statue. Such may
be deservedly entitled the creative words in
the world of imagination.
The second division
respects an apparent minute adherence to matter-
of-fact in character and
Incidents; a biographical attention to
probability, and an
anxiety of explanation and retrospect. Under this
head I shall deliver, with
no feigned diffidence, the results of my
best reflection on the
great point of controversy between Mr.
Wordsworth and his objectors;
namely, on the choice of his characters.
I have already declared,
and, I trust justified, my utter dissent from
the mode of argument which
his critics have hitherto employed. To
their question, "Why
did you choose such a character, or a character
from such a rank of
life?"--the poet might in my opinion fairly
retort: why with the
conception of my character did you make wilful
choice of mean or
ludicrous associations not furnished by me, but
supplied from your own
sickly and fastidious feelings? How was it,
indeed, probable, that
such arguments could have any weight with an
author, whose plan, whose
guiding principle, and main object it was to
attack and subdue that
state of association, which leads us to place
the chief value on those
things on which man differs from man, and to
forget or disregard the
high dignities, which belong to Human Nature,
the sense and the feeling,
which may be, and ought to be, found in all
ranks? The feelings with
which, as Christians, we contemplate a mixed
congregation rising or
kneeling before their common Maker, Mr.
Wordsworth would have us
entertain at all times, as men, and as
readers; and by the
excitement of this lofty, yet prideless
impartiality in poetry, he
might hope to have encouraged its
continuance in real life.
The praise of good men be his! In real life,
and, I trust, even in my
imagination, I honour a virtuous and wise
man, without reference to
the presence or absence of artificial
advantages. Whether in the
person of an armed baron, a laurelled bard,
or of an old Pedlar, or
still older Leech-gatherer, the same qualities
of head and heart must
claim the same reverence. And even in poetry I
am not conscious, that I
have ever suffered my feelings to be
disturbed or offended by
any thoughts or images, which the poet
himself has not presented.
But yet I object,
nevertheless, and for the following reasons. First,
because the object in
view, as an immediate object, belongs to the
moral philosopher, and
would be pursued, not only more appropriately,
but in my opinion with far
greater probability of success, in sermons
or moral essays, than in
an elevated poem. It seems, indeed, to
destroy the main
fundamental distinction, not only between a poem and
prose, but even between
philosophy and works of fiction, inasmuch as
it proposes truth for its
immediate object, instead of pleasure. Now
till the blessed time
shall come, when truth itself shall be pleasure,
and both shall be so
united, as to be distinguishable in words only,
not in feeling, it will
remain the poet's office to proceed upon that
state of association,
which actually exists as general; instead of
attempting first to make
it what it ought to be, and then to let the
pleasure follow. But here
is unfortunately a small hysteron-proteron.
For the communication of
pleasure is the introductory means by which
alone the poet must expect
to moralize his readers. Secondly: though I
were to admit, for a
moment, this argument to be groundless: yet how
is the moral effect to be
produced, by merely attaching the name of
some low profession to
powers which are least likely, and to qualities
which are assuredly not
more likely, to be found in it? The Poet,
speaking in his own
person, may at once delight and improve us by
sentiments, which teach us
the independence of goodness, of wisdom,
and even of genius, on the
favours of fortune. And having made a due
reverence before the
throne of Antonine, he may bow with equal awe
before Epictetus among his
fellow-slaves
------"and
rejoice
In the plain presence of his dignity."
Who is not at once
delighted and improved, when the Poet Wordsworth
himself exclaims,
"Oh! many are the Poets that are sown
By Nature; men endowed with highest gifts
The vision and the faculty divine,
Yet wanting the accomplishment of verse,
Nor having e'er, as life advanced, been
led
By circumstance to take unto the height
The measure of themselves, these favoured
Beings,
All but a scattered few, live out their
time,
Husbanding that which they possess within,
And go to the grave, unthought of.
Strongest minds
Are often those of whom the noisy world
Hears least."
To use a colloquial
phrase, such sentiments, in such language, do
one's heart good; though I
for my part, have not the fullest faith in
the truth of the
observation. On the contrary I believe the instances
to be exceedingly rare;
and should feel almost as strong an objection
to introduce such a character
in a poetic fiction, as a pair of black
swans on a lake, in a
fancy landscape. When I think how many, and how
much better books than
Homer, or even than Herodotus, Pindar or
Aeschylus, could have
read, are in the power of almost every man, in a
country where almost every
man is instructed to read and write; and
how restless, how
difficultly hidden, the powers of genius are; and
yet find even in
situations the most favourable, according to Mr.
Wordsworth, for the
formation of a pure and poetic language; in
situations which ensure
familiarity with the grandest objects of the
imagination; but one
Burns, among the shepherds of Scotland, and not a
single poet of humble life
among those of English lakes and mountains;
I conclude, that Poetic
Genius is not only a very delicate but a very
rare plant.
But be this as it may, the
feelings with which,
"I think of Chatterton, the marvellous Boy,
The sleepless Soul, that perished in his
pride;
Of Burns, who walk'd in glory and in joy
Behind his plough, upon the
mountain-side"--
are widely different from
those with which I should read a poem, where
the author, having
occasion for the character of a poet and a
philosopher in the fable
of his narration, had chosen to make him a
chimney-sweeper; and then,
in order to remove all doubts on the
subject, had invented an
account of his birth, parentage and
education, with all the
strange and fortunate accidents which had
concurred in making him at
once poet, philosopher, and sweep! Nothing,
but biography, can justify
this. If it be admissible even in a novel,
it must be one in the
manner of De Foe's, that were meant to pass for
histories, not in the
manner of Fielding's: In THE LIFE OF MOLL
FLANDERS, Or COLONEL JACK,
not in a TOM JONES, or even a JOSEPH
ANDREWS. Much less then
can it be legitimately introduced in a poem,
the characters of which,
amid the strongest individualization, must
still remain
representative. The precepts of Horace, on this point,
are grounded on the nature
both of poetry and of the human mind. They
are not more peremptory,
than wise and prudent. For in the first place
a deviation from them
perplexes the reader's feelings, and all the
circumstances which are
feigned in order to make such accidents less
improbable, divide and
disquiet his faith, rather than aid and support
it. Spite of all attempts,
the fiction will appear, and unfortunately
not as fictitious but as
false. The reader not only knows, that the
sentiments and language
are the poet's own, and his own too in his
artificial character, as
poet; but by the fruitless endeavours to make
him think the contrary, he
is not even suffered to forget it. The
effect is similar to that
produced by an Epic Poet, when the fable
and the characters are
derived from Scripture history, as in THE
MESSIAH of Klopstock, or
in CUMBERLAND'S CALVARY; and not merely
suggested by it as in the
PARADISE LOST of Milton. That illusion,
contradistinguished from
delusion, that negative faith, which simply
permits the images
presented to work by their own force, without
either denial or
affirmation of their real existence by the judgment,
is rendered impossible by
their immediate neighbourhood to words and
facts of known and
absolute truth. A faith, which transcends even
historic belief, must
absolutely put out this mere poetic analogon of
faith, as the summer sun
is said to extinguish our household fires,
when it shines full upon
them. What would otherwise have been yielded
to as pleasing fiction, is
repelled as revolting falsehood. The effect
produced in this latter
case by the solemn belief of the reader, is in
a less degree brought
about in the instances, to which I have been
objecting, by the balked
attempts of the author to make him believe.
Add to all the foregoing
the seeming uselessness both of the project
and of the anecdotes from
which it is to derive support. Is there one
word, for instance,
attributed to the pedlar in THE EXCURSION,
characteristic of a
Pedlar? One sentiment, that might not more
plausibly, even without
the aid of any previous explanation, have
proceeded from any wise
and beneficent old man, of a rank or
profession in which the
language of learning and refinement are
natural and to be
expected? Need the rank have been at all
particularized, where
nothing follows which the knowledge of that rank
is to explain or
illustrate? When on the contrary this information
renders the man's
language, feelings, sentiments, and information a
riddle, which must itself
be solved by episodes of anecdote? Finally
when this, and this alone,
could have induced a genuine Poet to
inweave in a poem of the
loftiest style, and on subjects the loftiest
and of most universal
interest, such minute matters of fact, (not
unlike those furnished for
the obituary of a magazine by the friends
of some obscure
"ornament of society lately deceased" in some obscure
town,) as
"Among the hills of Athol he was born
There, on a small hereditary Farm,
An unproductive slip of rugged ground,
His Father dwelt; and died in poverty;
While He, whose lowly fortune I retrace,
The youngest of three sons, was yet a
babe,
A little One--unconscious of their loss.
But ere he had outgrown his infant days
His widowed Mother, for a second Mate,
Espoused the teacher of the Village
School;
Who on her offspring zealously bestowed
Needful instruction."
"From his sixth year, the Boy of whom I
speak,
In summer tended cattle on the Hills;
But, through the inclement and the
perilous days
Of long-continuing winter, he repaired
To his Step-father's School,"-etc.
For all the admirable
passages interposed in this narration, might,
with trifling alterations,
have been far more appropriately, and with
far greater
verisimilitude, told of a poet in the character of a poet;
and without incurring
another defect which I shall now mention, and a
sufficient illustration of
which will have been here anticipated.
Third; an undue predilection
for the dramatic form in certain poems,
from which one or other of
two evils result. Either the thoughts and
diction are different from
that of the poet, and then there arises an
incongruity of style; or
they are the same and indistinguishable, and
then it presents a species
of ventriloquism, where two are represented
as talking, while in truth
one man only speaks.
The fourth class of
defects is closely connected with the former; but
yet are such as arise
likewise from an intensity of feeling
disproportionate to such
knowledge and value of the objects described,
as can be fairly
anticipated of men in general, even of the most
cultivated classes; and
with which therefore few only, and those few
particularly
circumstanced, can be supposed to sympathize: In this
class, I comprise
occasional prolixity, repetition, and an eddying,
instead of progression, of
thought. As instances, see pages 27, 28,
and 62 of the Poems, vol.
I. and the first eighty lines of the VIth
Book of THE EXCURSION.
Fifth and last; thoughts
and images too great for the subject. This is
an approximation to what
might be called mental bombast, as
distinguished from verbal:
for, as in the latter there is a
disproportion of the
expressions to the thoughts so in this there is a
disproportion of thought
to the circumstance and occasion. This, by
the bye, is a fault of
which none but a man of genius is capable. It
is the awkwardness and
strength of Hercules with the distaff of
Omphale.
It is a well-known fact,
that bright colours in motion both make and
leave the strongest
impressions on the eye. Nothing is more likely
too, than that a vivid
image or visual spectrum, thus originated, may
become the link of
association in recalling the feelings and images
that had accompanied the
original impression. But if we describe this
in such lines, as
"They flash upon that inward eye,
Which is the bliss of solitude!"
in what words shall we
describe the joy of retrospection, when the
images and virtuous actions
of a whole well-spent life, pass before
that conscience which is
indeed the inward eye: which is indeed "the
bliss of solitude?"
Assuredly we seem to sink most abruptly, not to
say burlesquely, and
almost as in a medley, from this couplet to--
"And then my heart with pleasure fills,
And dances with the daffodils." Vol. I. p. 328.
The second instance is
from vol. II. page 12, where the poet having
gone out for a day's tour
of pleasure, meets early in the morning with
a knot of Gipsies, who had
pitched their blanket-tents and straw-beds,
together with their
children and asses, in some field by the road-
side. At the close of the
day on his return our tourist found them in
the same place.
"Twelve hours," says he,
"Twelve hours, twelve bounteous hours are
gone, while I
Have been a traveller under open sky,
Much witnessing of change and cheer,
Yet as I left I find them here!"
Whereat the poet, without
seeming to reflect that the poor tawny
wanderers might probably
have been tramping for weeks together through
road and lane, over moor
and mountain, and consequently must have been
right glad to rest
themselves, their children and cattle, for one
whole day; and overlooking
the obvious truth, that such repose might
be quite as necessary for
them, as a walk of the same continuance was
pleasing or healthful for
the more fortunate poet; expresses his
indignation in a series of
lines, the diction and imagery of which
would have been rather
above, than below the mark, had they been
applied to the immense
empire of China improgressive for thirty
centuries:
"The weary Sun betook himself to rest:--
--Then issued Vesper from the fulgent
west,
Outshining, like a visible God,
The glorious path in which he trod.
And now, ascending, after one dark hour,
And one night's diminution of her power,
Behold the mighty Moon! this way
She looks, as if at them--but they
Regard not her:--oh, better wrong and
strife,
Better vain deeds or evil than such life!
The silent Heavens have goings on
The stars have tasks!--but these have
none!"
The last instance of this
defect,(for I know no other than these
already cited) is from the
Ode, page 351, vol. II., where, speaking of
a child, "a six
years' Darling of a pigmy size," he thus addresses
him:
"Thou best Philosopher, who yet dost keep
Thy heritage, thou Eye among the blind,
That, deaf and silent, read'st the eternal
deep,
Haunted for ever by the Eternal Mind,--
Mighty Prophet! Seer blest!
On whom those truths do rest,
Which we are toiling all our lives to
find!
Thou, over whom thy Immortality
Broods like the Day, a Master o'er a
Slave,
A Present which is not to be put by!"
Now here, not to stop at
the daring spirit of metaphor which connects
the epithets "deaf
and silent," with the apostrophized eye: or (if we
are to refer it to the
preceding word, "Philosopher"), the faulty and
equivocal syntax of the
passage; and without examining the propriety
of making a "Master
brood o'er a Slave," or "the Day" brood at all; we
will merely ask, what does
all this mean? In what sense is a child of
that age a Philosopher? In
what sense does he read "the eternal deep?"
In what sense is he
declared to be "for ever haunted" by the Supreme
Being? or so inspired as
to deserve the splendid titles of a Mighty
Prophet, a blessed Seer?
By reflection? by knowledge? by conscious
intuition? or by any form
or modification of consciousness? These
would be tidings indeed;
but such as would pre-suppose an immediate
revelation to the inspired
communicator, and require miracles to
authenticate his
inspiration. Children at this age give us no such
information of themselves;
and at what time were we dipped in the
Lethe, which has produced
such utter oblivion of a state so godlike?
There are many of us that
still possess some remembrances, more or
less distinct, respecting
themselves at six years old; pity that the
worthless straws only
should float, while treasures, compared with
which all the mines of
Golconda and Mexico were but straws, should be
absorbed by some unknown
gulf into some unknown abyss.
But if this be too wild
and exorbitant to be suspected as having been
the poet's meaning; if
these mysterious gifts, faculties, and
operations, are not
accompanied with consciousness; who else is
conscious of them? or how
can it be called the child, if it be no part
of the child's conscious
being? For aught I know, the thinking Spirit
within me may be
substantially one with the principle of life, and of
vital operation. For aught
I know, it might be employed as a secondary
agent in the marvellous
organization and organic movements of my body.
But, surely, it would be
strange language to say, that I construct my
heart! or that I propel
the finer influences through my nerves! or
that I compress my brain,
and draw the curtains of sleep round my own
eyes! Spinoza and Behmen
were, on different systems, both Pantheists;
and among the ancients
there were philosophers, teachers of the EN KAI
PAN, who not only taught
that God was All, but that this All
constituted God. Yet not
even these would confound the part, as a
part, with the whole, as
the whole. Nay, in no system is the
distinction between the
individual and God, between the Modification,
and the one only
Substance, more sharply drawn, than in that of
Spinoza. Jacobi indeed
relates of Lessing, that, after a conversation
with him at the house of
the Poet, Gleim, (the Tyrtaeus and Anacreon
of the German Parnassus,)
in which conversation Lessing had avowed
privately to Jacobi his
reluctance to admit any personal existence of
the Supreme Being, or the
possibility of personality except in a
finite Intellect, and
while they were sitting at table, a shower of
rain came on unexpectedly.
Gleim expressed his regret at the
circumstance, because they
had meant to drink their wine in the
garden: upon which Lessing
in one of his half-earnest, half-joking
moods, nodded to Jacobi,
and said, "It is I, perhaps, that am doing
that," i.e.
raining!--and Jacobi answered, "or perhaps I;" Gleim
contented himself with
staring at them both, without asking for any
explanation.
So with regard to this
passage. In what sense can the magnificent
attributes, above quoted,
be appropriated to a child, which would not
make them equally suitable
to a bee, or a dog, or afield of corn: or
even to a ship, or to the
wind and waves that propel it? The
omnipresent Spirit works
equally in them, as in the child; and the
child is equally
unconscious of it as they. It cannot surely be, that
the four lines,
immediately following, are to contain the explanation?
"To whom the grave
Is but a lonely bed without the sense or sight
Of day or the warm
light,
A place of thought where we in waiting
lie;"--
Surely, it cannot be that
this wonder-rousing apostrophe is but a
comment on the little
poem, "We are Seven?"--that the whole meaning of
the passage is reducible
to the assertion, that a child, who by the
bye at six years old would
have been better instructed in most
Christian families, has no
other notion of death than that of lying in
a dark, cold place? And
still, I hope, not as in a place of thought!
not the frightful notion
of lying awake in his grave! The analogy
between death and sleep is
too simple, too natural, to render so
horrid a belief possible
for children; even had they not been in the
habit, as all Christian
children are, of hearing the latter term used
to express the former. But
if the child's belief be only, that "he is
not dead, but
sleepeth:" wherein does it differ from that of his
father and mother, or any
other adult and instructed person? To form
an idea of a thing's
becoming nothing; or of nothing becoming a thing;
is impossible to all
finite beings alike, of whatever age, and however
educated or uneducated.
Thus it is with splendid paradoxes in general.
If the words are taken in
the common sense, they convey an absurdity;
and if, in contempt of
dictionaries and custom, they are so
interpreted as to avoid
the absurdity, the meaning dwindles into some
bald truism. Thus you must
at once understand the words contrary to
their common import, in
order to arrive at any sense; and according to
their common import, if
you are to receive from them any feeling of
sublimity or admiration.
Though the instances of
this defect in Mr. Wordsworth's poems are so
few, that for themselves
it would have been scarcely just to attract
the reader's attention
toward them; yet I have dwelt on it, and
perhaps the more for this
very reason. For being so very few, they
cannot sensibly detract
from the reputation of an author, who is even
characterized by the
number of profound truths in his writings, which
will stand the severest
analysis; and yet few as they are, they are
exactly those passages
which his blind admirers would be most likely,
and best able, to imitate.
But Wordsworth, where he is indeed
Wordsworth, may be
mimicked by copyists, he may be plundered by
plagiarists; but he cannot
be imitated, except by those who are not
born to be imitators. For
without his depth of feeling and his
imaginative power his
sense would want its vital warmth and
peculiarity; and without
his strong sense, his mysticism would become
sickly--mere fog, and
dimness!
To these defects which, as
appears by the extracts, are only
occasional, I may oppose,
with far less fear of encountering the
dissent of any candid and
intelligent reader, the following (for the
most part correspondent)
excellencies. First, an austere purity of
language both
grammatically and logically; in short a perfect
appropriateness of the
words to the meaning. Of how high value I deem
this, and how particularly
estimable I hold the example at the present
day, has been already
stated: and in part too the reasons on which I
ground both the moral and
intellectual importance of habituating
ourselves to a strict
accuracy of expression. It is noticeable, how
limited an acquaintance
with the masterpieces of art will suffice to
form a correct and even a
sensitive taste, where none but master-
pieces have been seen and
admired: while on the other hand, the most
correct notions, and the
widest acquaintance with the works of
excellence of all ages and
countries, will not perfectly secure us
against the contagious
familiarity with the far more numerous
offspring of tastelessness
or of a perverted taste. If this be the
case, as it notoriously
is, with the arts of music and painting, much
more difficult will it be,
to avoid the infection of multiplied and
daily examples in the
practice of an art, which uses words, and words
only, as its instruments.
In poetry, in which every line, every
phrase, may pass the
ordeal of deliberation and deliberate choice, it
is possible, and barely
possible, to attain that ultimatum which I
have ventured to propose
as the infallible test of a blameless style;
namely: its
untranslatableness in words of the same language without
injury to the meaning. Be
it observed, however, that I include in the
meaning of a word not only
its correspondent object, but likewise all
the associations which it
recalls. For language is framed to convey
not the object alone but
likewise the character, mood and intentions
of the person who is
representing it. In poetry it is practicable to
preserve the diction
uncorrupted by the affectations and
misappropriations, which
promiscuous authorship, and reading not
promiscuous only because
it is disproportionally most conversant with
the compositions of the
day, have rendered general. Yet even to the
poet, composing in his own
province, it is an arduous work: and as the
result and pledge of a
watchful good sense of fine and luminous
distinction, and of
complete self-possession, may justly claim all the
honour which belongs to an
attainment equally difficult and valuable,
and the more valuable for
being rare. It is at all times the proper
food of the understanding;
but in an age of corrupt eloquence it is
both food and antidote.
In prose I doubt whether
it be even possible to preserve our style
wholly unalloyed by the
vicious phraseology which meets us everywhere,
from the sermon to the
newspaper, from the harangue of the legislator
to the speech from the
convivial chair, announcing a toast or
sentiment. Our chains
rattle, even while we are complaining of them.
The poems of Boetius rise
high in our estimation when we compare them
with those of his
contemporaries, as Sidonius Apollinaris, and others.
They might even be
referred to a purer age, but that the prose, in
which they are set, as
jewels in a crown of lead or iron, betrays the
true age of the writer.
Much however may be effected by education. I
believe not only from
grounds of reason, but from having in great
measure assured myself of
the fact by actual though limited
experience, that, to a
youth led from his first boyhood to investigate
the meaning of every word
and the reason of its choice and position,
logic presents itself as
an old acquaintance under new names.
On some future occasion,
more especially demanding such disquisition,
I shall attempt to prove
the close connection between veracity and
habits of mental accuracy;
the beneficial after-effects of verbal
precision in the
preclusion of fanaticism, which masters the feelings
more especially by
indistinct watch-words; and to display the
advantages which language
alone, at least which language with
incomparably greater ease
and certainty than any other means, presents
to the instructor of
impressing modes of intellectual energy so
constantly, so
imperceptibly, and as it were by such elements and
atoms, as to secure in due
time the formation of a second nature. When
we reflect, that the
cultivation of the judgment is a positive command
of the moral law, since
the reason can give the principle alone, and
the conscience bears
witness only to the motive, while the application
and effects must depend on
the judgment when we consider, that the
greater part of our
success and comfort in life depends on
distinguishing the similar
from the same, that which is peculiar in
each thing from that which
it has in common with others, so as still
to select the most
probable, instead of the merely possible or
positively unfit, we shall
learn to value earnestly and with a
practical seriousness a
mean, already prepared for us by nature and
society, of teaching the
young mind to think well and wisely by the
same unremembered process
and with the same never forgotten results,
as those by which it is
taught to speak and converse. Now how much
warmer the interest is,
how much more genial the feelings of reality
and practicability, and
thence how much stronger the impulses to
imitation are, which a
contemporary writer, and especially a
contemporary poet, excites
in youth and commencing manhood, has been
treated of in the earlier
pages of these sketches. I have only to add,
that all the praise which
is due to the exertion of such influence for
a purpose so important,
joined with that which must be claimed for the
infrequency of the same
excellence in the same perfection, belongs in
full right to Mr.
Wordsworth. I am far however from denying that we
have poets whose general
style possesses the same excellence, as Mr.
Moore, Lord Byron, Mr.
Bowles, and, in all his later and more
important works, our
laurel-honouring Laureate. But there are none, in
whose works I do not
appear to myself to find more exceptions, than in
those of Wordsworth.
Quotations or specimens would here be wholly out
of place, and must be left
for the critic who doubts and would
invalidate the justice of
this eulogy so applied.
The second characteristic
excellence of Mr. Wordsworth's work is: a
correspondent weight and
sanity of the Thoughts and Sentiments,--won,
not from books; but--from
the poet's own meditative observation. They
are fresh and have the dew
upon them. His muse, at least when in her
strength of wing, and when
she hovers aloft in her proper element,
Makes audible a linked lay of truth,
Of truth profound a sweet continuous lay,
Not learnt, but native, her own natural notes!
Even throughout his
smaller poems there is scarcely one, which is not
rendered valuable by some
just and original reflection.
See page 25, vol. II.: or
the two following passages in one of his
humblest compositions.
"O Reader! had you in your mind
Such stores as silent thought can bring,
O gentle Reader! you would find
A tale in every thing;"
and
"I've heard of hearts unkind, kind deeds
With coldness still returning;
Alas! the gratitude of men
Has oftener left me mourning;"
or in a still higher
strain the six beautiful quatrains, page 134.
"Thus fares it still in our decay:
And yet the wiser mind
Mourns less for what age takes away
Than what it leaves behind.
The Blackbird in the summer trees,
The Lark upon the hill,
Let loose their carols when they please,
Are quiet when they will.
With Nature never do they wage
A foolish strife; they see
A happy youth, and their old age
Is beautiful and free!
But we are pressed by heavy laws;
And often glad no more,
We wear a face of joy, because
We have been glad of yore.
If there is one, who need bemoan
His kindred laid in earth,
The household hearts that were his own,
It is the man of mirth.
My days, my Friend, are almost gone,
My life has been approved,
And many love me; but by none
Am I enough beloved;"
or the sonnet on
Buonaparte, page 202, vol. II. or finally (for a
volume would scarce
suffice to exhaust the instances,) the last stanza
of the poem on the
withered Celandine, vol. II. p. 312.
"To be a Prodigal's Favorite--then, worse
truth,
A Miser's Pensioner--behold our lot!
O Man! That from thy fair and shining
youth
Age might but take the things Youth needed
not."
Both in respect of this
and of the former excellence, Mr. Wordsworth
strikingly resembles
Samuel Daniel, one of the golden writers of our
golden Elizabethan age,
now most causelessly neglected: Samuel Daniel,
whose diction bears no
mark of time, no distinction of age which has
been, and as long as our
language shall last, will be so far the
language of the to-day and
for ever, as that it is more intelligible
to us, than the transitory
fashions of our own particular age. A
similar praise is due to
his sentiments. No frequency of perusal can
deprive them of their
freshness. For though they are brought into the
full day-light of every
reader's comprehension; yet are they drawn up
from depths which few in
any age are privileged to visit, into which
few in any age have
courage or inclination to descend. If Mr.
Wordsworth is not equally
with Daniel alike intelligible to all
readers of average
understanding in all passages of his works, the
comparative difficulty
does not arise from the greater impurity of the
ore, but from the nature
and uses of the metal. A poem is not
necessarily obscure,
because it does not aim to be popular. It is
enough, if a work be
perspicuous to those for whom it is written, and
"Fit audience find, though few."
To the "Ode on the
Intimations of Immortality from Recollections of
early Childhood" the
poet might have prefixed the lines which Dante
addresses to one of his
own Canzoni--
"Canzone, i' credo, che saranno radi
Color, che tua ragione intendan bene,
Tanto lor sei faticoso ed alto."
"O lyric song, there will be few, I think,
Who may thy import understand aright:
Thou art for them so arduous and so
high!"
But the ode was intended
for such readers only as had been accustomed
to watch the flux and
reflux of their inmost nature, to venture at
times into the twilight
realms of consciousness, and to feel a deep
interest in modes of
inmost being, to which they know that the
attributes of time and
space are inapplicable and alien, but which yet
can not be conveyed, save
in symbols of time and space. For such
readers the sense is
sufficiently plain, and they will be as little
disposed to charge Mr.
Wordsworth with believing the Platonic pre-
existence in the ordinary
interpretation of the words, as I am to
believe, that Plato
himself ever meant or taught it.
Polla oi ut' anko-
nos okea belae
endon enti pharetras
phonanta synetoisin; es
de to pan hermaeneon
chatizei; sophos o pol-
la eidos phua;
mathontes de labroi
panglossia, korakes os,
akranta garueton
Dios pros ornicha theion.
Third (and wherein he
soars far above Daniel) the sinewy strength and
originality of single
lines and paragraphs: the frequent curiosa
felicitas of his diction,
of which I need not here give specimens,
having anticipated them in
a preceding page. This beauty, and as
eminently characteristic
of Wordsworth's poetry, his rudest assailants
have felt themselves
compelled to acknowledge and admire.
Fourth; the perfect truth
of nature in his images and descriptions as
taken immediately from
nature, and proving a long and genial intimacy
with the very spirit which
gives the physiognomic expression to all
the works of nature. Like
a green field reflected in a calm and
perfectly transparent
lake, the image is distinguished from the
reality only by its
greater softness and lustre. Like the moisture or
the polish on a pebble,
genius neither distorts nor false-colours its
objects; but on the
contrary brings out many a vein and many a tint,
which escape the eye of
common observation, thus raising to the rank
of gems what had been
often kicked away by the hurrying foot of the
traveller on the dusty
high road of custom.
Let me refer to the whole
description of skating, vol. I. page 42 to
47, especially to the
lines
"So through the darkness and the cold we
flew,
And not a voice was idle. with the din
Meanwhile the precipices rang aloud;
The leafless trees and every icy crag
Tinkled like iron; while the distant hills
Into the tumult sent an alien sound
Of melancholy, not unnoticed, while the
stars,
Eastward, were sparkling clear, and in the
west
The orange sky of evening died away."
Or to the poem on THE
GREEN LINNET, vol. I. page 244. What can be more
accurate yet more lovely
than the two concluding stanzas?
"Upon yon tuft of hazel trees,
That twinkle to the gusty breeze,
Behold him perched in ecstasies,
Yet seeming still
to hover;
There! where the flutter of his wings
Upon his back and body flings
Shadows and sunny glimmerings,
That cover him all
over.
While thus before my eyes he gleams,
A Brother of the Leaves he seems;
When in a moment forth he teems
His little song in
gushes
As if it pleased him to disdain
And mock the Form which he did feign
While he was dancing with the train
Of Leaves among
the bushes."
Or the description of the
blue-cap, and of the noontide silence, page
284; or the poem to the
cuckoo, page 299; or, lastly, though I might
multiply the references to
ten times the number, to the poem, so
completely Wordsworth's,
commencing
"Three years she grew in sun and
shower"--
Fifth: a meditative
pathos, a union of deep and subtle thought with
sensibility; a sympathy
with man as man; the sympathy indeed of a
contemplator, rather than
a fellow-sufferer or co-mate, (spectator,
haud particeps) but of a
contemplator, from whose view no difference
of rank conceals the
sameness of the nature; no injuries of wind or
weather, or toil, or even
of ignorance, wholly disguise the human face
divine. The superscription
and the image of the Creator still remain
legible to him under the
dark lines, with which guilt or calamity had
cancelled or cross-barred
it. Here the Man and the Poet lose and find
themselves in each other,
the one as glorified, the latter as
substantiated. In this
mild and philosophic pathos, Wordsworth appears
to me without a compeer.
Such as he is: so he writes. See vol. I. page
134 to 136, or that most
affecting composition, THE AFFLICTION OF
MARGARET ---- OF ----,
page 165 to 168, which no mother, and, if I may
judge by my own
experience, no parent can read without a tear. Or turn
to that genuine lyric, in
the former edition, entitled, THE MAD
MOTHER, page 174 to 178,
of which I cannot refrain from quoting two of
the stanzas, both of them
for their pathos, and the former for the
fine transition in the two
concluding lines of the stanza, so
expressive of that
deranged state, in which, from the increased
sensibility, the
sufferer's attention is abruptly drawn off by every
trifle, and in the same
instant plucked back again by the one despotic
thought, bringing home
with it, by the blending, fusing power of
Imagination and Passion,
the alien object to which it had been so
abruptly diverted, no
longer an alien but an ally and an inmate.
"Suck, little babe, oh suck again!
It cools my blood; it cools my brain;
Thy lips, I feel them, baby! They
Draw from my heart the pain away.
Oh! press me with thy little hand;
It loosens something at my chest
About that tight and deadly band
I feel thy little fingers prest.
The breeze I see is in the tree!
It comes to cool my babe and me."
"Thy father cares not for my breast,
'Tis thine, sweet baby, there to rest;
'Tis all thine own!--and if its hue
Be changed, that was so fair to view,
'Tis fair enough for thee, my dove!
My beauty, little child, is flown,
But thou wilt live with me in love;
And what if my poor cheek be brown?
'Tis well for me, thou canst not see
How pale and wan it else would be."
Last, and pre-eminently, I
challenge for this poet the gift of
Imagination in the highest
and strictest sense of the word. In the
play of fancy, Wordsworth,
to my feelings, is not always graceful, and
sometimes recondite. The
likeness is occasionally too strange, or
demands too peculiar a
point of view, or is such as appears the
creature of predetermined
research, rather than spontaneous
presentation. Indeed his
fancy seldom displays itself, as mere and
unmodified fancy. But in
imaginative power, he stands nearest of all
modern writers to
Shakespeare and Milton; and yet in a kind perfectly
unborrowed and his own. To
employ his own words, which are at once an
instance and an
illustration, he does indeed to all thoughts and to
all objects--
"------add the gleam,
The light that never was, on sea or land,
The consecration, and the Poet's
dream."
I shall select a few
examples as most obviously manifesting this
faculty; but if I should
ever be fortunate enough to render my
analysis of Imagination,
its origin and characters, thoroughly
intelligible to the
reader, he will scarcely open on a page of this
poet's works without
recognising, more or less, the presence and the
influences of this
faculty. From the poem on the YEW TREES, vol. I.
page 303, 304.
"But worthier still
of note
Are those fraternal Four of Borrowdale,
Joined in one solemn and capacious grove;
Huge trunks!--and each particular trunk a growth
Of intertwisted fibres serpentine
Up-coiling, and inveterately convolved;
Not uninformed with phantasy, and looks
That threaten the profane;--a pillared shade,
Upon whose grassless floor of red-brown hue,
By sheddings from the pinal umbrage tinged
Perennially--beneath whose sable roof
Of boughs, as if for festal purpose, decked
With unrejoicing berries--ghostly shapes
May meet at noontide; FEAR and trembling HOPE,
SILENCE and FORESIGHT; DEATH, the Skeleton,
And TIME, the Shadow; there to celebrate,
As in a natural temple scattered o'er
With altars undisturbed of mossy stone,
United worship; or in mute repose
To lie, and listen to the mountain flood
Murmuring from Glazamara's inmost caves."
The effect of the old
man's figure in the poem of RESOLUTION AND
INDEPENDENCE, vol. II.
page 33.
"While he was talking thus, the lonely
place,
The Old Man's shape, and speech, all
troubled me
In my mind's eye I seemed to see him pace
About the weary moors continually,
Wandering about alone and silently."
Or the 8th, 9th, 19th,
26th, 31st, and 33rd, in the collection of
miscellaneous sonnets--the
sonnet on the subjugation of Switzerland,
page 210, or the last ode,
from which I especially select the two
following stanzas or
paragraphs, page 349 to 350.
"Our birth is but a sleep and a forgetting:
The Soul that rises with us, our life's
Star,
Hath had elsewhere its setting,
And cometh from
afar.
Not in entire forgetfulness,
And not in utter nakedness,
But trailing clouds of glory do we come
From God, who is our home:
Heaven lies about us in our infancy!
Shades of the prison-house begin to close
Upon the growing
Boy;
But He beholds the light, and whence it
flows,
He sees it in his
joy!
The Youth who daily further from the East
Must travel, still is Nature's Priest,
And by the vision
splendid
Is on his way
attended;
At length the Man perceives it die away,
And fade into the light of common
day."
And page 352 to 354 of the
same ode.
"O joy! that in our embers
Is something that doth live,
That nature yet remembers
What was so fugitive!
The thought of our past years in me doth
breed
Perpetual benedictions: not indeed
For that which is most worthy to be blest;
Delight and liberty, the simple creed
Of Childhood, whether busy or at rest,
With new-fledged hope still fluttering in
his breast:--
Not for these I raise
The song of thanks and praise;
But for those obstinate questionings
Of sense and outward things,
Fallings from us, vanishings;
Blank misgivings of a Creature
Moving about in worlds not realized,
High instincts, before which our mortal
Nature
Did tremble like a guilty Thing surprised!
But for those first affections,
Those shadowy recollections,
Which, be they what they may,
Are yet the fountain light of all our day,
Are yet a master light of all our seeing;
Uphold us--cherish--and have power to make
Our noisy years seem moments in the being
Of the eternal Silence; truths that wake
To perish never;
Which neither listlessness, nor mad
endeavour,
Nor Man nor Boy,
Nor all that is at enmity with joy,
Can utterly abolish or destroy!
Hence, in a season of calm weather,
Though inland far we be,
Our Souls have sight of that immortal sea
Which brought us hither;
Can in a moment travel thither,--
And see the children sport upon the shore,
And hear the mighty waters rolling
evermore."
And since it would be
unfair to conclude with an extract, which,
though highly characteristic,
must yet, from the nature of the
thoughts and the subject,
be interesting or perhaps intelligible, to
but a limited number of
readers; I will add, from the poet's last
published work, a passage
equally Wordsworthian; of the beauty of
which, and of the
imaginative power displayed therein, there can be
but one opinion, and one
feeling. See White Doe, page 5.
"Fast the church-yard fills;--anon
Look again and they all are gone;
The cluster round the porch, and the folk
Who
sate in the shade of the Prior's Oak!
And scarcely have they disappeared
Ere the prelusive hymn is heard;--
With one consent the people rejoice,
Filling the church with a lofty voice!
They sing a service which they feel:
For 'tis the sun-rise now of zeal;
And faith and hope are in their prime
In great Eliza's golden time."
"A moment ends the fervent din,
And all is hushed, without and within;
For though the priest, more tranquilly,
Recites the holy liturgy,
The only voice which you can hear
Is the river murmuring near.
--When soft!--the dusky trees between,
And down the path through the open green,
Where is no living thing to be seen;
And through yon gateway, where is found,
Beneath the arch with ivy bound,
Free entrance to the church-yard ground--
And right across the verdant sod,
Towards the very house of God;
Comes gliding in with lovely gleam,
Comes gliding in serene and slow,
Soft and silent as a dream.
A solitary Doe!
White she is as lily of June,
And beauteous as the silver moon
When out of sight the clouds are driven
And she is left alone in heaven!
Or like a ship some gentle day
In sunshine sailing far away
A glittering ship that hath the plain
Of ocean for her own domain."
* * * * * *
"What harmonious pensive changes
Wait upon her as she ranges
Round and through this Pile of state
Overthrown and desolate!
Now a step or two her way
Is through space of open day,
Where the enamoured sunny light
Brightens her that was so bright;
Now doth a delicate shadow fall,
Falls upon her like a breath,
From some lofty arch or wall,
As she passes underneath."
The following analogy
will, I am apprehensive, appear dim and
fantastic, but in reading
Bartram's Travels I could not help
transcribing the following
lines as a sort of allegory, or connected
simile and metaphor of
Wordsworth's intellect and genius.--"The soil
is a deep, rich, dark
mould, on a deep stratum of tenacious clay; and
that on a foundation of
rocks, which often break through both strata,
lifting their backs above
the surface. The trees which chiefly grow
here are the gigantic,
black oak; magnolia grandi-flora; fraximus
excelsior; platane; and a
few stately tulip trees." What Mr.
Wordsworth will produce,
it is not for me to prophesy but I could
pronounce with the
liveliest convictions what he is capable of
producing. It is the FIRST
GENUINE PHILOSOPHIC POEM.
The preceding criticism
will not, I am aware, avail to overcome the
prejudices of those, who
have made it a business to attack and
ridicule Mr. Wordsworth's
compositions.
Truth and prudence might
be imaged as concentric circles. The poet may
perhaps have passed beyond
the latter, but he has confined himself far
within the bounds of the
former, in designating these critics, as "too
petulant to be passive to
a genuine poet, and too feeble to grapple
with him;----men of
palsied imaginations, in whose minds all healthy
action is languid;----who,
therefore, feed as the many direct them, or
with the many are greedy
after vicious provocatives."
So much for the detractors
from Wordsworth's merits. On the other
hand, much as I might wish
for their fuller sympathy, I dare not
flatter myself, that the
freedom with which I have declared my
opinions concerning both
his theory and his defects, most of which are
more or less connected
with his theory, either as cause or effect,
will be satisfactory or
pleasing to all the poet's admirers and
advocates. More
indiscriminate than mine their admiration may be:
deeper and more sincere it
cannot be. But I have advanced no opinion
either for praise or
censure, other than as texts introductory to the
reasons which compel me to
form it. Above all, I was fully convinced
that such a criticism was
not only wanted; but that, if executed with
adequate ability, it must
conduce, in no mean degree, to Mr.
Wordsworth's reputation.
His fame belongs to another age, and can
neither be accelerated nor
retarded. How small the proportion of the
defects are to the
beauties, I have repeatedly declared; and that no
one of them originates in
deficiency of poetic genius. Had they been
more and greater, I should
still, as a friend to his literary
character in the present
age, consider an analytic display of them as
pure gain; if only it
removed, as surely to all reflecting minds even
the foregoing analysis
must have removed, the strange mistake, so
slightly grounded, yet so
widely and industriously propagated, of Mr.
Wordsworth's turn for
simplicity! I am not half as much irritated by
hearing his enemies abuse
him for vulgarity of style, subject, and
conception, as I am
disgusted with the gilded side of the same
meaning, as displayed by
some affected admirers, with whom he is,
forsooth, a "sweet,
simple poet!" and so natural, that little master
Charles and his younger
sister are so charmed with them, that they
play at "Goody
Blake," or at "Johnny and Betty Foy!"
Were the collection of
poems, published with these biographical
sketches, important
enough, (which I am not vain enough to believe,)
to deserve such a
distinction; even as I have done, so would I be done
unto.
For more than eighteen
months have the volume of Poems, entitled
SIBYLLINE LEAVES, and the
present volume, up to this page, been
printed, and ready for
publication. But, ere I speak of myself in the
tones, which are alone
natural to me under the circumstances of late
years, I would fain
present myself to the Reader as I was in the first
dawn of my literary life:
When Hope grew round me, like the climbing vine,
And fruits, and foliage, not my own, seem'd
mine!
For this purpose I have
selected from the letters, which I wrote home
from Germany, those which
appeared likely to be most interesting, and
at the same time most
pertinent to the title of this work.
SATYRANE'S LETTERS
LETTER I
On Sunday morning,
September 16, 1798, the Hamburg packet set sail
from Yarmouth; and I, for
the first time in my life, beheld my native
land retiring from me. At
the moment of its disappearance--in all the
kirks, churches, chapels,
and meeting-houses, in which the greater
number, I hope, of my
countrymen were at that time assembled, I will
dare question whether
there was one more ardent prayer offered up to
heaven, than that which I
then preferred for my country. "Now then,"
(said I to a gentleman who
was standing near me,) "we are out of our
country." "Not
yet, not yet!" he replied, and pointed to the sea;
"This, too, is a
Briton's country." This bon mot gave a fillip to my
spirits, I rose and looked
round on my fellow-passengers, who were all
on the deck. We were
eighteen in number, videlicet, five Englishmen,
an English lady, a French
gentleman and his servant, an Hanoverian and
his servant, a Prussian, a
Swede, two Danes, and a Mulatto boy, a
German tailor and his
wife, (the smallest couple I ever beheld,) and a
Jew. We were all on the
deck; but in a short time I observed marks of
dismay. The lady retired
to the cabin in some confusion, and many of
the faces round me assumed
a very doleful and frog-coloured
appearance; and within an
hour the number of those on deck was
lessened by one half. I
was giddy, but not sick, and the giddiness
soon went away, but left a
feverishness and want of appetite, which I
attributed, in great
measure, to the saeva Mephitis of the bilge-
water; and it was
certainly not decreased by the exportations from the
cabin. However, I was well
enough to join the able-bodied passengers,
one of whom observed not
inaptly, that Momus might have discovered an
easier way to see a man's
inside, than by placing a window in his
breast. He needed only
have taken a saltwater trip in a packet-boat.
I am inclined to believe,
that a packet is far superior to a stage-
coach, as a means of
making men open out to each other. In the latter
the uniformity of posture
disposes to dozing, and the definitiveness
of the period, at which
the company will separate, makes each
individual think more of
those to whom he is going, than of those with
whom he is going. But at
sea, more curiosity is excited, if only on
this account, that the
pleasant or unpleasant qualities of your
companions are of greater
importance to you, from the uncertainty how
long you may be obliged to
house with them. Besides, if you are
countrymen, that now begins
to form a distinction and a bond of
brotherhood; and if of
different countries, there are new incitements
of conversation, more to
ask and more to communicate. I found that I
had interested the Danes
in no common degree. I had crept into the
boat on the deck and
fallen asleep; but was awakened by one of them,
about three o'clock in the
afternoon, who told me that they had been
seeking me in every hole
and corner, and insisted that I should join
their party and drink with
them. He talked English with such fluency,
as left me wholly unable
to account for the singular and even
ludicrous incorrectness
with which he spoke it. I went, and found some
excellent wines and a
dessert of grapes with a pine-apple. The Danes
had christened me Doctor
Teology, and dressed as I was all in black,
with large shoes and black
worsted stockings, I might certainly have
passed very well for a
Methodist missionary. However I disclaimed my
title. What then may you
be? A man of fortune? No!--A merchant? No!--A
merchant's traveller?
No!--A clerk? No!--Un Philosophe, perhaps? It
was at that time in my
life, in which of all possible names and
characters I had the
greatest disgust to that of "un Philosophe." But
I was weary of being
questioned, and rather than be nothing, or at
best only the abstract
idea of a man, I submitted by a bow, even to
the aspersion implied in
the word "un Philosophe."--The Dane then
informed me, that all in
the present party were Philosophers likewise.
Certes we were not of the
Stoick school. For we drank and talked and
sung, till we talked and
sung all together; and then we rose and
danced on the deck a set
of dances, which in one sense of the word at
least, were very
intelligibly and appropriately entitled reels. The
passengers, who lay in the
cabin below in all the agonies of sea-
sickness, must have found
our bacchanalian merriment
------a tune
Harsh and of dissonant mood from their
complaint.
I thought so at the time;
and, (by way, I suppose, of supporting my
newly assumed
philosophical character,) I thought too, how closely the
greater number of our
virtues are connected with the fear of death,
and how little sympathy we
bestow on pain, where there is no danger.
The two Danes were
brothers. The one was a man with a clear white
complexion, white hair,
and white eyebrows; looked silly, and nothing
that he uttered gave the
lie to his looks. The other, whom, by way of
eminence I have called the
Dane, had likewise white hair, but was much
shorter than his brother,
with slender limbs, and a very thin face
slightly pockfretten. This
man convinced me of the justice of an old
remark, that many a
faithful portrait in our novels and farces has
been rashly censured for
an outrageous caricature, or perhaps
nonentity. I had retired
to my station in the boat--he came and seated
himself by my side, and
appeared not a little tipsy. He commenced the
conversation in the most
magnific style, and, as a sort of pioneering
to his own vanity, he
flattered me with such grossness! The parasites
of the old comedy were
modest in the comparison. His language and
accentuation were so
exceedingly singular, that I determined for once
in my life to take notes
of a conversation. Here it follows, somewhat
abridged, indeed, but in
all other respects as accurately as my memory
permitted.
THE DANE. Vat imagination! vat language! vat vast
science! and vat
eyes! vat a milk-vite
forehead! O my heafen! vy, you're a Got!
ANSWER. You do me too much honour, Sir.
THE DANE. O me! if you should dink I is
flattering you!--No, no, no!
I haf ten tousand a
year--yes, ten tousand a year--yes, ten tousand
pound a year! Vel--and vat
is dhat? a mere trifle! I 'ouldn't gif my
sincere heart for ten
times dhe money. Yes, you're a Got! I a mere
man! But, my dear friend!
dhink of me, as a man! Is, is--I mean to ask
you now, my dear
friend--is I not very eloquent? Is I not speak
English very fine?
ANSWER. Most admirably! Believe me, Sir! I have
seldom heard even a
native talk so fluently.
THE DANE. (Squeezing my hand with great
vehemence.) My dear friend!
vat an affection and
fidelity ve have for each odher! But tell me, do
tell me,--Is I not, now
and den, speak some fault? Is I not in some
wrong?
ANSWER. Why, Sir! perhaps it might be observed
by nice critics in the
English language, that you
occasionally use the word "is" instead of
"am." In our
best companies we generally say I am, and not I is or
I'se. Excuse me, Sir! it
is a mere trifle.
THE DANE. O!--is, is, am, am, am. Yes, yes--I
know, I know.
ANSWER. I am, thou art, he is, we are, ye are,
they are.
THE DANE. Yes, yes,--I know, I know--Am, am, am,
is dhe praesens, and
is is dhe perfectum--yes,
yes--and are is dhe plusquam perfectum.
ANSWER. And art, Sir! is--?
THE DANE. My dear friend! it is dhe plusquam
perfectum, no, no--dhat
is a great lie; are is dhe
plusquam perfectum--and art is dhe plasquam
plue-perfectum--(then
swinging my hand to and fro, and cocking his
little bright hazel eyes
at me, that danced with vanity and wine)--You
see, my dear friend that I
too have some lehrning?
ANSWER. Learning, Sir? Who dares suspect it?
Who can listen to you
for a minute, who can even
look at you, without perceiving the extent
of it?
THE DANE. My dear friend!--(then with a would-be
humble look, and in
a tone of voice as if he
was reasoning) I could not talk so of prawns
and imperfectum, and
futurum and plusquamplue perfectum, and all dhat,
my dear friend! without
some lehrning?
ANSWER. Sir! a man like you cannot talk on any
subject without
discovering the depth of
his information.
THE DANE. Dhe grammatic Greek, my friend; ha! ha!
Ha! (laughing, and
swinging my hand to and
fro--then with a sudden transition to great
solemnity) Now I will tell
you, my dear friend! Dhere did happen about
me vat de whole historia
of Denmark record no instance about nobody
else. Dhe bishop did ask
me all dhe questions about all dhe religion
in dhe Latin grammar.
ANSWER. The grammar, Sir? The language, I
presume--
THE DANE. (A little offended.) Grammar is
language, and language is
grammar--
ANSWER. Ten thousand pardons!
THE DANE. Vell, and I was only fourteen years--
ANSWER. Only fourteen years old?
THE DANE. No more. I vas
fourteen years old--and he asked me all
questions, religion and
philosophy, and all in dhe Latin language--and
I answered him all every
one, my dear friend! all in dhe Latin
language.
ANSWER. A prodigy! an absolute prodigy!
THE DANE. No, no, no! he was a bishop, a great
superintendent.
ANSWER. Yes! a bishop.
THE DANE. A bishop--not a mere predicant, not a
prediger.
ANSWER. My dear Sir! we have misunderstood each
other. I said that
your answering in Latin at
so early an age was a prodigy, that is, a
thing that is wonderful;
that does not often happen.
THE DANE. Often! Dhere is not von instance
recorded in dhe whole
historia of Denmark.
ANSWER. And since then, Sir--?
THE DANE. I was sent ofer to dhe Vest Indies--to
our Island, and
dhere I had no more to do
vid books. No! no! I put my genius anodher
way--and I haf made ten
tousand pound a year. Is not dhat ghenius, my
dear friend?--But vat is
money?--I dhink dhe poorest man alive my
equal. Yes, my dear
friend; my little fortune is pleasant to my
generous heart, because I
can do good--no man with so little a fortune
ever did so much
generosity--no person--no man person, no woman person
ever denies it. But we are
all Got's children.
Here the Hanoverian
interrupted him, and the other Dane, the Swede,
and the Prussian, joined
us, together with a young Englishman who
spoke the German fluently,
and interpreted to me many of the
Prussian's jokes. The
Prussian was a travelling merchant, turned of
threescore, a hale man,
tall, strong, and stout, full of stories,
gesticulations, and
buffoonery, with the soul as well as the look of a
mountebank, who, while he
is making you laugh, picks your pocket. Amid
all his droll looks and
droll gestures, there remained one look
untouched by laughter; and
that one look was the true face, the others
were but its mask. The
Hanoverian was a pale, fat, bloated young man,
whose father had made a
large fortune in London, as an army-
contractor. He seemed to
emulate the manners of young Englishmen of
fortune. He was a
good-natured fellow, not without information or
literature; but a most
egregious coxcomb. He had been in the habit of
attending the House of
Commons, and had once spoken, as he informed
me, with great applause in
a debating society. For this he appeared to
have qualified himself
with laudable industry: for he was perfect in
Walker's Pronouncing
Dictionary, and with an accent, which forcibly
reminded me of the
Scotchman in Roderic Random, who professed to teach
the English pronunciation,
he was constantly deferring to my superior
judgment, whether or no I
had pronounced this or that word with
propriety, or "the
true delicacy." When he spoke, though it were only
half a dozen sentences, he
always rose: for which I could detect no
other motive, than his
partiality to that elegant phrase so liberally
introduced in the orations
of our British legislators, "While I am on
my legs." The Swede,
whom for reasons that will soon appear, I shall
distinguish by the name of
Nobility, was a strong-featured, scurvy-
faced man, his complexion
resembling in colour, a red hot poker
beginning to cool. He
appeared miserably dependent on the Dane; but
was, however, incomparably
the best informed and most rational of the
party. Indeed his manners
and conversation discovered him to be both a
man of the world and a
gentleman. The Jew was in the hold: the French
gentleman was lying on the
deck so ill, that I could observe nothing
concerning him, except the
affectionate attentions of his servant to
him. The poor fellow was
very sick himself, and every now and then ran
to the side of the vessel,
still keeping his eye on his master, but
returned in a moment and
seated himself again by him, now supporting
his head, now wiping his
forehead and talking to him all the while in
the most soothing tones.
There had been a matrimonial squabble of a
very ludicrous kind in the
cabin, between the little German tailor and
his little wife. He had
secured two beds, one for himself and one for
her. This had struck the
little woman as a very cruel action; she
insisted upon their having
but one, and assured the mate in the most
piteous tones, that she
was his lawful wife. The mate and the cabin
boy decided in her favour,
abused the little man for his want of
tenderness with much
humour, and hoisted him into the same compartment
with his sea-sick wife.
This quarrel was interesting to me, as it
procured me a bed, which I
otherwise should not have had.
In the evening, at seven
o'clock, the sea rolled higher, and the Dane,
by means of the greater
agitation, eliminated enough of what he had
been swallowing to make
room for a great deal more. His favourite
potation was sugar and
brandy, i.e. a very little warm water with a
large quantity of brandy,
sugar, and nutmeg His servant boy, a black-
eyed Mulatto, had a
good-natured round face, exactly the colour of the
skin of the walnut-kernel.
The Dane and I were again seated, tete-a-
tete, in the ship's boat.
The conversation, which was now indeed
rather an oration than a
dialogue, became extravagant beyond all that
I ever heard. He told me
that he had made a large fortune in the
island of Santa Cruz, and
was now returning to Denmark to enjoy it. He
expatiated on the style in
which he meant to live, and the great
undertakings which he
proposed to himself to commence, till, the
brandy aiding his vanity,
and his vanity and garrulity aiding the
brandy, he talked like a
madman--entreated me to accompany him to
Denmark--there I should
see his influence with the government, and he
would introduce me to the
king, etc., etc. Thus he went on dreaming
aloud, and then passing
with a very lyrical transition to the subject
of general politics, he
declaimed, like a member of the Corresponding
Society, about, (not
concerning,) the Rights of Man, and assured me
that, notwithstanding his
fortune, he thought the poorest man alive
his equal. "All are
equal, my dear friend! all are equal! Ve are all
Got's children. The
poorest man haf the same rights with me. Jack!
Jack! some more sugar and
brandy. Dhere is dhat fellow now! He is a
Mulatto--but he is my
equal.--That's right, Jack! (taking the sugar
and brandy.) Here you Sir!
shake hands with dhis gentleman! Shake
hands with me, you dog!
Dhere, dhere!--We are all equal my dear
friend! Do I not speak
like Socrates, and Plato, and Cato--they were
all philosophers, my dear
philosophe! all very great men!--and so was
Homer and Virgil--but they
were poets. Yes, yes! I know all about it!
--But what can anybody say
more than this? We are all equal, all Got's
children. I haf ten
tousand a year, but I am no more dhan de meanest
man alive. I haf no pride;
and yet, my dear friend! I can say, do! and
it is done. Ha! ha! ha! my
dear friend! Now dhere is dhat gentleman
(pointing to Nobility) he
is a Swedish baron--you shall see. Ho!
(calling to the Swede) get
me, will you, a bottle of wine from the
cabin. SWEDE.--Here, Jack!
go and get your master a bottle of wine
from the cabin. DANE. No,
no, no! do you go now--you go yourself you
go now! SWEDE. Pah!--DANE.
Now go! Go, I pray you." And the Swede
went!!
After this the Dane
commenced an harangue on religion, and mistaking
me for un philosophe in
the continental sense of the word, he talked
of Deity in a declamatory
style, very much resembling the devotional
rants of that rude
blunderer, Mr. Thomas Paine, in his Age of Reason,
and whispered in my ear,
what damned hypocrism all Jesus Christ's
business was. I dare aver,
that few men have less reason to charge
themselves with indulging
in persiflage than myself. I should hate it,
if it were only that it is
a Frenchman's vice, and feel a pride in
avoiding it, because our
own language is too honest to have a word to
express it by. But in this
instance the temptation had been too
powerful, and I have
placed it on the list of my offences. Pericles
answered one of his
dearest friends, who had solicited him on a case
of life and death, to take
an equivocal oath for his preservation:
Debeo amicis opitulari,
sed usque ad Deos [75]. Friendship herself
must place her last and
boldest step on this side the altar. What
Pericles would not do to
save a friend's life, you may be assured, I
would not hazard merely to
mill the chocolate-pot of a drunken fool's
vanity till it frothed
over. Assuming a serious look, I professed
myself a believer, and
sunk at once an hundred fathoms in his good
graces. He retired to his
cabin, and I wrapped myself up in my great
coat, and looked at the
water. A beautiful white cloud of foam at
momently intervals coursed
by the side of the vessel with a roar, and
little stars of flame
danced and sparkled and went out in it: and
every now and then light
detachments of this white cloud-like foam
darted off from the
vessel's side, each with its own small
constellation, over the
sea, and scoured out of sight like a Tartar
troop over a wilderness.
It was cold, the cabin was
at open war with my olfactories, and I
found reason to rejoice in
my great coat, a weighty high-caped,
respectable rug, the
collar of which turned over, and played the part
of a night-cap very
passably. In looking up at two or three bright
stars, which oscillated
with the motion of the sails, I fell asleep,
but was awakened at one
o'clock, Monday morning, by a shower of rain.
I found myself compelled
to go down into the cabin, where I slept very
soundly, and awoke with a
very good appetite at breakfast time, my
nostrils, the most
placable of all the senses, reconciled to, or
indeed insensible of the
mephitis.
Monday, September 17th, I
had a long conversation with the Swede, who
spoke with the most
poignant contempt of the Dane, whom he described
as a fool, purse-mad; but
he confirmed the boasts of the Dane
respecting the largeness
of his fortune, which he had acquired in the
first instance as an
advocate, and afterwards as a planter. From the
Dane and from himself I
collected that he was indeed a Swedish
nobleman, who had
squandered a fortune, that was never very large, and
had made over his property
to the Dane, on whom he was now utterly
dependent. He seemed to
suffer very little pain from the Dane's
insolence. He was in a
high degree humane and attentive to the English
lady, who suffered most
fearfully, and for whom he performed many
little offices with a
tenderness and delicacy which seemed to prove
real goodness of heart.
Indeed his general manners and conversation
were not only pleasing,
but even interesting; and I struggled to
believe his insensibility
respecting the Dane philosophical fortitude.
For though the Dane was
now quite sober, his character oozed out of
him at every pore. And
after dinner, when he was again flushed with
wine, every quarter of an
hour or perhaps oftener he would shout out
to the Swede, "Ho!
Nobility, go--do such a thing! Mr. Nobility!--tell
the gentlemen such a
story, and so forth;" with an insolence which
must have excited disgust
and detestation, if his vulgar rants on the
sacred rights of equality,
joined to his wild havoc of general grammar
no less than of the
English language, had not rendered it so
irresistibly laughable.
At four o'clock I observed
a wild duck swimming on the waves, a single
solitary wild duck. It is
not easy to conceive, how interesting a
thing it looked in that
round objectless desert of waters. I had
associated such a feeling
of immensity with the ocean, that I felt
exceedingly disappointed,
when I was out of sight of all land, at the
narrowness and nearness,
as it were, of the circle of the horizon. So
little are images capable
of satisfying the obscure feelings connected
with words. In the evening
the sails were lowered, lest we should run
foul of the land, which
can be seen only at a small distance. And at
four o'clock, on Tuesday
morning, I was awakened by the cry of "land!
land!" It was an ugly
island rock at a distance on our left, called
Heiligeland, well known to
many passengers from Yarmouth to Hamburg,
who have been obliged by
stormy weather to pass weeks and weeks in
weary captivity on it,
stripped of all their money by the exorbitant
demands of the wretches
who inhabit it. So at least the sailors
informed me.--About nine
o'clock we saw the main land, which seemed
scarcely able to hold its
head above water, low, flat, and dreary,
with lighthouses and
land-marks which seemed to give a character and
language to the
dreariness. We entered the mouth of the Elbe, passing
Neu-werk; though as yet
the right bank only of the river was visible
to us. On this I saw a
church, and thanked God for my safe voyage, not
without affectionate
thoughts of those I had left in England. At
eleven o'clock on the same
morning we arrived at Cuxhaven, the ship
dropped anchor, and the
boat was hoisted out, to carry the Hanoverian
and a few others on shore.
The captain agreed to take us, who
remained, to Hamburg for
ten guineas, to which the Dane contributed so
largely, that the other
passengers paid but half a guinea each.
Accordingly we hauled
anchor, and passed gently up the river. At
Cuxhaven both sides of the
river may be seen in clear weather; we
could now see the right
bank only. We passed a multitude of English
traders that had been
waiting many weeks for a wind. In a short time
both banks became visible,
both flat and evidencing the labour of
human hands by their
extreme neatness. On the left bank I saw a church
or two in the distance; on
the right bank we passed by steeple and
windmill and cottage, and
windmill and single house, windmill and
windmill, and neat single
house, and steeple. These were the objects
and in the succession. The
shores were very green and planted with
trees not inelegantly.
Thirty-five miles from Cuxhaven the night came
on us, and, as the
navigation of the Elbe is perilous, we dropped
anchor.
Over what place, thought
I, does the moon hang to your eye, my dearest
friend? To me it hung over
the left bank of the Elbe. Close above the
moon was a huge volume of
deep black cloud, while a very thin fillet
crossed the middle of the
orb, as narrow and thin and black as a
ribbon of crape. The long
trembling road of moonlight, which lay on
the water and reached to
the stern of our vessel, glimmered dimly and
obscurely. We saw two or
three lights from the right bank, probably
from bed-rooms. I felt the
striking contrast between the silence of
this majestic stream,
whose banks are populous with men and women and
children, and flocks and
herds--between the silence by night of this
peopled river, and the
ceaseless noise, and uproar, and loud
agitations of the desolate
solitude of the ocean. The passengers below
had all retired to their
beds; and I felt the interest of this quiet
scene the more deeply from
the circumstance of having just quitted
them. For the Prussian had
during the whole of the evening displayed
all his talents to
captivate the Dane, who had admitted him into the
train of his dependents.
The young Englishman continued to interpret
the Prussian's jokes to
me. They were all without exception profane
and abominable, but some
sufficiently witty, and a few incidents,
which he related in his
own person, were valuable as illustrating the
manners of the countries
in which they had taken place.
Five o'clock on Wednesday
morning we hauled the anchor, but were soon
obliged to drop it again
in consequence of a thick fog, which our
captain feared would
continue the whole day; but about nine it cleared
off, and we sailed slowly
along, close by the shore of a very
beautiful island, forty
miles from Cuxhaven, the wind continuing
slack. This holm or island
is about a mile and a half in length,
wedge-shaped, well wooded,
with glades of the liveliest green, and
rendered more interesting
by the remarkably neat farm-house on it. It
seemed made for retirement
without solitude--a place that would allure
one's friends, while it
precluded the impertinent calls of mere
visitors. The shores of
the Elbe now became more beautiful, with rich
meadows and trees running
like a low wall along the river's edge; and
peering over them, neat
houses and, (especially on the right bank,) a
profusion of
steeple-spires, white, black, or red. An instinctive
taste teaches men to build
their churches in flat countries with
spire-steeples, which, as
they cannot be referred to any other object,
point, as with silent
finger, to the sky and stars, and sometimes,
when they reflect the
brazen light of a rich though rainy sun-set,
appear like a pyramid of
flame burning heavenward. I remember once,
and once only, to have
seen a spire in a narrow valley of a
mountainous country. The
effect was not only mean but ludicrous, and
reminded me against my
will of an extinguisher; the close
neighbourhood of the high
mountain, at the foot of which it stood, had
so completely dwarfed it,
and deprived it of all connection with the
sky or clouds. Forty-six
English miles from Cuxhaven, and sixteen from
Hamburg, the Danish
village Veder ornaments the left bank with its
black steeple, and close
by it is the wild and pastoral hamlet of
Schulau. Hitherto both the
right and left bank, green to the very
brink, and level with the
river, resembled the shores of a park canal.
The trees and houses were
alike low, sometimes the low trees over-
topping the yet lower
houses, sometimes the low houses rising above
the yet lower trees. But
at Schulau the left bank rises at once forty
or fifty feet, and stares
on the river with its perpendicular facade
of sand, thinly patched
with tufts of green. The Elbe continued to
present a more and more
lively spectacle from the multitude of fishing
boats and the flocks of
sea gulls wheeling round them, the clamorous
rivals and companions of
the fishermen; till we came to Blankaness, a
most interesting village
scattered amid scattered trees, over three
hills in three divisions.
Each of the three hills stares upon the
river, with faces of bare
sand, with which the boats with their bare
poles, standing in files
along the banks, made a sort of fantastic
harmony. Between each
facade lies a green and woody dell, each deeper
than the other. In short
it is a large village made up of individual
cottages, each cottage in
the centre of its own little wood or
orchard, and each with its
own separate path: a village with a
labyrinth of paths, or
rather a neighbourhood of houses! It is
inhabited by fishermen and
boat-makers, the Blankanese boats being in
great request through the
whole navigation of the Elbe. Here first we
saw the spires of Hamburg,
and from hence, as far as Altona, the left
bank of the Elbe is
uncommonly pleasing, considered as the vicinity of
an industrious and
republican city--in that style of beauty, or rather
prettiness, that might
tempt the citizen into the country, and yet
gratify the taste which he
had acquired in the town. Summer-houses and
Chinese show-work are
everywhere scattered along the high and green
banks; the boards of the
farm-houses left unplastered and gaily
painted with green and
yellow; and scarcely a tree not cut into shapes
and made to remind the
human being of his own power and intelligence
instead of the wisdom of
nature. Still, however, these are links of
connection between town
and country, and far better than the
affectation of tastes and
enjoyments for which men's habits have
disqualified them. Pass
them by on Saturdays and Sundays with the
burghers of Hamburg
smoking their pipes, the women and children
feasting in the alcoves of
box and yew, and it becomes a nature of its
own. On Wednesday, four
o'clock, we left the vessel, and passing with
trouble through the huge
masses of shipping that seemed to choke the
wide Elbe from Altona
upward, we were at length landed at the Boom
House, Hamburg.
LETTER II
To a lady.
RATZEBURG.
Meine liebe Freundinn,
See how natural the German comes from me, though
I have not yet
been six weeks in the
country!--almost as fluently as English from my
neighbour the
Amtsschreiber, (or public secretary,) who as often as we
meet, though it should be
half a dozen times in the same day, never
fails to greet me
with--"---ddam your ploot unt eyes, my dearest
Englander! vhee goes
it!"--which is certainly a proof of great
generosity on his part,
these words being his whole stock of English.
I had, however, a better
reason than the desire of displaying my
proficiency: for I wished
to put you in good humour with a language,
from the acquirement of
which I have promised myself much edification
and the means too of
communicating a new pleasure to you and your
sister, during our winter
readings. And how can I do this better than
by pointing out its
gallant attention to the ladies? Our English
affix, ess, is, I believe,
confined either to words derived from the
Latin, as actress,
directress, etc., or from the French, as mistress,
duchess, and the like. But
the German, inn, enables us to designate
the sex in every possible
relation of life. Thus the Amtmann's lady is
the Frau Amtmanninn--the
secretary's wife, (by the bye, the handsomest
woman I have yet seen in
Germany,) is die allerliebste Frau
Amtsschreiberinn--the
colonel's lady, die Frau Obristinn or
Colonellinn--and even the
parson's wife, die Frau Pastorinn. But I am
especially pleased with
their Freundinn, which, unlike the amica of
the Romans, is seldom used
but in its best and purest sense. Now, I
know it will be said, that
a friend is already something more than a
friend, when a man feels
an anxiety to express to himself that this
friend is a female; but
this I deny--in that sense at least in which
the objection will be
made. I would hazard the impeachment of heresy,
rather than abandon my
belief that there is a sex in our souls as well
as in their perishable
garments; and he who does not feel it, never
truly loved a sister--nay,
is not capable even of loving a wife as she
deserves to be loved, if
she indeed be worthy of that holy name.
Now I know, my gentle
friend, what you are murmuring to yourself--
"This is so like him!
running away after the first bubble, that chance
has blown off from the
surface of his fancy; when one is anxious to
learn where he is and what
he has seen." Well then! that I am settled
at Ratzeburg, with my
motives and the particulars of my journey
hither, will inform you.
My first letter to him, with which doubtless
he has edified your whole
fireside, left me safely landed at Hamburg
on the Elbe Stairs, at the
Boom House. While standing on the stairs, I
was amused by the contents
of the passage-boat. which crosses the
river once or twice a day
from Hamburg to Haarburg. It was stowed
close with all people of
all nations, in all sorts of dresses; the men
all with pipes in their
mouths, and these pipes of all shapes and
fancies--straight and
wreathed, simple and complex, long and short,
cane, clay, porcelain,
wood, tin, silver, and ivory; most of them with
silver chains and silver
bole-covers. Pipes and boots are the first
universal characteristic
of the male Hamburgers that would strike the
eye of a raw traveller.
But I forget my promise of journalizing as
much as
possible.--Therefore, Septr. 19th Afternoon. My companion,
who, you recollect, speaks
the French language with unusual propriety,
had formed a kind of
confidential acquaintance with the emigrant, who
appeared to be a man of
sense, and whose manners were those of a
perfect gentleman. He
seemed about fifty or rather more. Whatever is
unpleasant in French
manners from excess in the degree, had been
softened down by age or
affliction; and all that is delightful in the
kind, alacrity and
delicacy in little attentions, etc., remained, and
without bustle,
gesticulation, or disproportionate eagerness. His
demeanour exhibited the
minute philanthropy of a polished Frenchman,
tempered by the sobriety
of the English character disunited from its
reserve. There is
something strangely attractive in the character of a
gentleman when you apply
the word emphatically, and yet in that sense
of the term which it is
more easy to feel than to define. It neither
includes the possession of
high moral excellence, nor of necessity
even the ornamental graces
of manner. I have now in my mind's eye a
person whose life would
scarcely stand scrutiny even in the court of
honour, much less in that
of conscience; and his manners, if nicely
observed, would of the two
excite an idea of awkwardness rather than
of elegance: and yet every
one who conversed with him felt and
acknowledged the
gentleman. The secret of the matter, I believe to be
this--we feel the
gentlemanly character present to us, whenever, under
all the circumstances of
social intercourse, the trivial not less than
the important, through the
whole detail of his manners and deportment,
and with the ease of a
habit, a person shows respect to others in such
a way, as at the same time
implies in his own feelings an habitual and
assured anticipation of reciprocal
respect from them to himself. In
short, the gentlemanly
character arises out of the feeling of Equality
acting, as a Habit, yet
flexible to the varieties of Rank, and
modified without being
disturbed or superseded by them. This
description will perhaps
explain to you the ground of one of your own
remarks, as I was
englishing to you the interesting dialogue
concerning the causes of
the corruption of eloquence. "What perfect
gentlemen these old Romans
must have been! I was impressed, I
remember, with the same
feeling at the time I was reading a
translation of Cicero's
philosophical dialogues and of his epistolary
correspondence: while in
Pliny's Letters I seemed to have a different
feeling--he gave me the
notion of a very fine gentleman." You uttered
the words as if you had
felt that the adjunct had injured the
substance and the
increased degree altered the kind. Pliny was the
courtier of an absolute
monarch--Cicero an aristocratic republican.
For this reason the
character of gentleman, in the sense to which I
have confined it, is
frequent in England, rare in France, and found,
where it is found, in age
or the latest period of manhood; while in
Germany the character is
almost unknown. But the proper antipode of a
gentleman is to be sought
for among the Anglo-American democrats.
I owe this digression, as
an act of justice to this amiable Frenchman,
and of humiliation for
myself. For in a little controversy between us
on the subject of French
poetry, he made me feel my own ill behaviour
by the silent reproof of
contrast, and when I afterwards apologized to
him for the warmth of my
language, he answered me with a cheerful
expression of surprise,
and an immediate compliment, which a gentleman
might both make with
dignity and receive with pleasure. I was pleased
therefore to find it
agreed on, that we should, if possible, take up
our quarters in the same
house. My friend went with him in search of
an hotel, and I to deliver
my letters of recommendation.
I walked onward at a brisk
pace, enlivened not so much by anything I
actually saw, as by the
confused sense that I was for the first time
in my life on the
continent of our planet. I seemed to myself like a
liberated bird that had
been hatched in an aviary, who now, after his
first soar of freedom,
poises himself in the upper air. Very naturally
I began to wonder at all
things, some for being so like and some for
being so unlike the things
in England--Dutch women with large umbrella
hats shooting out half a
yard before them, with a prodigal plumpness
of petticoat behind--the
women of Hamburg with caps plaited on the
caul with silver, or gold,
or both, bordered round with stiffened
lace, which stood out
before their eyes, but not lower, so that the
eyes sparkled through
it--the Hanoverian with the fore part of the
head bare, then a stiff
lace standing up like a wall perpendicular on
the cap, and the cap
behind tailed with an enormous quantity of ribbon
which lies or tosses on
the back:
"Their visnomies seem'd like a goodly
banner
Spread in defiance of all enemies."
The ladies all in English
dresses, all rouged, and all with bad teeth:
which you notice instantly
from their contrast to the almost animal,
too glossy mother-of-pearl
whiteness and the regularity of the teeth
of the laughing,
loud-talking country-women and servant-girls, who
with their clean white
stockings and with slippers without heel
quarters, tripped along
the dirty streets, as if they were secured by
a charm from the dirt:
with a lightness too, which surprised me, who
had always considered it
as one of the annoyances of sleeping in an
Inn, that I had to clatter
up stairs in a pair of them. The streets
narrow; to my English nose
sufficiently offensive, and explaining at
first sight the universal
use of boots; without any appropriate path
for the foot-passengers;
the gable ends of the houses all towards the
street, some in the
ordinary triangular form and entire as the
botanists say; but the
greater number notched and scolloped with more
than Chinese
grotesqueness. Above all, I was struck with the profusion
of windows, so large and
so many, that the houses look all glass. Mr.
Pitt's window tax, with
its pretty little additionals sprouting out
from it like young
toadlets on the back of a Surinam toad, would
certainly improve the
appearance of the Hamburg houses, which have a
slight summer look, not in
keeping with their size, incongruous with
the climate, and
precluding that feeling of retirement and self-
content, which one wishes
to associate with a house in a noisy city.
But a conflagration would,
I fear, be the previous requisite to the
production of any
architectural beauty in Hamburg: for verily it is a
filthy town. I moved on
and crossed a multitude of ugly bridges, with
huge black deformities of
water wheels close by them. The water
intersects the city
everywhere, and would have furnished to the genius
of Italy the capabilities
of all that is most beautiful and
magnificent in
architecture. It might have been the rival of Venice,
and it is huddle and
ugliness, stench and stagnation. The Jungfer
Stieg, (that is, Young
Ladies' Walk), to which my letters directed me,
made an exception. It was
a walk or promenade planted with treble rows
of elm trees, which, being
yearly pruned and cropped, remain slim and
dwarf-like. This walk
occupies one side of a square piece of water,
with many swans on it
perfectly tame, and, moving among the swans,
shewy pleasure-boats with
ladies in them, rowed by their husbands or
lovers.------
(Some paragraphs have been
here omitted.)------thus embarrassed by sad
and solemn politeness
still more than by broken English, it sounded
like the voice of an old
friend when I heard the emigrant's servant
inquiring after me. He had
come for the purpose of guiding me to our
hotel. Through streets and
streets I pressed on as happy as a child,
and, I doubt not, with a
childish expression of wonderment in my busy
eyes, amused by the wicker
waggons with movable benches across them,
one behind the other,
(these were the hackney coaches;) amused by the
sign-boards of the shops,
on which all the articles sold within are
painted, and that too very
exactly, though in a grotesque confusion,
(a useful substitute for
language in this great mart of nations;)
amused with the incessant
tinkling of the shop and house door bells,
the bell hanging over each
door and struck with a small iron rod at
every entrance and
exit;--and finally, amused by looking in at the
windows, as I passed
along; the ladies and gentlemen drinking coffee
or playing cards, and the
gentlemen all smoking. I wished myself a
painter, that I might have
sent you a sketch of one of the card
parties. The long pipe of
one gentleman rested on the table, its bole
half a yard from his
mouth, fuming like a censer by the fish-pool--the
other gentleman, who was
dealing the cards, and of course had both
hands employed, held his
pipe in his teeth, which hanging down between
his knees, smoked beside
his ancles. Hogarth himself never drew a more
ludicrous distortion both
of attitude and physiognomy, than this
effort occasioned nor was
there wanting beside it one of those
beautiful female faces
which the same Hogarth, in whom the satirist
never extinguished that
love of beauty which belonged to him as a
poet, so often and so
gladly introduces, as the central figure, in a
crowd of humorous
deformities, which figures, (such is the power of
true genius!) neither
acts, nor is meant to act as a contrast; but
diffuses through all, and
over each of the group, a spirit of
reconciliation and human
kindness; and, even when the attention is no
longer consciously
directed to the cause of this feeling, still blends
its tenderness with our
laughter: and thus prevents the instructive
merriment at the whims of
nature or the foibles or humours of our
fellow-men from
degenerating into the heart-poison of contempt or
hatred.
Our hotel DIE WILDE MAN,
(the sign of which was no bad likeness of the
landlord, who had
ingrafted on a very grim face a restless grin, that
was at every man's
service, and which indeed, like an actor rehearsing
to himself, he kept
playing in expectation of an occasion for it)--
neither our hotel, I say,
nor its landlord were of the genteelest
class. But it has one
great advantage for a stranger, by being in the
market place, and the next
neighbour of the huge church of St.
Nicholas: a church with
shops and houses built up against it, out of
which wens and warts its
high massy steeple rises, necklaced near the
top with a round of large
gilt balls. A better pole-star could
scarcely be desired. Long
shall I retain the impression made on my
mind by the awful echo, so
loud and long and tremulous, of the deep-
toned clock within this
church, which awoke me at two in the morning
from a distressful dream,
occasioned, I believe, by the feather bed,
which is used here instead
of bed-clothes. I will rather carry my
blanket about with me like
a wild Indian, than submit to this
abominable custom. Our
emigrant acquaintance was, we found, an
intimate friend of the
celebrated Abbe de Lisle: and from the large
fortune which he possessed
under the monarchy, had rescued sufficient
not only for independence,
but for respectability. He had offended
some of his
fellow-emigrants in London, whom he had obliged with
considerable sums, by a
refusal to make further advances, and in
consequence of their
intrigues had received an order to quit the
kingdom. I thought it one
proof of his innocence, that he attached no
blame either to the alien
act, or to the minister who had exerted it
against him; and a still
greater, that he spoke of London with
rapture, and of his
favourite niece, who had married and settled in
England, with all the
fervour and all the pride of a fond parent. A
man sent by force out of a
country, obliged to sell out of the stocks
at a great loss, and
exiled from those pleasures and that style of
society which habit had
rendered essential to his happiness, whose
predominant feelings were
yet all of a private nature, resentment for
friendship outraged, and
anguish for domestic affections interrupted--
such a man, I think, I
could dare warrant guiltless of espionnage in
any service, most of all
in that of the present French Directory. He
spoke with ecstasy of
Paris under the Monarchy: and yet the particular
facts, which made up his
description, left as deep a conviction on my
mind, of French
worthlessness, as his own tale had done of emigrant
ingratitude. Since my
arrival in Germany, I have not met a single
person, even among those
who abhor the Revolution, that spoke with
favour, or even charity of
the French emigrants. Though the belief of
their influence in the
organization of this disastrous war (from the
horrors of which, North
Germany deems itself only reprieved, not
secured,) may have some
share in the general aversion with which they
are regarded: yet I am
deeply persuaded that the far greater part is
owing to their own
profligacy, to their treachery and hardheartedness
to each other, and the domestic
misery or corrupt principles which so
many of them have carried
into the families of their protectors. My
heart dilated with honest
pride, as I recalled to mind the stern yet
amiable characters of the
English patriots, who sought refuge on the
Continent at the
Restoration! O let not our civil war under the first
Charles be paralleled with
the French Revolution! In the former, the
character overflowed from
excess of principle; in the latter from the
fermentation of the dregs!
The former, was a civil war between the
virtues and virtuous
prejudices of the two parties; the latter,
between the vices. The
Venetian glass of the French monarchy shivered
and flew asunder with the
working of a double poison.
Sept. 20th. I was introduced to Mr. Klopstock, the
brother of the
poet, who again introduced
me to Professor Ebeling, an intelligent and
lively man, though deaf:
so deaf, indeed, that it was a painful effort
to talk with him, as we
were obliged to drop our pearls into a huge
ear-trumpet. From this
courteous and kind-hearted man of letters, (I
hope, the German literati
in general may resemble this first
specimen), I heard a
tolerable Italian pun, and an interesting
anecdote. When Buonaparte
was in Italy, having been irritated by some
instance of perfidy, he
said in a loud and vehement tone, in a public
company--"'tis a true
proverb, gli Italiani tutti ladroni"--(that is,
the Italians all
plunderers.) A lady had the courage to reply, "Non
tutti; ma BUONA
PARTE," (not all, but a good part, or Buonaparte.)
This, I confess, sounded
to my ears, as one of the many good things
that might have been said.
The anecdote is more valuable; for it
instances the ways and
means of French insinuation. Hoche had received
much information
concerning the face of the country from a map of
unusual fulness and
accuracy, the maker of which, he heard, resided at
Duesseldorf. At the
storming of Duesseldorf by the French army, Hoche
previously ordered, that
the house and property of this man should be
preserved, and intrusted
the performance of the order to an officer on
whose troop he could rely.
Finding afterwards, that the man had
escaped before the
storming commenced, Hoche exclaimed, "HE had no
reason to flee! It is for
such men, not against them, that the French
nation makes war, and
consents to shed the blood of its children." You
remember Milton's sonnet--
"The great Emathian conqueror bid spare
The house of Pindarus when temple and
tower
Went to the ground"------
Now though the Duesseldorf
map-maker may stand in the same relation to
the Theban bard, as the
snail, that marks its path by lines of film on
the wall it creeps over,
to the eagle that soars sunward and beats the
tempest with its wings; it
does not therefore follow, that the Jacobin
of France may not be as
valiant a general and as good a politician, as
the madman of Macedon.
From Professor Ebeling's
Mr. Klopstock accompanied my friend and me to
his own house, where I saw
a fine bust of his brother. There was a
solemn and heavy greatness
in his countenance, which corresponded to
my preconceptions of his
style and genius.--I saw there, likewise, a
very fine portrait of
Lessing, whose works are at present the chief
object of my admiration.
His eyes were uncommonly like mine, if
anything, rather larger
and more prominent. But the lower part of his
face and his nose--O what
an exquisite expression of elegance and
sensibility!--There
appeared no depth, weight, or comprehensiveness in
the forehead.--The whole face
seemed to say, that Lessing was a man of
quick and voluptuous
feelings; of an active but light fancy; acute;
yet acute not in the
observation of actual life, but in the
arrangements and
management of the ideal world, that is, in taste, and
in metaphysics. I assure
you, that I wrote these very words in my
memorandum-book with the
portrait before my eyes, and when I knew
nothing of Lessing but his
name, and that he was a German writer of
eminence.
We consumed two hours and
more over a bad dinner, at the table d'hote.
"Patience at a German
ordinary, smiling at time." The Germans are the
worst cooks in Europe.
There is placed for every two persons a bottle
of common wine--Rhenish
and Claret alternately; but in the houses of
the opulent, during the
many and long intervals of the dinner, the
servants hand round
glasses of richer wines. At the Lord of Culpin's
they came in this order.
Burgundy--Madeira--Port--Frontiniac--
Pacchiaretti--Old
Hock--Mountain--Champagne--Hock again--Bishop, and
lastly, Punch. A tolerable
quantum, methinks! The last dish at the
ordinary, viz. slices of
roast pork, (for all the larger dishes are
brought in, cut up, and
first handed round and then set on the table,)
with stewed prunes and
other sweet fruits, and this followed by cheese
and butter, with plates of
apples, reminded me of Shakespeare [76],
and Shakespeare put it in
my head to go to the French comedy.
Bless me! why it is worse
than our modern English plays! The first act
informed me, that a court
martial is to be held on a Count Vatron, who
had drawn his sword on the
Colonel, his brother-in-law. The officers
plead in his behalf--in
vain! His wife, the Colonel's sister, pleads
with most tempestuous
agonies--in vain! She falls into hysterics and
faints away, to the
dropping of the inner curtain! In the second act
sentence of death is
passed on the Count--his wife, as frantic and
hysterical as before: more
so (good industrious creature!) she could
not be. The third and last
act, the wife still frantic, very frantic
indeed!--the soldiers just
about to fire, the handkerchief actually
dropped; when reprieve!
reprieve! is heard from behind the scenes: and
in comes Prince Somebody,
pardons the Count, and the wife is still
frantic, only with joy;
that was all!
O dear lady! this is one
of the cases, in which laughter is followed
by melancholy: for such is
the kind of drama, which is now substituted
every where for
Shakespeare and Racine. You well know, that I offer
violence to my own
feelings in joining these names. But however meanly
I may think of the French
serious drama, even in its most perfect
specimens; and with
whatever right I may complain of its perpetual
falsification of the
language, and of the connections and transitions
of thought, which Nature
has appropriated to states of passion; still,
however, the French
tragedies are consistent works of art, and the
offspring of great
intellectual power. Preserving a fitness in the
parts, and a harmony in
the whole, they form a nature of their own,
though a false nature.
Still they excite the minds of the spectators
to active thought, to a
striving after ideal excellence. The soul is
not stupefied into mere
sensations by a worthless sympathy with our
own ordinary sufferings,
or an empty curiosity for the surprising,
undignified by the
language or the situations which awe and delight
the imagination. What, (I
would ask of the crowd, that press forward
to the pantomimic
tragedies and weeping comedies of Kotzebue and his
imitators), what are you
seeking? Is it comedy? But in the comedy of
Shakespeare and Moliere
the more accurate my knowledge, and the more
profoundly I think, the
greater is the satisfaction that mingles with
my laughter. For though
the qualities which these writers pourtray are
ludicrous indeed, either
from the kind or the excess, and exquisitely
ludicrous, yet are they
the natural growth of the human mind and such
as, with more or less
change in the drapery, I can apply to my own
heart, or at least to
whole classes of my fellow-creatures. How often
are not the moralist and
the metaphysician obliged for the happiest
illustrations of general
truths and the subordinate laws of human
thought and action to
quotations, not only from the tragic characters,
but equally from the
Jaques, Falstaff, and even from the fools and
clowns of Shakespeare, or
from the Miser, Hypochondriast, and
Hypocrite, of Moliere! Say
not, that I am recommending abstractions:
for these
class-characteristics, which constitute the instructiveness
of a character, are so
modified and particularized in each person of
the Shakesperian Drama,
that life itself does not excite more
distinctly that sense of
individuality which belongs to real
existence. Paradoxical as
it may sound, one of the essential
properties of geometry is
not less essential to dramatic excellence,
and, (if I may mention his
name without pedantry to a lady,) Aristotle
has accordingly required
of the poet an involution of the universal in
the individual. The chief
differences are, that in geometry it is the
universal truth itself,
which is uppermost in the consciousness, in
poetry the individual form
in which the truth is clothed. With the
ancients, and not less
with the elder dramatists of England and
France, both comedy and
tragedy were considered as kinds of poetry.
They neither sought in
comedy to make us laugh merely, much less to
make us laugh by wry
faces, accidents of jargon, slang phrases for the
day, or the clothing of
commonplace morals in metaphors drawn from the
shops or mechanic
occupations of their characters; nor did they
condescend in tragedy to
wheedle away the applause of the spectators,
by representing before
them fac-similes of their own mean selves in
all their existing
meanness, or to work on their sluggish sympathies
by a pathos not a whit
more respectable than the maudlin tears of
drunkenness. Their tragic
scenes were meant to affect us indeed, but
within the bounds of
pleasure, and in union with the activity both of
our understanding and
imagination. They wished to transport the mind
to a sense of its possible
greatness, and to implant the germs of that
greatness during the
temporary oblivion of the worthless "thing, we
are" and of the
peculiar state, in which each man happens to be;
suspending our individual
recollections and lulling them to sleep amid
the music of nobler
thoughts.
Hold!--(methinks I hear
the spokesman of the crowd reply, and we will
listen to him. I am the
plaintiff, and he the defendant.)
DEFENDANT. Hold! are not our modern sentimental
plays filled with the
best Christian morality?
PLAINTIFF. Yes! just as much of it, and just that
part of it, which
you can exercise without a
single Christian virtue--without a single
sacrifice that is really
painful to you!--just as much as flatters
you, sends you away
pleased with your own hearts, and quite reconciled
to your vices, which can
never be thought very ill of, when they keep
such good company, and
walk hand in hand with so much compassion and
generosity; adulation so
loathsome, that you would spit in the man's
face who dared offer it to
you in a private company, unless you
interpreted it as
insulting irony, you appropriate with infinite
satisfaction, when you
share the garbage with the whole stye, and
gobble it out of a common
trough. No Caesar must pace your boards--no
Antony, no royal Dane, no
Orestes, no Andromache!
D. No: or as few of them as possible. What
has a plain citizen of
London, or Hamburg, to do
with your kings and queens, and your old
school-boy Pagan heroes?
Besides, every body knows the stories; and
what curiosity can we
feel----
P. What, Sir, not for the manner?--not for
the delightful language of
the poet?--not for the
situations, the action and reaction of the
passions?
D. You are hasty, Sir! the only curiosity,
we feel, is in the story:
and how can we be anxious
concerning the end of a play, or be
surprised by it, when we
know how it will turn out?
P. Your pardon, for having interrupted
you! we now understand each
other. You seek then, in a
tragedy, which wise men of old held for the
highest effort of human
genius, the same gratification, as that you
receive from a new novel,
the last German romance, and other dainties
of the day, which can be
enjoyed but once. If you carry these feelings
to the sister art of
Painting, Michael Angelo's Sixtine Chapel, and
the Scripture Gallery of
Raphael can expect no favour from you. You
know all about them
beforehand; and are, doubtless, more familiar with
the subjects of those
paintings, than with the tragic tales of the
historic or heroic ages.
There is a consistency, therefore, in your
preference of contemporary
writers: for the great men of former times,
those at least who were
deemed great by our ancestors, sought so
little to gratify this
kind of curiosity, that they seemed to have
regarded the story in a
not much higher light, than the painter
regards his canvass: as
that on, not by, which they were to display
their appropriate
excellence. No work, resembling a tale or romance,
can well show less variety
of invention in the incidents, or less
anxiety in weaving them
together, than the DON QUIXOTE of Cervantes.
Its admirers feel the
disposition to go back and re-peruse some
preceding chapter, at
least ten times for once that they find any
eagerness to hurry
forwards: or open the book on those parts which
they best recollect, even
as we visit those friends oftenest whom we
love most, and with whose
characters and actions we are the most
intimately acquainted. In
the divine Ariosto, (as his countrymen call
this, their darling poet,)
I question whether there be a single tale
of his own invention, or
the elements of which, were not familiar to
the readers of "old
romance." I will pass by the ancient Greeks, who
thought it even necessary
to the fable of a tragedy, that its
substance should be
previously known. That there had been at least
fifty tragedies with the
same title, would be one of the motives which
determined Sophocles and
Euripides, in the choice of Electra as a
subject. But Milton--
D. Aye Milton, indeed!--but do not Dr.
Johnson and other great men
tell us, that nobody now
reads Milton but as a task?
P. So much the worse for them, of whom
this can be truly said! But
why then do you pretend to
admire Shakespeare? The greater part, if
not all, of his dramas
were, as far as the names and the main
incidents are concerned,
already stock plays. All the stories, at
least, on which they are
built, pre-existed in the chronicles,
ballads, or translations
of contemporary or preceding English writers.
Why, I repeat, do you
pretend to admire Shakespeare? Is it, perhaps,
that you only pretend to
admire him? However, as once for all, you
have dismissed the
well-known events and personages of history, or the
epic muse, what have you
taken in their stead? Whom has your tragic
muse armed with her bowl
and dagger? the sentimental muse I should
have said, whom you have
seated in the throne of tragedy? What heroes
has she reared on her
buskins?
D. O! our good friends and next-door
neighbours--honest tradesmen,
valiant tars,
high-spirited half-pay officers, philanthropic Jews,
virtuous courtezans,
tender-hearted braziers, and sentimental rat-
catchers!--(a little bluff
or so, but all our very generous, tender-
hearted characters are a
little rude or misanthropic, and all our
misanthropes very
tender-hearted.)
P. But I pray you, friend, in what actions
great or interesting, can
such men be engaged?
D. They give away a great deal of money;
find rich dowries for young
men and maidens who have
all other good qualities; they brow-beat
lords, baronets, and
justices of the peace, (for they are as bold as
Hector!)--they rescue
stage coaches at the instant they are falling
down precipices; carry
away infants in the sight of opposing armies;
and some of our performers
act a muscular able-bodied man to such
perfection, that our
dramatic poets, who always have the actors in
their eye, seldom fail to
make their favourite male character as
strong as Samson. And then
they take such prodigious leaps!! And what
is done on the stage is
more striking even than what is acted. I once
remember such a deafening
explosion, that I could not hear a word of
the play for half an act
after it: and a little real gunpowder being
set fire to at the same
time, and smelt by all the spectators, the
naturalness of the scene
was quite astonishing!
P. But how can you connect with such men
and such actions that
dependence of thousands on
the fate of one, which gives so lofty an
interest to the personages
of Shakespeare, and the Greek Tragedians?
How can you connect with
them that sublimest of all feelings, the
power of destiny and the
controlling might of heaven, which seems to
elevate the characters
which sink beneath its irresistible blow?
D. O mere fancies! We seek and find on the
present stage our own
wants and passions, our
own vexations, losses, and embarrassments.
P. It is your own poor pettifogging nature
then, which you desire to
have represented before
you?--not human nature in its height and
vigour? But surely you
might find the former with all its joys and
sorrows, more conveniently
in your own houses and parishes.
D. True! but here comes a difference.
Fortune is blind, but the poet
has his eyes open, and is
besides as complaisant as fortune is
capricious. He makes every
thing turn out exactly as we would wish it.
He gratifies us by
representing those as hateful or contemptible whom
we hate and wish to
despise.
P. (aside.) That is, he gratifies your
envy by libelling your
superiors.
D. He makes all those precise moralists,
who affect to be better than
their neighbours, turn out
at last abject hypocrites, traitors, and
hard-hearted villains; and
your men of spirit, who take their girl and
their glass with equal
freedom, prove the true men of honour, and,
(that no part of the
audience may remain unsatisfied,) reform in the
last scene, and leave no
doubt in the minds of the ladies, that they
will make most faithful
and excellent husbands: though it does seem a
pity, that they should be
obliged to get rid of qualities which had
made them so interesting!
Besides, the poor become rich all at once;
and in the final
matrimonial choice the opulent and high-born
themselves are made to
confess; that VIRTUE IS THE ONLY TRUE NOBILITY,
AND THAT A LOVELY WOMAN IS
A DOWRY OF HERSELF!!
P. Excellent! But you have forgotten those
brilliant flashes of
loyalty, those patriotic
praises of the King and Old England, which,
especially if conveyed in
a metaphor from the ship or the shop, so
often solicit and so
unfailingly receive the public plaudit! I give
your prudence credit for
the omission. For the whole system of your
drama is a moral and
intellectual Jacobinism of the most dangerous
kind, and those
common-place rants of loyalty are no better than
hypocrisy in your
playwrights, and your own sympathy with them a gross
self-delusion. For the
whole secret of dramatic popularity consists
with you in the confusion
and subversion of the natural order of
things, their causes and
their effects; in the excitement of surprise,
by representing the
qualities of liberality, refined feeling, and a
nice sense of honour,
(those things rather which pass among you for
such), in persons and in
classes of life where experience teaches us
least to expect them; and
in rewarding with all the sympathies, that
are the dues of virtue,
those criminals whom law, reason, and religion
have excommunicated from
our esteem!
And now--good night!
Truly! I might have written this last sheet
without having gone to
Germany; but I fancied myself talking to you by
your own fireside, and can
you think it a small pleasure to me to
forget now and then, that
I am not there? Besides, you and my other
good friends have made up
your minds to me as I am, and from whatever
place I write you will
expect that part of my "Travels" will consist
of excursions in my own
mind.
LETTER III
RATZEBURG.
No little fish thrown back
again into the water, no fly unimprisoned
from a child's hand, could
more buoyantly enjoy its element, than I
this clean and peaceful
house, with this lovely view of the town,
groves, and lake of
Ratzeburg, from the window at which I am writing.
My spirits certainly, and
my health I fancied, were beginning to sink
under the noise, dirt, and
unwholesome air of our Hamburg hotel. I
left it on Sunday, Sept.
23rd, with a letter of introduction from the
poet Klopstock, to the
Amtmann of Ratzeburg. The Amtmann received me
with kindness, and
introduced me to the worthy pastor, who agreed to
board and lodge me for any
length of time not less than a month. The
vehicle, in which I took
my place, was considerably larger than an
English stage-coach, to
which it bore much the same proportion and
rude resemblance, that an
elephant's ear does to the human. Its top
was composed of naked
boards of different colours, and seeming to have
been parts of different
wainscots. Instead of windows there were
leathern curtains with a
little eye of glass in each: they perfectly
answered the purpose of
keeping out the prospect and letting in the
cold. I could observe
little therefore, but the inns and farmhouses at
which we stopped. They
were all alike, except in size: one great room,
like a barn, with a
hay-loft over it, the straw and hay dangling in
tufts through the boards
which formed the ceiling of the room, and the
floor of the loft. From
this room, which is paved like a street,
sometimes one, sometimes
two smaller ones, are enclosed at one end.
These are commonly
floored. In the large room the cattle, pigs,
poultry, men, women, and
children, live in amicable community; yet
there was an appearance of
cleanliness and rustic comfort. One of
these houses I measured.
It was an hundred feet in length. The
apartments were taken off
from one corner. Between these and the
stalls there was a small
interspace, and here the breadth was forty-
eight feet, but thirty-two
where the stalls were; of course, the
stalls were on each side
eight feet in depth. The faces of the cows,
etc. were turned towards
the room; indeed they were in it, so that
they had at least the
comfort of seeing each other's faces. Stall-
feeding is universal in
this part of Germany, a practice concerning
which the agriculturist
and the poet are likely to entertain opposite
opinions--or at least, to
have very different feelings. The woodwork
of these buildings on the
outside is left unplastered, as in old
houses among us, and,
being painted red and green, it cuts and
tesselates the buildings
very gaily. From within three miles of
Hamburg almost to Molln,
which is thirty miles from it, the country,
as far as I could see it,
was a dead flat, only varied by woods. At
Molln it became more
beautiful. I observed a small lake nearly
surrounded with groves,
and a palace in view belonging to the King of
Great Britain, and
inhabited by the Inspector of the Forests. We were
nearly the same time in
travelling the thirty-five miles from Hamburg
to Ratzeburg, as we had
been in going from London to Yarmouth, one
hundred and twenty-six
miles.
The lake of Ratzeburg runs
from south to north, about nine miles in
length, and varying in
breadth from three miles to half a mile. About
a mile from the
southernmost point it is divided into two, of course
very unequal, parts by an
island, which, being connected by a bridge
and a narrow slip of land
with the one shore, and by another bridge of
immense length with the
other shore, forms a complete isthmus. On this
island the town of
Ratzeburg is built. The pastor's house or vicarage,
together with the
Amtmann's Amtsschreiber's, and the church, stands
near the summit of a hill,
which slopes down to the slip of land and
the little bridge, from
which, through a superb military gate, you
step into the island-town
of Ratzeburg. This again is itself a little
hill, by ascending and
descending which, you arrive at the long
bridge, and so to the
other shore. The water to the south of the town
is called the Little Lake,
which however almost engrosses the beauties
of the whole the shores
being just often enough green and bare to give
the proper effect to the
magnificent groves which occupy the greater
part of their
circumference. From the turnings, windings, and
indentations of the shore,
the views vary almost every ten steps, and
the whole has a sort of
majestic beauty, a feminine grandeur. At the
north of the Great Lake,
and peeping over it, I see the seven church
towers of Luebec, at the
distance of twelve or thirteen miles, yet as
distinctly as if they were
not three. The only defect in the view is,
that Ratzeburg is built
entirely of red bricks, and all the houses
roofed with red tiles. To
the eye, therefore, it presents a clump of
brick-dust red. Yet this
evening, Oct. 10th, twenty minutes past five,
I saw the town perfectly
beautiful, and the whole softened down into
complete keeping, if I may
borrow a term from the painters. The sky
over Ratzeburg and all the
east was a pure evening blue, while over
the west it was covered
with light sandy clouds. Hence a deep red
light spread over the
whole prospect, in undisturbed harmony with the
red town, the brown-red
woods, and the yellow-red reeds on the skirts
of the lake. Two or three
boats, with single persons paddling them,
floated up and down in the
rich light, which not only was itself in
harmony with all, but
brought all into harmony.
I should have told you
that I went back to Hamburg on Thursday (Sept.
27th) to take leave of my
friend, who travels southward, and returned
hither on the Monday
following. From Empfelde, a village half way from
Ratzeburg, I walked to
Hamburg through deep sandy roads and a dreary
flat: the soil everywhere
white, hungry, and excessively pulverised;
but the approach to the
city is pleasing. Light cool country houses,
which you can look through
and see the gardens behind them, with
arbours and trellis work,
and thick vegetable walls, and trees in
cloisters and piazzas,
each house with neat rails before it, and green
seats within the rails.
Every object, whether the growth of nature or
the work of man, was neat
and artificial. It pleased me far better,
than if the houses and
gardens, and pleasure fields, had been in a
nobler taste: for this
nobler taste would have been mere apery. The
busy, anxious,
money-loving merchant of Hamburg could only have
adopted, he could not have
enjoyed the simplicity of nature. The mind
begins to love nature by
imitating human conveniences in nature; but
this is a step in
intellect, though a low one--and were it not so, yet
all around me spoke of
innocent enjoyment and sensitive comforts, and
I entered with
unscrupulous sympathy into the enjoyments and comforts
even of the busy, anxious,
money-loving merchants of Hamburg. In this
charitable and catholic
mood I reached the vast ramparts of the city.
These are huge green
cushions, one rising above the other, with trees
growing in the
interspaces, pledges and symbols of a long peace. Of my
return I have nothing
worth communicating, except that I took extra
post, which answers to
posting in England. These north German post
chaises are uncovered
wicker carts. An English dust-cart is a piece of
finery, a chef d'auvre of
mechanism, compared with them and the
horses!--a savage might
use their ribs instead of his fingers for a
numeration table. Wherever
we stopped, the postilion fed his cattle
with the brown rye bread
of which he eat himself, all breakfasting
together; only the horses
had no gin to their water, and the postilion
no water to his gin. Now
and henceforward for subjects of more
interest to you, and to
the objects in search of which I left you:
namely, the literati and
literature of Germany.
Believe me, I walked with
an impression of awe on my spirits, as W----
and myself accompanied Mr.
Klopstock to the house of his brother, the
poet, which stands about a
quarter of a mile from the city gate. It is
one of a row of little
common-place summer-houses, (for so they
looked,) with four or five
rows of young meagre elm trees before the
windows, beyond which is a
green, and then a dead flat intersected
with several roads.
Whatever beauty, (thought I,) may be before the
poet's eyes at present, it
must certainly be purely of his own
creation. We waited a few
minutes in a neat little parlour, ornamented
with the figures of two of
the Muses and with prints, the subjects of
which were from
Klopstock's odes. The poet entered. I was much
disappointed in his
countenance, and recognised in it no likeness to
the bust. There was no
comprehension in the forehead, no weight over
the eye-brows, no
expression of peculiarity, moral or intellectual, on
the eyes, no massiveness
in the general countenance. He is, if
anything, rather below the
middle size. He wore very large half-boots,
which his legs filled, so
fearfully were they swollen. However, though
neither W---- nor myself
could discover any indications of sublimity
or enthusiasm in his
physiognomy, we were both equally impressed with
his liveliness, and his
kind and ready courtesy. He talked in French
with my friend, and with
difficulty spoke a few sentences to me in
English. His enunciation
was not in the least affected by the entire
want of his upper teeth.
The conversation began on his part by the
expression of his rapture
at the surrender of the detachment of French
troops under General
Humbert. Their proceedings in Ireland with regard
to the committee which
they had appointed, with the rest of their
organizing system, seemed
to have given the poet great entertainment.
He then declared his
sanguine belief in Nelson's victory, and
anticipated its
confirmation with a keen and triumphant pleasure. His
words, tones, looks,
implied the most vehement Anti-Gallicanism. The
subject changed to
literature, and I inquired in Latin concerning the
history of German poetry
and the elder German poets. To my great
astonishment he confessed,
that he knew very little on the subject. He
had indeed occasionally
read one or two of their elder writers, but
not so as to enable him to
speak of their merits. Professor Ebeling,
he said, would probably
give me every information of this kind: the
subject had not
particularly excited his curiosity. He then talked of
Milton and Glover, and
thought Glover's blank verse superior to
Milton's. W---- and myself
expressed our surprise: and my friend gave
his definition and notion
of harmonious verse, that it consisted, (the
English iambic blank verse
above all,) in the apt arrangement of
pauses and cadences, and
the sweep of whole paragraphs,
"with many a winding bout
Of linked sweetness long drawn out,"
and not in the even flow,
much less in the prominence of antithetic
vigour, of single lines,
which were indeed injurious to the total
effect, except where they
were introduced for some specific purpose.
Klopstock assented, and
said that he meant to confine Glover's
superiority to single
lines. He told us that he had read Milton, in a
prose translation, when he
was fourteen [77]. I understood him thus
myself, and W----
interpreted Klopstock's French as I had already
construed it. He appeared
to know very little of Milton or indeed of
our poets in general. He
spoke with great indignation of the English
prose translation of his
MESSIAH. All the translations had been bad,
very bad--but the English
was no translation--there were pages on
pages not in the
original--and half the original was not to be found
in the translation. W----
told him that I intended to translate a few
of his odes as specimens
of German lyrics--he then said to me in
English, "I wish you
would render into English some select passages of
THE MESSIAH, and revenge
me of your countryman!". It was the liveliest
thing which he produced in
the whole conversation. He told us, that
his first ode was fifty
years older than his last. I looked at him
with much emotion--I
considered him as the venerable father of German
poetry; as a good man; as
a Christian; seventy-four years old; with
legs enormously swollen; yet
active, lively, cheerful, and kind, and
communicative. My eyes
felt as if a tear were swelling into them. In
the portrait of Lessing
there was a toupee periwig, which enormously
injured the effect of his
physiognomy--Klopstock wore the same,
powdered and frizzled. By
the bye, old men ought never to wear powder
--the contrast between a
large snow-white wig and the colour of an old
man's skin is disgusting,
and wrinkles in such a neighbourhood appear
only channels for dirt. It
is an honour to poets and great men, that
you think of them as parts
of nature; and anything of trick and
fashion wounds you in
them, as much as when you see venerable yews
clipped into miserable
peacocks.--The author of THE MESSIAH should
have worn his own grey
hair.--His powder and periwig were to the eye
what Mr. Virgil would be
to the ear.
Klopstock dwelt much on
the superior power which the German language
possessed of concentrating
meaning. He said, he had often translated
parts of Homer and Virgil,
line by line, and a German line proved
always sufficient for a
Greek or Latin one. In English you cannot do
this. I answered, that in
English we could commonly render one Greek
heroic line in a line and
a half of our common heroic metre, and I
conjectured that this line
and a half would be found to contain no
more syllables than one
German or Greek hexameter. He did not
understand me [78]: and I,
who wished to hear his opinions, not to
correct them, was glad
that he did not.
We now took our leave. At
the beginning of the French Revolution
Klopstock wrote odes of
congratulation. He received some honorary
presents from the French
Republic, (a golden crown I believe), and,
like our Priestley, was
invited to a seat in the legislature, which he
declined. But when French
liberty metamorphosed herself into a fury,
he sent back these
presents with a palinodia, declaring his abhorrence
of their proceedings: and
since then he has been perhaps more than
enough an Anti-Gallican. I
mean, that in his just contempt and
detestation of the crimes
and follies of the Revolutionists, he
suffers himself to forget
that the revolution itself is a process of
the Divine Providence; and
that as the folly of men is the wisdom of
God, so are their
iniquities instruments of his goodness. From
Klopstock's house we
walked to the ramparts, discoursing together on
the poet and his
conversation, till our attention was diverted to the
beauty and singularity of
the sunset and its effects on the objects
around us. There were
woods in the distance. A rich sandy light, (nay,
of a much deeper colour
than sandy,) lay over these woods that
blackened in the blaze.
Over that part of the woods which lay
immediately under the
intenser light, a brassy mist floated. The trees
on the ramparts, and the
people moving to and fro between them, were
cut or divided into equal
segments of deep shade and brassy light. Had
the trees, and the bodies
of the men and women, been divided into
equal segments by a rule
or pair of compasses, the portions could not
have been more regular.
All else was obscure. It was a fairy scene!--
and to increase its
romantic character, among the moving objects, thus
divided into alternate
shade and brightness, was a beautiful child,
dressed with the elegant
simplicity of an English child, riding on a
stately goat, the saddle,
bridle, and other accoutrements of which
were in a high degree
costly and splendid. Before I quit the subject
of Hamburg, let me say,
that I remained a day or two longer than I
otherwise should have
done, in order to be present at the feast of St.
Michael, the patron saint
of Hamburg, expecting to see the civic pomp
of this commercial
Republic. I was however disappointed. There were no
processions, two or three
sermons were preached to two or three old
women in two or three
churches, and St. Michael and his patronage
wished elsewhere by the
higher classes, all places of entertainment,
theatre, etc. being shut
up on this day. In Hamburg, there seems to be
no religion at all; in
Luebec it is confined to the women. The men
seemed determined to be
divorced from their wives in the other world,
if they cannot in this.
You will not easily conceive a more singular
sight, than is presented
by the vast aisle of the principal church at
Luebec, seen from the
organ loft: for being filled with female
servants and persons in
the same class of life, and all their caps
having gold and silver
cauls, it appears like a rich pavement of gold
and silver.
I will conclude this
letter with the mere transcription of notes,
which my friend W---- made
of his conversations with Klopstock, during
the interviews that took
place after my departure. On these I shall
make but one remark at
present, and that will appear a presumptuous
one, namely, that
Klopstock's remarks on the venerable sage of
Koenigsburg are to my own
knowledge injurious and mistaken; and so far
is it from being true,
that his system is now given up, that
throughout the
Universities of Germany there is not a single professor
who is not either a
Kantean or a disciple of Fichte, whose system is
built on the Kantean, and
presupposes its truth; or lastly who, though
an antagonist of Kant, as
to his theoretical work, has not embraced
wholly or in part his
moral system, and adopted part of his
nomenclature.
"Klopstock having wished to see the CALVARY of
Cumberland, and asked what
was thought of it in England, I went to
Remnant's (the English
bookseller) where I procured the Analytical
Review, in which is
contained the review of Cumberland's CALVARY. I
remembered to have read
there some specimens of a blank verse
translation of THE
MESSIAH. I had mentioned this to Klopstock, and he
had a great desire to see
them. I walked over to his house and put the
book into his hands. On
adverting to his own poem, he told me he began
THE MESSIAH when he was
seventeen; he devoted three entire years to
the plan without composing
a single line. He was greatly at a loss in
what manner to execute his
work. There were no successful specimens of
versification in the
German language before this time. The first three
cantos he wrote in a
species of measured or numerous prose. This,
though done with much
labour and some success, was far from satisfying
him. He had composed
hexameters both Latin and Greek as a school
exercise, and there had
been also in the German language attempts in
that style of
versification. These were only of very moderate merit.--
One day he was struck with
the idea of what could be done in this way
--he kept his room a whole
day, even went without his dinner, and found
that in the evening he had
written twenty-three hexameters, versifying
a part of what he had
before written in prose. From that time, pleased
with his efforts, he
composed no more in prose. Today he informed me
that he had finished his
plan before he read Milton. He was enchanted
to see an author who
before him had trod the same path. This is a
contradiction of what he
said before. He did not wish to speak of his
poem to any one till it
was finished: but some of his friends who had
seen what he had finished,
tormented him till he had consented to
publish a few books in a
journal. He was then, I believe, very young,
about twenty-five. The
rest was printed at different periods, four
books at a time. The
reception given to the first specimens was highly
flattering. He was nearly
thirty years in finishing the whole poem,
but of these thirty years
not more than two were employed in the
composition. He only
composed in favourable moments; besides he had
other occupations. He
values himself upon the plan of his odes, and
accuses the modern lyrical
writers of gross deficiency in this
respect. I laid the same
accusation against Horace: he would not hear
of it--but waived the
discussion. He called Rousseau's ODE TO FORTUNE
a moral dissertation in
stanzas. I spoke of Dryden's ST. CECILIA; but
he did not seem familiar
with our writers. He wished to know the
distinctions between our
dramatic and epic blank verse. He recommended
me to read his HERMANN
before I read either THE MESSIAH or the odes.
He flattered himself that
some time or other his dramatic poems would
be known in England. He
had not heard of Cowper. He thought that Voss
in his translation of THE
ILIAD had done violence to the idiom of the
Germans, and had
sacrificed it to the Greeks, not remembering
sufficiently that each
language has its particular spirit and genius.
He said Lessing was the
first of their dramatic writers. I complained
of NATHAN as tedious. He
said there was not enough of action in it;
but that Lessing was the
most chaste of their writers. He spoke
favourably of Goethe; but
said that his SORROWS OF WERTER was his best
work, better than any of
his dramas: he preferred the first written to
the rest of Goethe's
dramas. Schiller's ROBBERS he found so
extravagant, that he could
not read it. I spoke of the scene of the
setting sun. He did not
know it. He said Schiller could not live. He
thought DON CARLOS the
best of his dramas; but said that the plot was
inextricable.--It was evident
he knew little of Schiller's works:
indeed, he said, he could
not read them. Buerger, he said, was a true
poet, and would live; that
Schiller, on the contrary, must soon be
forgotten; that he gave
himself up to the imitation of Shakespeare,
who often was extravagant,
but that Schiller was ten thousand times
more so. He spoke very
slightingly of Kotzebue, as an immoral author
in the first place, and
next, as deficient in power. At Vienna, said
he, they are transported
with him; but we do not reckon the people of
Vienna either the wisest
or the wittiest people of Germany. He said
Wieland was a charming
author, and a sovereign master of his own
language: that in this
respect Goethe could not be compared to him,
nor indeed could any body
else. He said that his fault was to be
fertile to exuberance. I
told him the OBERON had just been translated
into English. He asked me
if I was not delighted with the poem. I
answered, that I thought
the story began to flag about the seventh or
eighth book; and observed,
that it was unworthy of a man of genius to
make the interest of a
long poem turn entirely upon animal
gratification. He seemed
at first disposed to excuse this by saying,
that there are different
subjects for poetry, and that poets are not
willing to be restricted
in their choice. I answered, that I thought
the passion of love as
well suited to the purposes of poetry as any
other passion; but that it
was a cheap way of pleasing to fix the
attention of the reader
through a long poem on the mere appetite.
Well! but, said he, you
see, that such poems please every body. I
answered, that it was the
province of a great poet to raise people up
to his own level, not to
descend to theirs. He agreed, and confessed,
that on no account
whatsoever would he have written a work like the
OBERON. He spoke in
raptures of Wieland's style, and pointed out the
passage where Retzia is
delivered of her child, as exquisitely
beautiful. I said that I
did not perceive any very striking passages;
but that I made allowance
for the imperfections of a translation. Of
the thefts of Wieland, he
said, they were so exquisitely managed, that
the greatest writers might
be proud to steal as he did. He considered
the books and fables of
old romance writers in the light of the
ancient mythology, as a
sort of common property, from which a man was
free to take whatever he
could make a good use of. An Englishman had
presented him with the
odes of Collins, which he had read with
pleasure. He knew little
or nothing of Gray, except his ELEGY written
in a country CHURCH-YARD.
He complained of the fool in LEAR. I
observed that he seemed to
give a terrible wildness to the distress;
but still he complained.
He asked whether it was not allowed, that
Pope had written rhymed
poetry with more skill than any of our
writers--I said I
preferred Dryden, because his couplets had greater
variety in their movement.
He thought my reason a good one; but asked
whether the rhyme of Pope
were not more exact. This question I
understood as applying to
the final terminations, and observed to him
that I believed it was the
case; but that I thought it was easy to
excuse some inaccuracy in
the final sounds, if the general sweep of
the verse was superior. I
told him that we were not so exact with
regard to the final
endings of the lines as the French. He did not
seem to know that we made
no distinction between masculine and
feminine (i.e. single or
double,) rhymes: at least he put inquiries to
me on this subject. He
seemed to think that no language could be so
far formed as that it
might not be enriched by idioms borrowed from
another tongue. I said
this was a very dangerous practice; and added,
that I thought Milton had
often injured both his prose and verse by
taking this liberty too
frequently. I recommended to him the prose
works of Dryden as models
of pure and native English. I was treading
upon tender ground, as I
have reason to suppose that he has himself
liberally indulged in the
practice."
The same day I dined at
Mr. Klopstock's, where I had the pleasure of a
third interview with the
poet. We talked principally about indifferent
things. I asked him what
he thought of Kant. He said that his
reputation was much on the
decline in Germany. That for his own part
he was not surprised to
find it so, as the works of Kant were to him
utterly
incomprehensible--that he had often been pestered by the
Kanteans; but was rarely
in the practice of arguing with them. His
custom was to produce the
book, open it and point to a passage, and
beg they would explain it.
This they ordinarily attempted to do by
substituting their own
ideas. I do not want, I say, an explanation of
your own ideas, but of the
passage which is before us. In this way I
generally bring the
dispute to an immediate conclusion. He spoke of
Wolfe as the first
Metaphysician they had in Germany. Wolfe had
followers; but they could
hardly be called a sect, and luckily till
the appearance of Kant,
about fifteen years ago, Germany had not been
pestered by any sect of
philosophers whatsoever; but that each man had
separately pursued his
inquiries uncontrolled by the dogmas of a
master. Kant had appeared
ambitious to be the founder of a sect; that
he had succeeded: but that
the Germans were now coming to their senses
again. That Nicolai and
Engel had in different ways contributed to
disenchant the nation; but
above all the incomprehensibility of the
philosopher and his
philosophy. He seemed pleased to hear, that as yet
Kant's doctrines had not
met with many admirers in England--did not
doubt but that we had too
much wisdom to be duped by a writer who set
at defiance the common
sense and common understandings of men. We
talked of tragedy. He
seemed to rate highly the power of exciting
tears--I said that nothing
was more easy than to deluge an audience,
that it was done every day
by the meanest writers.
I must remind you, my
friend, first, that these notes are not intended
as specimens of
Klopstock's intellectual power, or even "colloquial
prowess," to judge of
which by an accidental conversation, and this
with strangers, and those
too foreigners, would be not only
unreasonable, but
calumnious. Secondly, I attribute little other
interest to the remarks
than what is derived from the celebrity of the
person who made them.
Lastly, if you ask me, whether I have read THE
MESSIAH, and what I think
of it? I answer--as yet the first four books
only: and as to my
opinion--(the reasons of which hereafter)--you may
guess it from what I could
not help muttering to myself, when the good
pastor this morning told
me, that Klopstock was the German Milton--"a
very German Milton
indeed!!!"
Heaven preserve you,
and
S. T. COLERIDGE.
CHAPTER XXIII
Quid quod praefatione
praemunierim libellum, qua conor omnem
offendiculi ansam
praecidere? [79] Neque quicquam addubito, quin ea
candidis omnibus faciat
satis. Quid autem facias istis, qui vel ob
ingenii pertinaciam sibi
satisfieri nolint, vel stupidiores sint, quam
ut satisfactionem intelligant?
Nam quemadmodum Simonides dixit,
Thessalos hebetiores esse,
quam ut possint a se decipi, ita quosdam
videas stupidiores, quam
ut placari queant. Adhaec, non mirum est
invenire quod calumnietur,
qui nihil aliud quaerit, nisi quod
calumnietur.
ERASMUS ad Dorpium, Theologum.
In the rifacimento of THE
FRIEND, I have inserted extracts from the
CONCIONES AD POPULUM,
printed, though scarcely published, in the year
1795, in the very heat and
height of my anti-ministerial enthusiasm:
these in proof that my
principles of politics have sustained no
change.--In the present
chapter, I have annexed to my Letters from
Germany, with particular
reference to that, which contains a
disquisition on the modern
drama, a critique on the Tragedy of
BERTRAM, written within
the last twelve months: in proof, that I have
been as falsely charged
with any fickleness in my principles of
taste.--The letter was
written to a friend: and the apparent
abruptness with which it
begins, is owing to the omission of the
introductory sentences.
You remember, my dear Sir,
that Mr. Whitbread, shortly before his
death, proposed to the
assembled subscribers of Drury Lane Theatre,
that the concern should be
farmed to some responsible individual under
certain conditions and
limitations: and that his proposal was
rejected, not without
indignation, as subversive of the main object,
for the attainment of
which the enlightened and patriotic assemblage
of philodramatists had
been induced to risk their subscriptions. Now
this object was avowed to
be no less than the redemption of the
British stage not only
from horses, dogs, elephants, and the like
zoological rarities, but
also from the more pernicious barbarisms and
Kotzebuisms in morals and
taste. Drury Lane was to be restored to its
former classical renown;
Shakespeare, Jonson, and Otway, with the
expurgated muses of
Vanbrugh, Congreve, and Wycherley, were to be
reinaugurated in their
rightful dominion over British audiences; and
the Herculean process was
to commence, by exterminating the speaking
monsters imported from the
banks of the Danube, compared with which
their mute relations, the
emigrants from Exeter 'Change, and Polito
(late Pidcock's)
show-carts, were tame and inoffensive. Could an
heroic project, at once so
refined and so arduous, be consistently
entrusted to, could its
success be rationally expected from, a
mercenary manager, at
whose critical quarantine the lucri bonus odor
would conciliate a bill of
health to the plague in person? No! As the
work proposed, such must
be the work-masters. Rank, fortune, liberal
education, and (their
natural accompaniments, or consequences)
critical discernment,
delicate tact, disinterestedness, unsuspected
morals, notorious
patriotism, and tried Maecenasship, these were the
recommendations that
influenced the votes of the proprietary
subscribers of Drury Lane
Theatre, these the motives that occasioned
the election of its
Supreme Committee of Management. This circumstance
alone would have excited a
strong interest in the public mind,
respecting the first
production of the Tragic Muse which had been
announced under such
auspices, and had passed the ordeal of such
judgments: and the
tragedy, on which you have requested my judgment,
was the work on which the
great expectations, justified by so many
causes, were doomed at
length to settle.
But before I enter on the
examination of BERTRAM, or THE CASTLE OF ST.
ALDOBRAND, I shall
interpose a few words, on the phrase German Drama,
which I hold to be
altogether a misnomer. At the time of Lessing, the
German stage, such as it
was, appears to have been a flat and servile
copy of the French. It was
Lessing who first introduced the name and
the works of Shakespeare
to the admiration of the Germans; and I
should not perhaps go too
far, if I add, that it was Lessing who first
proved to all thinking
men, even to Shakespeare's own countrymen, the
true nature of his
apparent irregularities. These, he demonstrated,
were deviations only from
the accidents of the Greek tragedy; and from
such accidents as hung a
heavy weight on the wings of the Greek poets,
and narrowed their flight
within the limits of what we may call the
heroic opera. He proved,
that, in all the essentials of art, no less
than in the truth of
nature, the Plays of Shakespeare were
incomparably more
coincident with the principles of Aristotle, than
the productions of
Corneille and Racine, notwithstanding the boasted
regularity of the latter.
Under these convictions were Lessing's own
dramatic works composed.
Their deficiency is in depth and imagination:
their excellence is in the
construction of the plot; the good sense of
the sentiments; the
sobriety of the morals; and the high polish of the
diction and dialogue. In
short, his dramas are the very antipodes of
all those which it has
been the fashion of late years at once to abuse
and enjoy, under the name
of the German drama. Of this latter,
Schiller's ROBBERS was the
earliest specimen; the first fruits of his
youth, (I had almost said
of his boyhood), and as such, the pledge,
and promise of no ordinary
genius. Only as such, did the maturer
judgment of the author
tolerate the Play. During his whole life he
expressed himself
concerning this production with more than needful
asperity, as a monster not
less offensive to good taste, than to sound
morals; and, in his latter
years, his indignation at the unwonted
popularity of the ROBBERS
seduced him into the contrary extremes, viz.
a studied feebleness of
interest, (as far as the interest was to be
derived from incidents and
the excitement of curiosity); a diction
elaborately metrical; the
affectation of rhymes; and the pedantry of
the chorus.
But to understand the true
character of the ROBBERS, and of the
countless imitations which
were its spawn, I must inform you, or at
least call to your
recollection, that, about that time, and for some
years before it, three of
the most popular books in the German
language were, the
translations Of YOUNG'S NIGHT THOUGHTS, HERVEY'S
MEDITATIONS, and
RICHARDSON'S CLARISSA HARLOW. Now we have only to
combine the bloated style
and peculiar rhythm of Hervey, which is
poetic only on account of
its utter unfitness for prose, and might as
appropriately be called
prosaic, from its utter unfitness for poetry;
we have only, I repeat, to
combine these Herveyisms with the strained
thoughts, the figurative
metaphysics and solemn epigrams of Young on
the one hand; and with the
loaded sensibility, the minute detail, the
morbid consciousness of
every thought and feeling in the whole flux
and reflux of the mind, in
short the self-involution and dreamlike
continuity of Richardson
on the other hand; and then to add the
horrific incidents, and
mysterious villains, (geniuses of supernatural
intellect, if you will
take the authors' words for it, but on a level
with the meanest ruffians
of the condemned cells, if we are to judge
by their actions and
contrivances)--to add the ruined castles, the
dungeons, the trap-doors,
the skeletons, the flesh-and-blood ghosts,
and the perpetual
moonshine of a modern author, (themselves the
literary brood of the
CASTLE OF OTRANTO, the translations of which,
with the imitations and
improvements aforesaid, were about that time
beginning to make as much
noise in Germany as their originals were
making in England),--and
as the compound of these ingredients duly
mixed, you will recognize
the so-called German drama. The olla podrida
thus cooked up, was
denounced, by the best critics in Germany, as the
mere cramps of weakness,
and orgasms of a sickly imagination on the
part of the author, and
the lowest provocation of torpid feeling on
that of the readers. The
old blunder, however, concerning the
irregularity and wildness
of Shakespeare, in which the German did but
echo the French, who again
were but the echoes of our own critics, was
still in vogue, and
Shakespeare was quoted as authority for the most
anti-Shakespearean drama.
We have indeed two poets who wrote as one,
near the age of Shakespeare,
to whom, (as the worst characteristic of
their writings), the
Coryphaeus of the present drama may challenge the
honour of being a poor
relation, or impoverished descendant. For if we
would charitably consent
to forget the comic humour, the wit, the
felicities of style, in
other words, all the poetry, and nine-tenths
of all the genius of
Beaumont and Fletcher, that which would remain
becomes a Kotzebue.
The so-called German
drama, therefore, is English in its origin,
English in its materials,
and English by re-adoption; and till we can
prove that Kotzebue, or
any of the whole breed of Kotzebues, whether
dramatists or romantic
writers, or writers of romantic dramas, were
ever admitted to any other
shelf in the libraries of well-educated
Germans than were occupied
by their originals, and apes' apes in their
mother country, we should
submit to carry our own brat on our own
shoulders; or rather
consider it as a lack-grace returned from
transportation with such
improvements only in growth and manners as
young transported convicts
usually come home with.
I know nothing that
contributes more to a clearer insight into the
true nature of any
literary phaenomenon, than the comparison of it
with some elder
production, the likeness of which is striking, yet
only apparent, while the
difference is real. In the present case this
opportunity is furnished
us, by the old Spanish play, entitled
Atheista Fulminato,
formerly, and perhaps still, acted in the churches
and monasteries of Spain,
and which, under various names (Don Juan,
the Libertine, etc.) has
had its day of favour in every country
throughout Europe. A
popularity so extensive, and of a work so
grotesque and extravagant,
claims and merits philosophical attention
and investigation. The
first point to be noticed is, that the play is
throughout imaginative.
Nothing of it belongs to the real world, but
the names of the places
and persons. The comic parts, equally with the
tragic; the living,
equally with the defunct characters, are creatures
of the brain; as little
amenable to the rules of ordinary probability,
as the Satan Of PARADISE
LOST, or the Caliban of THE TEMPEST, and
therefore to be understood
and judged of as impersonated abstractions.
Rank, fortune, wit,
talent, acquired knowledge, and liberal
accomplishments, with
beauty of person, vigorous health, and
constitutional
hardihood,--all these advantages, elevated by the
habits and sympathies of
noble birth and national character, are
supposed to have combined
in Don Juan, so as to give him the means of
carrying into all its
practical consequences the doctrine of a godless
nature, as the sole ground
and efficient cause not only of all things,
events, and appearances,
but likewise of all our thoughts, sensations,
impulses and actions.
Obedience to nature is the only virtue: the
gratification of the
passions and appetites her only dictate: each
individual's self-will the
sole organ through which nature utters her
commands, and
"Self-contradiction is the only wrong!
For, by the laws of spirit, in the right
Is every individual character
That acts in strict consistence with
itself."
That speculative opinions,
however impious and daring they may be, are
not always followed by
correspondent conduct, is most true, as well as
that they can scarcely in
any instance be systematically realized, on
account of their
unsuitableness to human nature and to the
institutions of society.
It can be hell, only where it is all hell:
and a separate world of
devils is necessary for the existence of any
one complete devil. But on
the other hand it is no less clear, nor,
with the biography of
Carrier and his fellow atheists before us, can
it be denied without
wilful blindness, that the (so called) system of
nature (that is,
materialism, with the utter rejection of moral
responsibility, of a
present Providence, and of both present and
future retribution) may
influence the characters and actions of
individuals, and even of
communities, to a degree that almost does
away the distinction
between men and devils, and will make the page of
the future historian
resemble the narration of a madman's dreams. It
is not the wickedness of
Don Juan, therefore, which constitutes the
character an abstraction,
and removes it from the rules of
probability; but the rapid
succession of the correspondent acts and
incidents, his
intellectual superiority, and the splendid accumulation
of his gifts and desirable
qualities, as co-existent with entire
wickedness in one and the
same person. But this likewise is the very
circumstance which gives
to this strange play its charm and universal
interest. Don Juan is,
from beginning to end, an intelligible
character: as much so as
the Satan of Milton. The poet asks only of
the reader, what, as a
poet, he is privileged to ask: namely, that
sort of negative faith in
the existence of such a being, which we
willingly give to
productions professedly ideal, and a disposition to
the same state of feeling,
as that with which we contemplate the
idealized figures of the
Apollo Belvidere, and the Farnese Hercules.
What the Hercules is to
the eye in corporeal strength, Don Juan is to
the mind in strength of
character. The ideal consists in the happy
balance of the generic
with the individual. The former makes the
character representative
and symbolical, therefore instructive;
because, mutatis mutandis,
it is applicable to whole classes of men.
The latter gives it living
interest; for nothing lives or is real, but
as definite and individual.
To understand this completely, the reader
need only recollect the
specific state of his feelings, when in
looking at a picture of
the historic (more properly of the poetic or
heroic) class, he objects
to a particular figure as being too much of
a portrait; and this
interruption of his complacency he feels without
the least reference to, or
the least acquaintance with, any person in
real life whom he might
recognise in this figure. It is enough that
such a figure is not
ideal: and therefore not ideal, because one of
the two factors or
elements of the ideal is in excess. A similar and
more powerful objection he
would feel towards a set of figures which
were mere abstractions,
like those of Cipriani, and what have been
called Greek forms and
faces, that is, outlines drawn according to a
recipe. These again are
not ideal; because in these the other element
is in excess. "Forma
formans per formam formatam translucens," [80] is
the definition and
perfection of ideal art.
This excellence is so happily
achieved in the Don Juan, that it is
capable of interesting
without poetry, nay, even without words, as in
our pantomime of that
name. We see clearly how the character is
formed; and the very
extravagance of the incidents, and the super-
human entireness of Don
Juan's agency, prevents the wickedness from
shocking our minds to any
painful degree. We do not believe it enough
for this effect; no, not
even with that kind of temporary and negative
belief or acquiescence
which I have described above. Meantime the
qualities of his character
are too desirable, too flattering to our
pride and our wishes, not
to make up on this side as much additional
faith as was lost on the
other. There is no danger (thinks the
spectator or reader) of my
becoming such a monster of iniquity as Don
Juan! I never shall be an
atheist! I shall never disallow all
distinction between right
and wrong! I have not the least inclination
to be so outrageous a
drawcansir in my love affairs! But to possess
such a power of captivating
and enchanting the affections of the other
sex!--to be capable of
inspiring in a charming and even a virtuous
woman, a love so deep, and
so entirely personal to me!--that even my
worst vices, (if I were
vicious), even my cruelty and perfidy, (if I
were cruel and
perfidious), could not eradicate the passion!--to be so
loved for my own self,
that even with a distinct knowledge of my
character, she yet died to
save me!--this, sir, takes hold of two
sides of our nature, the
better and the worse. For the heroic
disinterestedness, to
which love can transport a woman, can not be
contemplated without an
honourable emotion of reverence towards
womanhood: and, on the
other hand, it is among the miseries, and
abides in the dark
ground-work of our nature, to crave an outward
confirmation of that
something within us, which is our very self, that
something, not made up of
our qualities and relations, but itself the
supporter and substantial
basis of all these. Love me, and not my
qualities, may be a vicious
and an insane wish, but it is not a wish
wholly without a meaning.
Without power, virtue
would be insufficient and incapable of revealing
its being. It would
resemble the magic transformation of Tasso's
heroine into a tree, in
which she could only groan and bleed. Hence
power is necessarily an
object of our desire and of our admiration.
But of all power, that of
the mind is, on every account, the grand
desideratum of human
ambition. We shall be as Gods in knowledge, was
and must have been the
first temptation: and the coexistence of great
intellectual lordship with
guilt has never been adequately represented
without exciting the
strongest interest, and for this reason, that in
this bad and heterogeneous
co-ordination we can contemplate the
intellect of man more
exclusively as a separate self-subsistence, than
in its proper state of
subordination to his own conscience, or to the
will of an infinitely
superior being.
This is the sacred charm
of Shakespeare's male characters in general.
They are all cast in the
mould of Shakespeare's own gigantic
intellect; and this is the
open attraction of his Richard, Iago,
Edmund, and others in
particular. But again; of all intellectual
power, that of superiority
to the fear of the invisible world is the
most dazzling. Its
influence is abundantly proved by the one
circumstance, that it can
bribe us into a voluntary submission of our
better knowledge, into
suspension of all our judgment derived from
constant experience, and
enable us to peruse with the liveliest
interest the wildest tales
of ghosts, wizards, genii, and secret
talismans. On this
propensity, so deeply rooted in our nature, a
specific dramatic
probability may be raised by a true poet, if the
whole of his work be in
harmony: a dramatic probability, sufficient
for dramatic pleasure,
even when the component characters and
incidents border on
impossibility. The poet does not require us to be
awake and believe; he
solicits us only to yield ourselves to a dream;
and this too with our eyes
open, and with our judgment perdue behind
the curtain, ready to
awaken us at the first motion of our will: and
meantime, only, not to
disbelieve. And in such a state of mind, who
but must be impressed with
the cool intrepidity of Don john on the
appearance of his father's
ghost:
"GHOST.--Monster! behold these wounds!
"D. JOHN.--I do! They were well meant and well
performed, I see.
"GHOST.------Repent, repent of all thy villanies.
My clamorous blood to heaven for vengeance cries,
Heaven will pour out his judgments on you all.
Hell gapes for you, for you each fiend doth call,
And hourly waits your unrepenting fall.
You with eternal horrors they'll torment,
Except of all your crimes you suddenly repent. (Ghost
sinks.)
"D. JOHN.--Farewell, thou art a foolish ghost. Repent,
quoth he!
what could this mean? Our senses are all in a mist sure.
"D. ANTONIO.--(one of D. Juan's reprobate companions.)
They are not!
'Twas a ghost.
"D. LOPEZ.--(another reprobate.) I ne'er believed those
foolish tales
before.
"D. JOHN.--Come! 'Tis no matter. Let it be what it will,
it must be
natural.
"D. ANT.--And nature is unalterable in us too.
"D. JOHN.--'Tis true! The nature of a ghost can not
change our's."
Who also can deny a
portion of sublimity to the tremendous consistency
with which he stands out
the last fearful trial, like a second
Prometheus?
"Chorus of Devils.
"STATUE-GHOST.--Will you not relent and feel remorse?
"D. JOHN.--Could'st thou bestow another heart on me I
might. But
with this heart I have, I can not.
"D. LOPEZ.--These things are prodigious.
"D. ANTON.--I have a sort of grudging to relent, but
something holds
me back.
"D. LOP.--If we could, 'tis now too late. I will not.
"D. ANT.--We defy thee!
"GHOST.--Perish ye impious wretches, go and find the
punishments laid
up in store for you!
(Thunder and lightning. D. Lop. and D. Ant. are swallowed
up.)
"GHOST To D. JOHN.--Behold their dreadful fates, and
know that thy
last moment's come!
"D. JOHN.--Think not to fright me, foolish ghost; I'll
break your
marble body in pieces and pull down your horse.
(Thunder and
lightning--chorus of devils, etc.)
"D. JOHN.--These things I see with wonder, but no fear.
Were all the elements to be confounded,
And shuffled all into their former chaos;
Were seas of sulphur flaming round about me,
And all mankind roaring within those fires,
I could not fear, or feel the least remorse.
To the last instant I would dare thy power.
Here I stand firm, and all thy threats contemn.
Thy murderer (to the ghost of one whom he had murdered)
Stands here! Now do thy worst!"
(He is
swallowed up in a cloud of fire.)
In fine the character of
Don John consists in the union of every thing
desirable to human nature,
as means, and which therefore by the well
known law of association
becomes at length desirable on their own
account. On their own
account, and, in their own dignity, they are
here displayed, as being
employed to ends so unhuman, that in the
effect, they appear almost
as means without an end. The ingredients
too are mixed in the
happiest proportion, so as to uphold and relieve
each other--more
especially in that constant interpoise of wit,
gaiety, and social
generosity, which prevents the criminal, even in
his most atrocious
moments, from sinking into the mere ruffian, as far
at least, as our
imagination sits in judgment. Above all, the fine
suffusion through the
whole, with the characteristic manners and
feelings, of a highly bred
gentleman gives life to the drama. Thus
having invited the
statue-ghost of the governor, whom he had murdered,
to supper, which
invitation the marble ghost accepted by a nod of the
head, Don John has
prepared a banquet.
"D. JOHN.--Some wine, sirrah! Here's to Don Pedro's
ghost--he should
have been welcome.
"D. LOP.--The rascal is afraid of you after death.
(One knocks hard at the door.)
"D. JOHN.--(to the servant)--Rise and do your duty.
"SERV.--Oh the devil, the devil! (Marble ghost enters.)
"D. JOHN.--Ha! 'tis the ghost! Let's rise and receive
him! Come,
Governour, you are welcome, sit there; if we had thought you
would
have come, we would have staid for you.
* * * * * *
Here, Governour, your health! Friends, put it about! Here's
excellent meat, taste of this ragout. Come, I'll help you,
come
eat, and let old quarrels be forgotten. (The ghost threatens him
with vengeance.)
"D. JOHN.--We are too much confirmed--curse on this dry
discourse.
Come, here's to your mistress, you had one when you were
living:
not forgetting your sweet sister.
(devils enter.)
"D. JOHN.--Are these some of your retinue? Devils, say
you? I'm
sorry I have no burnt brandy to treat 'em with, that's drink
fit
for devils," etc.
Nor is the scene from
which we quote interesting, in dramatic
probability alone; it is
susceptible likewise of a sound moral; of a
moral that has more than
common claims on the notice of a too numerous
class, who are ready to
receive the qualities of gentlemanly courage,
and scrupulous honour, (in
all the recognised laws of honour,) as the
substitutes of virtue,
instead of its ornaments. This, indeed, is the
moral value of the play at
large, and that which places it at a
world's distance from the
spirit of modern jacobinism. The latter
introduces to us clumsy
copies of these showy instrumental qualities,
in order to reconcile us
to vice and want of principle; while the
Atheista Fulminato
presents an exquisite portraiture of the same
qualities, in all their
gloss and glow, but presents them for the sole
purpose of displaying
their hollowness, and in order to put us on our
guard by demonstrating
their utter indifference to vice and virtue,
whenever these and the
like accomplishments are contemplated for
themselves alone.
Eighteen years ago I
observed, that the whole secret of the modern
jacobinical drama, (which,
and not the German, is its appropriate
designation,) and of all
its popularity, consists in the confusion and
subversion of the natural
order of things in their causes and effects:
namely, in the excitement
of surprise by representing the qualities of
liberality, refined
feeling, and a nice sense of honour (those things
rather which pass amongst
us for such) in persons and in classes where
experience teaches us
least to expect them; and by rewarding with all
the sympathies which are
the due of virtue, those criminals whom law,
reason, and religion have
excommunicated from our esteem.
This of itself would lead
me back to BERTRAM, or the CASTLE OF ST.
ALDOBRAND; but, in my own
mind, this tragedy was brought into
connection with THE
LIBERTINE, (Shadwell's adaptation of the Atheista
Fulminato to the English
stage in the reign of Charles the Second,) by
the fact, that our modern
drama is taken, in the substance of it, from
the first scene of the
third act of THE LIBERTINE. But with what
palpable superiority of
judgment in the original! Earth and hell, men
and spirits are up in arms
against Don John; the two former acts of
the play have not only
prepared us for the supernatural, but
accustomed us to the
prodigious. It is, therefore, neither more nor
less than we anticipate
when the Captain exclaims: "In all the dangers
I have been, such horrors
I never knew. I am quite unmanned:" and when
the Hermit says, that he
had "beheld the ocean in wildest rage, yet
ne'er before saw a storm
so dreadful, such horrid flashes of
lightning, and such claps
of thunder, were never in my remembrance."
And Don John's burst of
startling impiety is equally intelligible in
its motive, as dramatic in
its effect.
But what is there to
account for the prodigy of the tempest at
Bertram's shipwreck? It is
a mere supernatural effect, without even a
hint of any supernatural
agency; a prodigy, without any circumstance
mentioned that is
prodigious; and a miracle introduced without a
ground, and ending without
a result. Every event and every scene of
the play might have taken
place as well if Bertram and his vessel had
been driven in by a common
hard gale, or from want of provisions. The
first act would have
indeed lost its greatest and most sonorous
picture; a scene for the
sake of a scene, without a word spoken; as
such, therefore, (a rarity
without a precedent), we must take it, and
be thankful! In the
opinion of not a few, it was, in every sense of
the word, the best scene
in the play. I am quite certain it was the
most innocent: and the
steady, quiet uprightness of the flame of the
wax-candles, which the
monks held over the roaring billows amid the
storm of wind and rain,
was really miraculous.
The Sicilian sea coast: a
convent of monks: night: a most portentous,
unearthly storm: a vessel
is wrecked contrary to all human
expectation, one man saves
himself by his prodigious powers as a
swimmer, aided by the
peculiarity of his destination--
"PRIOR.------All, all did perish
FIRST MONK.--Change, change those drenched weeds--
PRIOR.--I wist not of them--every soul did perish--
Enter third Monk hastily.
"THIRD MONK.--No, there was one did battle with the
storm
With careless desperate force; full many times
His life was won and lost, as tho' he recked not--
No hand did aid him, and he aided none--
Alone he breasted the broad wave, alone
That man was saved."
Well! This man is led in
by the monks, supposed dripping wet, and to
very natural inquiries he
either remains silent, or gives most brief
and surly answers, and
after three or four of these half-line
courtesies, "dashing
off the monks" who had saved him, he exclaims in
the true sublimity of our
modern misanthropic heroism--
"Off! ye are men--there's poison in your touch.
But I must yield, for this" (what?) "hath left me
strengthless."
So end the three first
scenes. In the next (the Castle of St.
Aldobrand,) we find the
servants there equally frightened with this
unearthly storm, though
wherein it differed from other violent storms
we are not told, except
that Hugo informs us, page 9--
"PIET.--Hugo, well met. Does e'en thy age bear
Memory of so terrible a storm?
HUGO.--They have been frequent lately.
PIET.--They are ever so in Sicily.
HUGO.--So it is said. But storms when I was young
Would still pass o'er like Nature's fitful fevers,
And rendered all more wholesome. Now their rage,
Sent thus unseasonable and profitless,
Speaks like the threats of heaven."
A most perplexing theory
of Sicilian storms is this of old Hugo! and
what is very remarkable,
not apparently founded on any great
familiarity of his own
with this troublesome article. For when Pietro
asserts the "ever
more frequency" of tempests in Sicily, the old man
professes to know nothing
more of the fact, but by hearsay. "So it is
said."--But why he
assumed this storm to be unseasonable, and on what
he grounded his prophecy,
(for the storm is still in full fury), that
it would be profitless,
and without the physical powers common to all
other violent sea-winds in
purifying the atmosphere, we are left in
the dark; as well
concerning the particular points in which he knew
it, during its
continuance, to differ from those that he had been
acquainted with in his
youth. We are at length introduced to the Lady
Imogine, who, we learn,
had not rested "through" the night; not on
account of the tempest,
for
"Long ere the storm arose, her restless
gestures
Forbade all hope to see her blest with
sleep."
Sitting at a table, and
looking at a portrait, she informs us--First,
that portrait-painters may
make a portrait from memory,
"The limner's art may trace the absent
feature."
For surely these words
could never mean, that a painter may have a
person sit to him who
afterwards may leave the room or perhaps the
country? Secondly, that a
portrait-painter can enable a mourning lady
to possess a good likeness
of her absent lover, but that the portrait-
painter cannot, and who
shall--
"Restore the scenes in which they met and
parted?"
The natural answer would
have been--Why the scene-painter to be sure!
But this unreasonable lady
requires in addition sundry things to be
painted that have neither
lines nor colours--
"The thoughts, the recollections, sweet and
bitter,
Or the Elysian dreams of lovers when they
loved."
Which last sentence must
be supposed to mean; when they were present,
and making love to each
other.--Then, if this portrait could speak, it
would "acquit the
faith of womankind." How? Had she remained constant?
No, she has been married
to another man, whose wife she now is. How
then? Why, that, in spite
of her marriage vow, she had continued to
yearn and crave for her
former lover--
"This has her body, that her mind:
Which has the better bargain?"
The lover, however, was
not contented with this precious arrangement,
as we shall soon find. The
lady proceeds to inform us that during the
many years of their
separation, there have happened in the different
parts of the world, a
number of "such things;" even such, as in a
course of years always
have, and till the Millennium, doubtless always
will happen somewhere or
other. Yet this passage, both in language and
in metre, is perhaps
amongst the best parts of the play. The lady's
love companion and most
esteemed attendant, Clotilda, now enters and
explains this love and
esteem by proving herself a most passive and
dispassionate listener, as
well as a brief and lucky querist, who asks
by chance, questions that
we should have thought made for the very
sake of the answers. In
short, she very much reminds us of those
puppet-heroines, for whom
the showman contrives to dialogue without
any skill in
ventriloquism. This, notwithstanding, is the best scene
in the Play, and though
crowded with solecisms, corrupt diction, and
offences against metre,
would possess merits sufficient to out-weigh
them, if we could suspend
the moral sense during the perusal. It tells
well and passionately the
preliminary circumstances, and thus
overcomes the main
difficulty of most first acts, to wit, that of
retrospective narration.
It tells us of her having been honourably
addressed by a noble
youth, of rank and fortune vastly superior to her
own: of their mutual love,
heightened on her part by gratitude; of his
loss of his sovereign's
favour; his disgrace; attainder; and flight;
that he (thus degraded)
sank into a vile ruffian, the chieftain of a
murderous banditti; and
that from the habitual indulgence of the most
reprobate habits and
ferocious passions, he had become so changed,
even in appearance, and
features,
"That she who bore him had recoiled from
him,
Nor known the alien visage of her child,
Yet still she (Imogine) lov'd him."
She is compelled by the
silent entreaties of a father, perishing with
"bitter shameful want
on the cold earth," to give her hand, with a
heart thus irrecoverably
pre-engaged, to Lord Aldobrand, the enemy of
her lover, even to the
very man who had baffled his ambitious schemes,
and was, at the present
time, entrusted with the execution of the
sentence of death which
had been passed on Bertram. Now, the proof of
"woman's love,"
so industriously held forth for the sympathy, if not
for the esteem of the
audience, consists in this, that, though Bertram
had become a robber and a
murderer by trade, a ruffian in manners,
yea, with form and
features at which his own mother could not but
"recoil," yet
she (Lady Imogine) "the wife of a most noble, honoured
Lord," estimable as a
man, exemplary and affectionate as a husband,
and the fond father of her
only child--that she, notwithstanding all
this, striking her heart,
dares to say to it--
"But thou art Bertram's still, and
Bertram's ever."
A Monk now enters, and
entreats in his Prior's name for the wonted
hospitality, and
"free noble usage" of the Castle of St. Aldobrand for
some wretched shipwrecked
souls, and from this we learn, for the first
time, to our infinite
surprise, that notwithstanding the
supernaturalness of the
storm aforesaid, not only Bertram, but the
whole of his gang, had
been saved, by what means we are left to
conjecture, and can only
conclude that they had all the same desperate
swimming powers, and the
same saving destiny as the hero, Bertram
himself. So ends the first
act, and with it the tale of the events,
both those with which the
tragedy begins, and those which had occurred
previous to the date of
its commencement. The second displays Bertram
in disturbed sleep, which
the Prior, who hangs over him, prefers
calling a "starting
trance," and with a strained voice, that would
have awakened one of the
seven sleepers, observes to the audience--
"How the lip works! How the bare teeth do
grind!
And beaded drops course [81] down his
writhen brow!"
The dramatic effect of
which passage we not only concede to the
admirers of this tragedy,
but acknowledge the further advantages of
preparing the audience for
the most surprising series of wry faces,
proflated mouths, and
lunatic gestures that were ever "launched" on an
audience to "sear the
sense." [82]
"PRIOR.--I will awake him from this horrid trance. This
is no
natural sleep! Ho, wake thee, stranger!"
This is rather a whimsical
application of the verb reflex we must
confess, though we
remember a similar transfer of the agent to the
patient in a manuscript
tragedy, in which the Bertram of the piece,
prostrating a man with a
single blow of his fist, exclaims--"Knock me
thee down, then ask thee
if thou liv'st." Well; the stranger obeys,
and whatever his sleep
might have been, his waking was perfectly
natural; for lethargy
itself could not withstand the scolding
Stentorship of Mr.
Holland, the Prior. We next learn from the best
authority, his own
confession, that the misanthropic hero, whose
destiny was incompatible
with drowning, is Count Bertram, who not only
reveals his past fortunes,
but avows with open atrocity, his Satanic
hatred of Imogine's lord,
and his frantick thirst of revenge; and so
the raving character
raves, and the scolding character scolds--and
what else? Does not the
Prior act? Does he not send for a posse of
constables or thief-takers
to handcuff the villain, or take him either
to Bedlam or Newgate?
Nothing of the kind; the author preserves the
unity of character, and
the scolding Prior from first to last does
nothing but scold, with
the exception indeed of the last scene of the
last act, in which, with a
most surprising revolution, he whines,
weeps, and kneels to the
condemned blaspheming assassin out of pure
affection to the
high-hearted man, the sublimity of whose angel-sin
rivals the star-bright
apostate, (that is, who was as proud as
Lucifer, and as wicked as
the Devil), and, "had thrilled him," (Prior
Holland aforesaid), with
wild admiration.
Accordingly in the very
next scene, we have this tragic Macheath, with
his whole gang, in the
Castle of St. Aldobrand, without any attempt on
the Prior's part either to
prevent him, or to put the mistress and
servants of the Castle on
their guard against their new inmates;
though he (the Prior)
knew, and confesses that he knew, that Bertram's
"fearful mates"
were assassins so habituated and naturalized to guilt,
that--
"When their drenched hold forsook both gold
and gear,
They griped their daggers with a
murderer's instinct;"
and though he also knew,
that Bertram was the leader of a band whose
trade was blood. To the
Castle however he goes, thus with the holy
Prior's consent, if not
with his assistance; and thither let us follow
him.
No sooner is our hero
safely housed in the Castle of St. Aldobrand,
than he attracts the
notice of the lady and her confidante, by his
"wild and terrible
dark eyes," "muffled form," "fearful form," [83]
"darkly wild,"
"proudly stern," and the like common-place indefinites,
seasoned by merely verbal
antitheses, and at best, copied with very
slight change, from the
Conrade of Southey's JOAN OF ARC. The lady
Imogine, who has been, (as
is the case, she tells us, with all soft
and solemn spirits,)
worshipping the moon on a terrace or rampart
within view of the Castle,
insists on having an interview with our
hero, and this too
tete-a-tete. Would the reader learn why and
wherefore the confidante
is excluded, who very properly remonstrates
against such
"conference, alone, at night, with one who bears such
fearful form;" the
reason follows--"why, therefore send him!" I say,
follows, because the next line,
"all things of fear have lost their
power over me," is
separated from the former by a break or pause, and
besides that it is a very
poor answer to the danger, is no answer at
all to the gross
indelicacy of this wilful exposure. We must therefore
regard it as a mere
after-thought, that a little softens the rudeness,
but adds nothing to the
weight, of that exquisite woman's reason
aforesaid. And so exit
Clotilda and enter Bertram, who "stands without
looking at her," that
is, with his lower limbs forked, his arms
akimbo, his side to the
lady's front, the whole figure resembling an
inverted Y. He is soon
however roused from the state surly to the
state frantick, and then
follow raving, yelling, cursing, she
fainting, he relenting, in
runs Imogine's child, squeaks "mother!" He
snatches it up, and with a
"God bless thee, child! Bertram has kissed
thy child,"--the
curtain drops. The third act is short, and short be
our account of it. It
introduces Lord St. Aldobrand on his road
homeward, and next Imogine
in the convent, confessing the foulness of
her heart to the Prior,
who first indulges his old humour with a fit
of senseless scolding,
then leaves her alone with her ruffian
paramour, with whom she
makes at once an infamous appointment, and the
curtain drops, that it may
be carried into act and consummation.
I want words to describe
the mingled horror and disgust with which I
witnessed the opening of
the fourth act, considering it as a
melancholy proof of the
depravation of the public mind. The shocking
spirit of jacobinism
seemed no longer confined to politics. The
familiarity with atrocious
events and characters appeared to have
poisoned the taste, even
where it had not directly disorganized the
moral principles, and left
the feelings callous to all the mild
appeals, and craving alone
for the grossest and most outrageous
stimulants. The very fact
then present to our senses, that a British
audience could remain
passive under such an insult to common decency,
nay, receive with a thunder
of applause, a human being supposed to
have come reeking from the
consummation of this complex foulness and
baseness, these and the
like reflections so pressed as with the weight
of lead upon my heart,
that actor, author, and tragedy would have been
forgotten, had it not been
for a plain elderly man sitting beside me,
who, with a very serious
face, that at once expressed surprise and
aversion, touched my
elbow, and, pointing to the actor, said to me in
a half-whisper--"Do
you see that little fellow there? he has just been
committing adultery!"
Somewhat relieved by the laugh which this droll
address occasioned, I
forced back my attention to the stage
sufficiently to learn,
that Bertram is recovered from a transient fit
of remorse by the
information, that St. Aldobrand was commissioned (to
do, what every honest man
must have done without commission, if he did
his duty) to seize him and
deliver him to the just vengeance of the
law; an information which,
(as he had long known himself to be an
attainted traitor and
proclaimed outlaw, and not only a trader in
blood himself, but
notoriously the Captain of a gang of thieves,
pirates, and assassins),
assuredly could not have been new to him. It
is this, however, which
alone and instantly restores him to his
accustomed state of
raving, blasphemy, and nonsense. Next follows
Imogine's constrained
interview with her injured husband, and his
sudden departure again,
all in love and kindness, in order to attend
the feast of St. Anselm at
the convent. This was, it must be owned, a
very strange engagement
for so tender a husband to make within a few
minutes after so long an
absence. But first his lady has told him that
she has "a vow on
her," and wishes "that black perdition may gulf her
perjured
soul,"--(Note: she is lying at the very time)--if she ascends
his bed, till her penance
is accomplished. How, therefore, is the poor
husband to amuse himself
in this interval of her penance? But do not
be distressed, reader, on
account of the St. Aldobrand's absence! As
the author has contrived
to send him out of the house, when a husband
would be in his, and the
lover's way, so he will doubtless not be at a
loss to bring him back
again as soon as he is wanted. Well! the
husband gone in on the one
side, out pops the lover from the other,
and for the fiendish
purpose of harrowing up the soul of his wretched
accomplice in guilt, by
announcing to her, with most brutal and
blasphemous execrations,
his fixed and deliberate resolve to
assassinate her husband;
all this too is for no discoverable purpose
on the part of the author,
but that of introducing a series of super-
tragic starts, pauses,
screams, struggling, dagger-throwing, falling
on the ground, starting up
again wildly, swearing, outcries for help,
falling again on the
ground, rising again, faintly tottering towards
the door, and, to end the
scene, a most convenient fainting fit of our
lady's, just in time to
give Bertram an opportunity of seeking the
object of his hatred,
before she alarms the house, which indeed she
has had full time to have
done before, but that the author rather
chose she should amuse
herself and the audience by the above-described
ravings and startings. She
recovers slowly, and to her enter,
Clotilda, the confidante
and mother confessor; then commences, what in
theatrical language is
called the madness, but which the author more
accurately entitles,
delirium, it appearing indeed a sort of
intermittent fever with
fits of lightheadedness off and on, whenever
occasion and stage effect
happen to call for it. A convenient return
of the storm, (we told the
reader before-hand how it would be), had
changed--
"The rivulet, that bathed the convent
walls,
Into a foaming flood: upon its brink
The Lord and his small train do stand
appalled.
With torch and bell from their high
battlements
The monks do summon to the pass in vain;
He must return to-night."
Talk of the Devil, and his
horns appear, says the proverb and sure
enough, within ten lines
of the exit of the messenger, sent to stop
him, the arrival of Lord
St. Aldobrand is announced. Bertram's ruffian
band now enter, and range
themselves across the stage, giving fresh
cause for Imogine's
screams and madness. St. Aldobrand, having
received his mortal wound
behind the scenes, totters in to welter in
his blood, and to die at
the feet of this double-damned adultress.
Of her, as far as she is
concerned in this fourth act, we have two
additional points to
notice: first, the low cunning and Jesuitical
trick with which she
deludes her husband into words of forgiveness,
which he himself does not
understand; and secondly, that everywhere
she is made the object of
interest and sympathy, and it is not the
author's fault, if, at any
moment, she excites feelings less gentle,
than those we are
accustomed to associate with the self-accusations of
a sincere religious
penitent. And did a British audience endure all
this?--They received it
with plaudits, which, but for the rivalry of
the carts and hackney
coaches, might have disturbed the evening-
prayers of the scanty week
day congregation at St. Paul's cathedral.
Tempora mutantur, nos et mutamur in illis.
Of the fifth act, the only
thing noticeable, (for rant and nonsense,
though abundant as ever,
have long before the last act become things
of course,) is the profane
representation of the high altar in a
chapel, with all the
vessels and other preparations for the holy
sacrament. A hymn is
actually sung on the stage by the chorister boys!
For the rest, Imogine, who
now and then talks deliriously, but who is
always light-headed as far
as her gown and hair can make her so,
wanders about in dark
woods with cavern-rocks and precipices in the
back-scene; and a number
of mute dramatis personae move in and out
continually, for whose
presence, there is always at least this reason,
that they afford something
to be seen, by that very large part of a
Drury Lane audience who
have small chance of hearing a word. She had,
it appears, taken her
child with her, but what becomes of the child,
whether she murdered it or
not, nobody can tell, nobody can learn; it
was a riddle at the
representation, and after a most attentive perusal
of the Play, a riddle it
remains.
"No more I know, I wish I did,
And I would tell it all to you;
For what became of this poor child
There's none that ever knew."
Our whole information [84]
is derived from the following words--
"PRIOR.--Where is thy child?
CLOTIL.--(Pointing to the cavern into which she has looked)
Oh he lies cold within his cavern-tomb!
Why dost thou urge her with the horrid theme?
PRIOR.--(who will not, the reader may observe, be
disappointed of
his dose of scolding)
It was to make (query wake) one living cord o' th' heart,
And I will try, tho' my own breaks at it.
Where is thy child?
IMOG.--(with a frantic laugh) The forest fiend hath snatched
him--
He (who? the fiend or the child?) rides the night-mare thro'
the
wizard woods."
Now these two lines
consist in a senseless plagiarism from the
counterfeited madness of
Edgar in Lear, who, in imitation of the gypsy
incantations, puns on the
old word mair, a hag; and the no less
senseless adoption of
Dryden's forest fiend, and the wisard stream by
which Milton, in his
Lycidas, so finely characterizes the spreading
Deva, fabulosus amnis.
Observe too these images stand unique in the
speeches of Imogine,
without the slightest resemblance to anything she
says before or after. But
we are weary. The characters in this act
frisk about, here, there,
and every where, as teasingly as the Jack o'
Lantern-lights which
mischievous boys, from across a narrow street,
throw with a looking-glass
on the faces of their opposite neighbours.
Bertram disarmed,
outheroding Charles de Moor in the Robbers, befaces
the collected knights of
St. Anselm, (all in complete armour) and so,
by pure dint of black
looks, he outdares them into passive poltroons.
The sudden revolution in
the Prior's manners we have before noticed,
and it is indeed so outre,
that a number of the audience imagined a
great secret was to come
out, viz.: that the Prior was one of the many
instances of a youthful
sinner metamorphosed into an old scold, and
that this Bertram would
appear at last to be his son. Imogine re-
appears at the convent,
and dies of her own accord. Bertram stabs
himself, and dies by her
side, and that the play may conclude as it
began, to wit, in a
superfetation of blasphemy upon nonsense, because
he had snatched a sword
from a despicable coward, who retreats in
terror when it is pointed
towards him in sport; this felo de se, and
thief-captain--this
loathsome and leprous confluence of robbery,
adultery, murder, and
cowardly assassination,--this monster, whose
best deed is, the having
saved his betters from the degradation of
hanging him, by turning
Jack Ketch to himself; first recommends the
charitable Monks and holy
Prior to pray for his soul, and then has the
folly and impudence to
exclaim--
"I die no felon's death,
A warriour's weapon freed a warriour's
soul!"
CHAPTER XXIV
CONCLUSION
It sometimes happens that
we are punished for our faults by incidents,
in the causation of which
these faults had no share: and this I have
always felt the severest
punishment. The wound indeed is of the same
dimensions; but the edges
are jagged, and there is a dull underpain
that survives the smart
which it had aggravated. For there is always a
consolatory feeling that
accompanies the sense of a proportion between
antecedents and
consequents. The sense of Before and After becomes
both intelligible and
intellectual when, and only when, we contemplate
the succession in the
relations of Cause and Effect, which, like the
two poles of the magnet
manifest the being and unity of the one power
by relative opposites, and
give, as it were, a substratum of
permanence, of identity,
and therefore of reality, to the shadowy flux
of Time. It is Eternity
revealing itself in the phaenomena of Time:
and the perception and
acknowledgment of the proportionality and
appropriateness of the
Present to the Past, prove to the afflicted
Soul, that it has not yet
been deprived of the sight of God, that it
can still recognise the
effective presence of a Father, though through
a darkened glass and a
turbid atmosphere, though of a Father that is
chastising it. And for
this cause, doubtless, are we so framed in
mind, and even so
organized in brain and nerve, that all confusion is
painful. It is within the
experience of many medical practitioners,
that a patient, with
strange and unusual symptoms of disease, has been
more distressed in mind,
more wretched, from the fact of being
unintelligible to himself
and others, than from the pain or danger of
the disease: nay, that the
patient has received the most solid
comfort, and resumed a
genial and enduring cheerfulness, from some new
symptom or product, that
had at once determined the name and nature of
his complaint, and
rendered it an intelligible effect of an
intelligible cause: even
though the discovery did at the same moment
preclude all hope of
restoration. Hence the mystic theologians, whose
delusions we may more
confidently hope to separate from their actual
intuitions, when we
condescend to read their works without the
presumption that whatever
our fancy, (always the ape, and too often
the adulterator and
counterfeit of our memory,) has not made or cannot
make a picture of, must be
nonsense,--hence, I say, the Mystics have
joined in representing the
state of the reprobate spirits as a
dreadful dream in which
there is no sense of reality, not even of the
pangs they are
enduring--an eternity without time, and as it were
below it--God present
without manifestation of his presence. But these
are depths, which we dare
not linger over. Let us turn to an instance
more on a level with the
ordinary sympathies of mankind. Here then,
and in this same healing
influence of Light and distinct Beholding, we
may detect the final cause
of that instinct which, in the great
majority of instances,
leads, and almost compels the Afflicted to
communicate their sorrows.
Hence too flows the alleviation that
results from "opening
out our griefs: "which are thus presented in
distinguishable forms
instead of the mist, through which whatever is
shapeless becomes
magnified and (literally) enormous. Casimir, in the
fifth Ode of his third
Book, has happily [85] expressed this thought.
Me longus silendi
Edit amor, facilesque luctus
Hausit medullas. Fugerit ocyus,
Simul negantem visere jusseris
Aures amicorum, et loquacem
Questibus evacuaris
iram.
Olim querendo desinimus queri,
Ipsoque fletu lacryma perditur
Nec fortis [86] aeque, si per omnes
Cura volat residetque
ramos.
Vires amicis perdit in auribus,
Minorque semper dividitur dolor,
Per multa permissus vagari
Pectora.--
I shall not make this an
excuse, however, for troubling my readers
with any complaints or
explanations, with which, as readers, they have
little or no concern. It
may suffice, (for the present at least,) to
declare, that the causes
that have delayed the publication of these
volumes for so long a
period after they had been printed off, were not
connected with any neglect
of my own; and that they would form an
instructive comment on the
chapter concerning authorship as a trade,
addressed to young men of
genius in the first volume of this work. I
remember the ludicrous
effect produced on my mind by the fast sentence
of an auto-biography,
which, happily for the writer, was as meagre in
incidents as it is well
possible for the life of an individual to be--
"The eventful life
which I am about to record, from the hour in which
I rose into existence on
this planet, etc." Yet when, notwithstanding
this warning example of
self-importance before me, I review my own
life, I cannot refrain
from applying the same epithet to it, and with
more than ordinary
emphasis--and no private feeling, that affected
myself only, should
prevent me from publishing the same, (for write it
I assuredly shall, should
life and leisure be granted me,) if
continued reflection
should strengthen my present belief, that my
history would add its
contingent to the enforcement of one important
truth, to wit, that we
must not only love our neighbours as ourselves,
but ourselves likewise as
our neighbours; and that we can do neither
unless we love God above
both.
Who lives, that's not
Depraved or depraves? Who dies, that bears
Not one spurn to the grave of their friends'
gift?
Strange as the delusion
may appear, yet it is most true, that three
years ago I did not know
or believe that I had an enemy in the world:
and now even my strongest
sensations of gratitude are mingled with
fear, and I reproach
myself for being too often disposed to ask,--Have
I one friend?--During the
many years which intervened between the
composition and the
publication of the CHRISTABEL, it became almost as
well known among literary
men as if it had been on common sale; the
same references were made
to it, and the same liberties taken with it,
even to the very names of
the imaginary persons in the poem. From
almost all of our most
celebrated poets, and from some with whom I had
no personal acquaintance,
I either received or heard of expressions of
admiration that, (I can
truly say,) appeared to myself utterly
disproportionate to a
work, that pretended to be nothing more than a
common Faery Tale. Many,
who had allowed no merit to my other poems,
whether printed or
manuscript, and who have frankly told me as much,
uniformly made an
exception in favour of the CHRISTABEL and the poem
entitled LOVE. Year after
year, and in societies of the most different
kinds, I had been
entreated to recite it and the result was still the
same in all, and
altogether different in this respect from the effect
produced by the occasional
recitation of any other poems I had
composed.--This before the
publication. And since then, with very few
exceptions, I have heard
nothing but abuse, and this too in a spirit
of bitterness at least as
disproportionate to the pretensions of the
poem, had it been the most
pitiably below mediocrity, as the previous
eulogies, and far more
inexplicable.--This may serve as a warning to
authors, that in their
calculations on the probable reception of a
poem, they must subtract
to a large amount from the panegyric, which
may have encouraged them
to publish it, however unsuspicious and
however various the
sources of this panegyric may have been. And,
first, allowances must be
made for private enmity, of the very
existence of which they
had perhaps entertained no suspicion--for
personal enmity behind the
mask of anonymous criticism: secondly for
the necessity of a certain
proportion of abuse and ridicule in a
Review, in order to make
it saleable, in consequence of which, if they
have no friends behind the
scenes, the chance must needs be against
them; but lastly and
chiefly, for the excitement and temporary
sympathy of feeling, which
the recitation of the poem by an admirer,
especially if he be at
once a warm admirer and a man of acknowledged
celebrity, calls forth in
the audience. For this is really a species
of animal magnetism, in
which the enkindling reciter, by perpetual
comment of looks and
tones, lends his own will and apprehensive
faculty to his auditors.
They live for the time within the dilated
sphere of his intellectual
being. It is equally possible, though not
equally common, that a
reader left to himself should sink below the
poem, as that the poem
left to itself should flag beneath the feelings
of the reader.--But, in my
own instance, I had the additional
misfortune of having been
gossiped about, as devoted to metaphysics,
and worse than all, to a
system incomparably nearer to the visionary
flights of Plato, and even
to the jargon of the Mystics, than to the
established tenets of
Locke. Whatever therefore appeared with my name
was condemned beforehand,
as predestined metaphysics. In a dramatic
poem, which had been
submitted by me to a gentleman of great influence
in the theatrical world,
occurred the following passage:--
"O we are querulous creatures! Little less
Than all things can suffice to make us
happy:
And little more than nothing is enough
To make us wretched."
Aye, here now! (exclaimed
the critic) here come Coleridge's
metaphysics! And the very
same motive (that is, not that the lines
were unfit for the present
state of our immense theatres; but that
they were metaphysics
[87]) was assigned elsewhere for the rejection
of the two following
passages. The first is spoken in answer to a
usurper, who had rested
his plea on the circumstance, that he had been
chosen by the acclamations
of the people.--
"What people? How convened? or, if
convened,
Must not the magic power that charms
together
Millions of men in council, needs have
power
To win or wield them? Rather, O far rather
Shout forth thy titles to yon circling
mountains,
And with a thousand-fold reverberation
Make the rocks flatter thee, and the
volleying air,
Unbribed, shout back to thee, King
Emerick!
By wholesome laws to embank the sovereign
power,
To deepen by restraint, and by prevention
Of lawless will to amass and guide the
flood
In its majestic channel, is man's task
And the true patriot's glory! In all else
Men safelier trust to Heaven, than to
themselves
When least themselves: even in those
whirling crowds
Where folly is contagious, and too oft
Even wise men leave their better sense at
home,
To chide and wonder at them, when
returned."
The second passage is in
the mouth of an old and experienced courtier,
betrayed by the man in
whom he had most trusted.
"And yet Sarolta, simple, inexperienced,
Could see him as he was, and often warned
me.
Whence learned she this?--O she was
innocent!
And to be innocent is Nature's wisdom!
The fledge-dove knows the prowlers of the
air,
Feared soon as seen, and flutters back to
shelter.
And the young steed recoils upon his
haunches,
The never-yet-seen adder's hiss first
heard.
O surer than suspicion's hundred eyes
Is that fine sense, which to the pure in
heart,
By mere oppugnancy of their own goodness,
Reveals the approach of evil."
As therefore my character
as a writer could not easily be more injured
by an overt act than it
was already in consequence of the report, I
published a work, a large
portion of which was professedly
metaphysical. A long delay
occurred between its first annunciation and
its appearance; it was
reviewed therefore by anticipation with a
malignity, so avowedly and
exclusively personal, as is, I believe,
unprecedented even in the
present contempt of all common humanity that
disgraces and endangers
the liberty of the press. After its
appearance, the author of
this lampoon undertook to review it in the
Edinburgh Review; and
under the single condition, that he should have
written what he himself
really thought, and have criticised the work
as he would have done had
its author been indifferent to him, I should
have chosen that man
myself, both from the vigour and the originality
of his mind, and from his
particular acuteness in speculative
reasoning, before all
others.--I remembered Catullus's lines.
Desine de quoquam quicquam bene velle mereri,
Aut aliquem fieri posse putare pium.
Omnia
sunt ingrata: nihil fecisse benigne est:
Immo, etiam taedet, taedet obestque
magis;
Ut mihi, quem nemo gravius nec acerbius urget,
Quam modo qui me unum atque unicum
amicum habuit.
But I can truly say, that
the grief with which I read this rhapsody of
predetermined insult, had
the rhapsodist himself for its whole and
sole object.
* * * * * *
I refer to this review at
present, in consequence of information
having been given me, that
the inuendo of my "potential infidelity,"
grounded on one passage of
my first Lay Sermon, has been received and
propagated with a degree
of credence, of which I can safely acquit the
originator of the calumny.
I give the sentences, as they stand in the
sermon, premising only
that I was speaking exclusively of miracles
worked for the outward
senses of men. "It was only to overthrow the
usurpation exercised in
and through the senses, that the senses were
miraculously appealed to.
REASON AND RELIGION ARE THEIR OWN EVIDENCE.
The natural sun is in this
respect a symbol of the spiritual. Ere he
is fully arisen, and while
his glories are still under veil, he calls
up the breeze to chase
away the usurping vapours of the night-season,
and thus converts the air
itself into the minister of its own
purification: not surely
in proof or elucidation of the light from
heaven, but to prevent its
interception."
"Wherever, therefore,
similar circumstances co-exist with the same
moral causes, the
principles revealed, and the examples recorded, in
the inspired writings,
render miracles superfluous: and if we neglect
to apply truths in
expectation of wonders, or under pretext of the
cessation of the latter,
we tempt God, and merit the same reply which
our Lord gave to the
Pharisees on a like occasion."
In the sermon and the
notes both the historical truth and the
necessity of the miracles
are strongly and frequently asserted. "The
testimony of books of
history (that is, relatively to the signs and
wonders, with which Christ
came) is one of the strong and stately
pillars of the church: but
it is not the foundation!" Instead,
therefore, of defending
myself, which I could easily effect by a
series of passages,
expressing the same opinion, from the Fathers and
the most eminent
Protestant Divines, from the Reformation to the
Revolution, I shall merely
state what my belief is, concerning the
true evidences of
Christianity. 1. Its consistency
with right Reason,
I consider as the outer
court of the temple--the common area, within
which it stands. 2. The miracles, with and through which
the Religion
was first revealed and
attested, I regard as the steps, the vestibule,
and the portal of the
temple. 3. The sense, the inward
feeling, in
the soul of each believer
of its exceeding desirableness--the
experience, that he needs
something, joined with the strong
foretokening, that the
redemption and the graces propounded to us in
Christ are what he
needs--this I hold to be the true foundation of the
spiritual edifice. With
the strong a priori probability that flows in
from 1 and 3 on the
correspondent historical evidence of 2, no man can
refuse or neglect to make
the experiment without guilt. But, 4, it is
the experience derived
from a practical conformity to the conditions
of the Gospel--it is the
opening eye; the dawning light: the terrors
and the promises of
spiritual growth; the blessedness of loving God as
God, the nascent sense of
sin hated as sin, and of the incapability of
attaining to either
without Christ; it is the sorrow that still rises
up from beneath and the
consolation that meets it from above; the
bosom treacheries of the
principal in the warfare and the exceeding
faithfulness and
long-suffering of the uninteresting ally;--in a word,
it is the actual trial of
the faith in Christ, with its accompaniments
and results, that must
form the arched roof, and the faith itself is
the completing key-stone.
In order to an efficient belief in
Christianity, a man must
have been a Christian, and this is the
seeming argumentum in
circulo, incident to all spiritual Truths, to
every subject not
presentable under the forms of Time and Space, as
long as we attempt to
master by the reflex acts of the Understanding
what we can only know by
the act of becoming. Do the will of my
Father, and ye shall know
whether I am of God. These four evidences I
believe to have been and
still to be, for the world, for the whole
Church, all necessary, all
equally necessary: but at present, and for
the majority of Christians
born in Christian countries, I believe the
third and the fourth
evidences to be the most operative, not as
superseding but as
involving a glad undoubting faith in the two
former. Credidi, ideoque
intellexi, appears to me the dictate equally
of Philosophy and
Religion, even as I believe Redemption to be the
antecedent of
Sanctification, and not its consequent. All spiritual
predicates may be
construed indifferently as modes of Action or as
states of Being, Thus
Holiness and Blessedness are the same idea, now
seen in relation to act
and now to existence. The ready belief which
has been yielded to the
slander of my "potential infidelity," I
attribute in part to the
openness with which I have avowed my doubts,
whether the heavy
interdict, under which the name of Benedict Spinoza
lies, is merited on the
whole or to the whole extent. Be this as it
may, I wish, however, that
I could find in the books of philosophy,
theoretical or moral,
which are alone recommended to the present
students of theology in
our established schools, a few passages as
thoroughly Pauline, as
completely accordant with the doctrines of the
Established Church, as the
following sentences in the concluding page
of Spinoza's Ethics.
Deinde quo mens hoc amore divino, seu beatitudine
magis gaudet, eo plus
intelligit, hoc est, eo majorem in affectus
habet potentiam, et eo
minus ab affectibus, qui mali sunt, patitur;
atque adeo ex eo, quod
mens hoc amore divino, seu beatitudine gaudet,
potestatem habet libidines
coercendi; et quia humana potentia ad
coercendos affectus in
solo intellectu consistit; ergo nemo
beatitudine gaudet, quia
affectus coercuit, sed contra potestas
libidines coercendi ex
ipsa beatitudine oritur.
With regard to the
Unitarians, it has been shamelessly asserted, that
I have denied them to be
Christians. God forbid! For how should I
know, what the piety of
the heart may be, or what quantum of error in
the understanding may
consist with a saving faith in the intentions
and actual dispositions of
the whole moral being in any one
individual? Never will God
reject a soul that sincerely loves him: be
his speculative opinions
what they may: and whether in any given
instance certain opinions,
be they unbelief, or misbelief, are
compatible with a sincere
love of God, God can only know.--But this I
have said, and shall
continue to say: that if the doctrines, the sum
of which I believe to
constitute the truth in Christ, be Christianity,
then Unitarianism is not,
and vice versa: and that, in speaking
theologically and
impersonally, i.e. of Psilanthropism and
Theanthropism as schemes
of belief, without reference to individuals,
who profess either the one
or the other, it will be absurd to use a
different language as long
as it is the dictate of common sense, that
two opposites cannot
properly be called by the same name. I should
feel no offence if a
Unitarian applied the same to me, any more than
if he were to say, that
two and two being four, four and four must be
eight.
alla broton
ton men keneophrones auchai
ex agathon ebalon;
ton d' au katamemphthent' agan
ischun oikeion paresphalen kalon,
cheiros elkon opisso, thumos atolmos eon.
This has been my object,
and this alone can be my defence--and O! that
with this my personal as
well as my LITERARY LIFE might conclude!--the
unquenched desire I mean,
not without the consciousness of having
earnestly endeavoured to
kindle young minds, and to guard them against
the temptations of
scorners, by showing that the scheme of
Christianity, as taught in
the liturgy and homilies of our Church,
though not discoverable by
human reason, is yet in accordance with it;
that link follows link by
necessary consequence; that Religion passes
out of the ken of Reason
only where the eye of Reason has reached its
own horizon; and that
Faith is then but its continuation: even as the
day softens away into the
sweet twilight, and twilight, hushed and
breathless, steals into
the darkness. It is night, sacred night! the
upraised eye views only
the starry heaven which manifests itself
alone: and the outward
beholding is fixed on the sparks twinkling in
the awful depth, though
suns of other worlds, only to preserve the
soul steady and collected
in its pure act of inward adoration to the
great I AM, and to the
filial WORD that re-affirmeth it from eternity
to eternity, whose choral
echo is the universe.
THEO, MONO, DOXA.
FOOTNOTES
[1] The authority of
Milton and Shakespeare may be usefully pointed
out to young authors. In
the Comus and other early poems of Milton
there is a superfluity of
double epithets; while in the Paradise Lost
we find very few, in the
Paradise Regained scarce any. The same remark
holds almost equally true
of the Love's Labour Lost, Romeo and Juliet,
Venus and Adonis, and
Lucrece, compared with the Lear, Macbeth,
Othello, and Hamlet of our
great Dramatist. The rule for the admission
of double epithets seems
to be this: either that they should be
already denizens of our
language, such as blood-stained, terror-
stricken, self-applauding:
or when a new epithet, or one found in
books only, is hazarded,
that it, at least, be one word, not two words
made one by mere virtue of
the printers hyphen. A language which, like
the English, is almost
without cases, is indeed in its very genius
unfitted for compounds. If
a writer, every time a compounded word
suggests itself to him,
would seek for some other mode of expressing
the same sense, the
chances are always greatly in favour of his
finding a better word. Ut
tanquam scopulum sic fugias insolens verbum,
is the wise advice of
Caesar to the Roman Orators, and the precept
applies with double force
to the writers in our own language. But it
must not be forgotten,
that the same Caesar wrote a Treatise for the
purpose of reforming the
ordinary language by bringing it to a greater
accordance with the
principles of logic or universal grammar.
[2] See the criticisms on
the Ancient Mariner, in the Monthly and
Critical Reviews of the
first volume of the Lyrical Ballads.
[3] This is worthy of
ranking as a maxim, (regula maxima,) of
criticism. Whatever is
translatable in other and simpler words of the
same language, without
loss of sense or dignity, is bad.
N.B.--By
dignity I mean the absence
of ludicrous and debasing associations.
[4] The Christ's Hospital
phrase, not for holidays altogether, but for
those on which the boys
are permitted to go beyond the precincts of
the school.
[5] I remember a ludicrous
instance in the poem of a young tradesman:
"No more will I endure love's pleasing
pain,
Or round my heart's leg tie his galling
chain."
[6] Cowper's Task was
published some time before the Sonnets of Mr.
Bowles; but I was not
familiar with it till many years afterwards. The
vein of satire which runs
through that excellent poem, together with
the sombre hue of its
religious opinions, would probably, at that
time, have prevented its
laying any strong hold on my affections. The
love of nature seems to
have led Thomson to a cheerful religion; and a
gloomy religion to have
led Cowper to a love of nature. The one would
carry his fellow-men along
with him into nature; the other flies to
nature from his
fellow-men. In chastity of diction however, and the
harmony of blank verse,
Cowper leaves Thomson immeasurably below him;
yet still I feel the
latter to have been the born poet.
[7] SONNET I
Pensive at eve, on the hard world I mused,
And m poor heart was sad; so at the Moon
I gazed and sighed, and sighed; for ah how soon
Eve saddens into night! mine eyes perused
With tearful vacancy the dampy grass
That wept and glitter'd in the paly ray
And I did pause me on my lonely way
And mused me on the wretched ones that pass
O'er the bleak heath of sorrow. But alas!
Most of myself I thought! when it befel,
That the soothe spirit of the breezy wood
Breath'd in mine ear: "All this is very
well,
But much of one thing, is for no thing
good."
Oh my poor heart's inexplicable swell!
SONNET II
Oh I do love thee, meek Simplicity!
For of thy lays the lulling simpleness
Goes to my heart, and soothes each small
distress,
Distress the small, yet haply great to me.
'Tis true on Lady Fortune's gentlest pad
I amble on; and yet I know not why
So sad I am! but should a friend and I
Frown, pout and part, then I am very sad.
And then with sonnets and with sympathy
My dreamy bosom's mystic woes I pall:
Now of my false friend plaining plaintively,
Now raving at mankind in general;
But whether sad or fierce, 'tis simple all,
All very simple, meek Simplicity!
SONNET III
And this reft house is that, the which he built,
Lamented Jack! and here his malt he pil'd,
Cautious in vain! these rats, that squeak so
wild,
Squeak not unconscious of their father's guilt.
Did he not see her gleaming thro' the glade!
Belike 'twas she, the maiden all forlorn.
What the she milk no cow with crumpled horn,
Yet, aye she haunts the dale where erst she
stray'd:
And aye, beside her stalks her amorous knight
Still on his thighs their wonted brogues are
worn,
And thro' those brogues, still tatter'd and
betorn,
His hindward charms gleam an unearthly white.
Ah! thus thro' broken clouds at night's high
noon
Peeps to fair fragments forth the full-orb'd
harvest-moon!
The following anecdote
will not be wholly out of place here, and may
perhaps amuse the reader.
An amateur performer in verse expressed to a
common friend a strong
desire to be introduced to me, but hesitated in
accepting my friend's
immediate offer, on the score that "he was, he
must acknowledge, the
author of a confounded severe epigram on my
Ancient Mariner, which had
given me great pain." I assured my friend
that, if the epigram was a
good one, it would only increase my desire
to become acquainted with
the author, and begged to hear it recited:
when, to my no less
surprise than amusement, it proved to be one which
I had myself some time
before written and inserted in the "Morning
Post," to wit
To the Author of the Ancient Mariner.
Your poem must eternal
be,
Dear sir! it cannot
fail,
For 'tis
incomprehensible,
And without head or
tail.
[8] Of old things all are
over old,
Of good things none are good enough;--
We'll show that we can help to frame
A world of other stuff.
I too will have my kings, that take
From me the sign of life and death:
Kingdoms shall shift about, like clouds,
Obedient to my breath.
Wordsworth's Rob Roy.--Poet. Works,
vol. III. p. 127.
[9] Pope was under the
common error of his age, an error far from
being sufficiently
exploded even at the present day. It consists (as I
explained at large, and
proved in detail in my public lectures,) in
mistaking for the
essentials of the Greek stage certain rules, which
the wise poets imposed
upon themselves, in order to render all the
remaining parts of the
drama consistent with those, that had been
forced upon them by
circumstances independent of their will; out of
which circumstances the
drama itself arose. The circumstances in the
time of Shakespeare, which
it was equally out of his power to alter,
were different, and such
as, in my opinion, allowed a far wider
sphere, and a deeper and
more human interest. Critics are too apt to
forget, that rules are but
means to an end; consequently, where the
ends are different, the
rules must be likewise so. We must have
ascertained what the end
is, before we can determine what the rules
ought to be. Judging under
this impression, I did not hestitate to
declare my full
conviction, that the consummate judgment of
Shakespeare, not only in
the general construction, but in all the
details, of his dramas,
impressed me with greater wonder, than even
the might of his genius,
or the depth of his philosophy. The substance
of these lectures I hope
soon to publish; and it is but a debt of
justice to myself and my
friends to notice, that the first course of
lectures, which differed
from the following courses only, by
occasionally varying the
illustrations of the same thoughts, was
addressed to very
numerous, and I need not add, respectable audiences
at the Royal institution,
before Mr. Schlegel gave his lectures on the
same subjects at Vienna.
[10] In the course of one
of my Lectures, I had occasion to point out
the almost faultless
position and choice of words, in Pope's original
compositions, particularly
in his Satires and moral Essays, for the
purpose of comparing them
with his translation of Homer, which, I do
not stand alone in
regarding, as the main source of our pseudo-poetic
diction. And this, by the
bye, is an additional confirmation of a
remark made, I believe, by
Sir Joshua Reynolds, that next to the man
who forms and elevates the
taste of the public, he that corrupts it,
is commonly the greatest
genius. Among other passages, I analyzed
sentence by sentence, and
almost word by word, the popular lines,
As when the moon, refulgent lamp of night, etc.
(Iliad. B. viii.)
much in the same way as
has been since done, in an excellent article
on Chalmers's British
Poets in the Quarterly Review. The impression on
the audience in general
was sudden and evident: and a number of
enlightened and highly
educated persons, who at different times
afterwards addressed me on
the subject, expressed their wonder, that
truth so obvious should
not have struck them before; but at the same
time acknowledged--(so
much had they been accustomed, in reading
poetry, to receive
pleasure from the separate images and phrases
successively, without
asking themselves whether the collective meaning
was sense or
nonsense)--that they might in all probability have read
the same passage again
twenty times with undiminished admiration, and
without once reflecting,
that
astra
phaeinaen amphi selaenaen
phainet aritretea--
(that is, the stars
around, or near the full moon, shine pre-eminently
bright) conveys a just and
happy image of a moonlight sky: while it is
difficult to determine
whether, in the lines,
Around her throne the vivid planets roll,
And stars unnumber'd gild the glowing pole,
the sense or the diction
be the more absurd. My answer was; that,
though I had derived
peculiar advantages from my school discipline,
and though my general
theory of poetry was the same then as now, I had
yet experienced the same
sensations myself, and felt almost as if I
bad been newly couched,
when, by Mr. Wordsworth's conversation, I had
been induced to re-examine
with impartial strictness Gray's celebrated
Elegy. I had long before
detected the defects in The Bard; but the
Elegy I had considered as
proof against all fair attacks; and to this
day I cannot read either
without delight, and a portion of enthusiasm.
At all events, whatever
pleasure I may have lost by the clearer
perception of the faults
in certain passages, has been more than
repaid to me by the
additional delight with which I read the
remainder.
Another instance in
confirmation of these remarks occurs to me in the
Faithful Shepherdess.
Seward first traces Fletcher's lines;
More foul diseases than e'er yet the hot
Sun bred thro' his burnings, while the dog
Pursues the raging lion, throwing the fog
And deadly vapour from his angry breath,
Filling the lower world with plague and death,
to Spenser's Shepherd's
Calendar,
The rampant lion hunts he fast
With dogs of noisome breath;
Whose baleful barking brings, in haste,
Pine, plagues, and dreary death!
He then takes occasion to
introduce Homer's simile of the appearance
of Achilles' mail to Priam
compared with the Dog Star; literally thus--
"For this indeed is
most splendid, but it was made an evil sign, and
brings many a consuming
disease to wretched mortals." Nothing can be
more simple as a
description, or more accurate as a simile; which,
(says Seward,) is thus
finely translated by Mr. Pope
Terrific Glory! for his burning breath
Taints the red air with fevers, plagues, and
death!
Now here--(not to mention
the tremendous bombast)--the Dog Star, so
called, is turned into a
real dog, a very odd dog, a fire, fever,
plague, and
death-breathing, red. air-tainting dog: and the whole
visual likeness is lost,
while the likeness in the effects is rendered
absurd by the
exaggeration. In Spenser and Fletcher the thought is
justifiable; for the
images are at least consistent, and it was the
intention of the writers
to mark the seasons by this allegory of
visualized puns.
[11] Especially in this
age of personality, this age of literary and
political gossiping, when
the meanest insects are worshipped with a
sort of Egyptian
superstition, if only the brainless head be atoned
for by the sting of
personal malignity in the tail;--when the most
vapid satires have become
the objects of a keen public interest,
purely from the number of
contemporary characters named in the patch-
work notes, (which
possess, however, the comparative merit of being
more poetical than the
text,) and because, to increase the stimulus,
the author has sagaciously
left his own name for whispers and
conjectures.
[12] If it were worth
while to mix together, as ingredients, half the
anecdotes which I either
myself know to be true, or which I have
received from men
incapable of intentional falsehood, concerning the
characters,
qualifications, and motives of our anonymous critics,
whose decisions are
oracles for our reading public; I might safely
borrow the words of the
apocryphal Daniel; "Give me leave, O SOVEREIGN
PUBLIC, and I shall slay
this dragon without sward or staff." For the
compound would be as the
"pitch, and fat, and hair, which Daniel took,
and did seethe them
together, and made lumps thereof; this he put in
the dragon's mouth, and so
the dragon burst in sunder; and Daniel
said, LO, THESE ARE THE
GODS YE WORSHIP."
[13] This is one instance
among many of deception, by the telling the
half of a fact, and
omitting the other half, when it is from their
mutual counteraction and
neutralization, that the whole truth arises,
as a tertium aliquid
different from either. Thus in Dryden's famous
line
Great wit (meaning genius) to madness sure is
near allied.
Now if the profound
sensibility, which is doubtless one of the
components of genius, were
alone considered, single and unbalanced, it
might be fairly described
as exposing the individual to a greater
chance of mental
derangement; but then a more than usual rapidity of
association, a more than
usual power of passing from thought to
thought, and image to
image, is a component equally essential; and to
the due modification of
each by the other the genius itself consists;
so that it would be just
as fair to describe the earth, as in imminent
danger of exorbitating, or
of falling into the sun, according as the
assertor of the absurdity
confined his attention either to the
projectile or to the
attractive force exclusively.
[14] For as to the
devotees of the circulating libraries, I dare not
compliment their
pass-time, or rather kill-time, with the name of
reading. Call it rather a
sort of beggarly day-dreaming, during which
the mind of the dreamer
furnishes for itself nothing but laziness, and
a little mawkish
sensibility; while the whole materiel and imagery of
the doze is supplied ab
extra by a sort of mental camera obscura
manufactured at the
printing office, which pro tempore fixes,
reflects, and transmits
the moving phantasms of one mans delirium, so
as to people the
barrenness of a hundred other brains afflicted with
the same trance or
suspension of all common sense and all definite
purpose. We should
therefore transfer this species of amusement--(if
indeed those can be said
to retire a musis, who were never in their
company, or relaxation be
attributable to those, whose bows are never
bent)--from the genus,
reading, to that comprebensive class
characterized by the power
of reconciling the two contrary yet
coexisting propensities of
human nature, namely, indulgence of sloth,
and hatred of vacancy. In
addition to novels and tales of chivalry to
prose or rhyme, (by which
last I mean neither rhythm nor metre) this
genus comprises as its
species, gaming, swinging, or swaying on a
chair or gate; spitting
over a bridge; smoking; snuff-taking; tete-a-
tete quarrels after dinner
between husband and wife; conning word by
word all the
advertisements of a daily newspaper in a public house on
a rainy day, etc. etc.
etc.
[15] Ex. gr. Pediculos e
capillis excerptos in arenam jacere
incontusos; eating of
unripe fruit; gazing on the clouds, and (in
genere) on movable things
suspended in the air; riding among a
multitude of camels;
frequent laughter; listening to a series of jests
and humorous
anecdotes,--as when (so to modernize the learned
Saracen's meaning) one
man's droll story of an Irishman inevitably
occasions another's droll
story of a Scotchman, which again, by the
same sort of conjunction
disjunctive, leads to some etourderie of a
Welshman, and that again
to some sly hit of a Yorkshireman;--the habit
of reading tomb-stones in
church-yards, etc. By the bye, this
catalogue, strange as it
may appear, is not insusceptible of a sound
psychological commentary.
[16] I have ventured to
call it unique; not only because I know no
work of the kind in our
language, (if we except a few chapters of the
old translation of
Froissart)--none, which uniting the charms of
romance and history, keeps
the imagination so constantly on the wing,
and yet leaves so much for
after reflection; but likewise, and
chiefly, because it is a
compilation, which, in the various
excellencies of
translation, selection, and arrangement, required and
proves greater genius in
the compiler, as living in the present state
of society, than in the
original composers.
[17] It is not easy to
estimate the effects which the example of a
young man as highly
distinguished for strict purity of disposition and
conduct, as for
intellectual power and literary acquirements, may
produce on those of the
same age with himself, especially on those of
similar pursuits and
congenial minds. For many years, my opportunities
of intercourse with Mr.
Southey have been rare, and at long intervals;
but I dwell with unabated
pleasure on the strong and sudden, yet I
trust not fleeting,
influence, which my moral being underwent on my
acquaintance with him at
Oxford, whither I had gone at the
commencement of our
Cambridge vacation on a visit to an old school-
fellow. Not indeed on my
moral or religious principles, for they had
never been contaminated;
but in awakening the sense of the duty and
dignity of making my
actions accord with those principles, both in
word and deed. The
irregularities only not universal among the young
men of my standing, which
I always knew to be wrong, I then learned to
feel as degrading; learned
to know that an opposite conduct, which was
at that time considered by
us as the easy virtue of cold and selfish
prudence, might originate
in the noblest emotions, in views the most
disinterested and
imaginative. It is not however from grateful
recollections only, that I
have been impelled thus to leave these my
deliberate sentiments on
record; but in some sense as a debt of
justice to the man, whose
name has been so often connected with mine
for evil to which he is a
stranger. As a specimen I subjoin part of a
note, from The Beauties of
the Anti-jacobin, in which, having
previously informed the
public that I had been dishonoured at
Cambridge for preaching
Deism, at a time when, for my youthful ardour
in defence of
Christianity, I was decried as a bigot by the proselytes
of French phi-(or to speak
more truly psi-)-losophy, the writer
concludes with these
words; "since this time he has left his native
country, commenced citizen
of the world, left his poor children
fatherless, and his wife
destitute. Ex his disce his friends, LAMB and
SOUTHEY." With
severest truth it may be asserted, that it would not be
easy to select two men
more exemplary in their domestic affections
than those whose names
were thus printed at full length as in the same
rank of morals with a
denounced infidel and fugitive, who had left his
children fatherless and
his wife destitute! Is it surprising, that
many good men remained
longer than perhaps they otherwise would have
done adverse to a party,
which encouraged and openly rewarded the
authors of such atrocious
calumnies? Qualis es, nescio; sed per quales
agis, scio et doleo.
[18] In opinions of long
continuance, and in which we have never
before been molested by a
single doubt, to be suddenly convinced of
an error, is almost like
being convicted of a fault. There is a state
of mind, which is the
direct antithesis of that, which takes place
when we make a bull. The
bull namely consists in the bringing her
two incompatible thoughts,
with the sensation, but without the sense,
of their connection. The
psychological condition, or that which
constitutes the
possibility, of this state, being such disproportionate
vividness of two distant
thoughts, as extinguishes or obscures the
consciousness of the
intermediate images or conceptions, or wholly
abstracts the attention
from them. Thus in the well known bull, "I was
a fine child, but they
changed me:" the first conception expressed in
the word "I," is
that of personal identity--Ego contemplans: the second
expressed in the word
"me," is the visual image or object by which the
mind represents to itself
its past condition, or rather, its personal
identity under the form in
which it imagined itself previously to have
existed,--Ego
contemplatus. Now the change of one visual image for
another involves in itself
no absurdity, and becomes absurd only by
its immediate
juxta-position with the fast thought, which is rendered
possible by the whole
attention being successively absorbed to each
singly, so as not to
notice the interjacent notion, changed, which by
its incongruity, with the
first thought, I, constitutes the bull. Add
only, that this process is
facilitated by the circumstance of the words
I, and me, being sometimes
equivalent, and sometimes having a distinct
meaning; sometimes,
namely, signifying the act of self-consciousness,
sometimes the external
image in and by which the mind represents that
act to itself, the result
and symbol of its individuality. Now suppose
the direct contrary state,
and you will have a distinct sense of the
connection between two
conceptions, without that sensation of such
connection which is
supplied by habit. The man feels as if he were
standing on his head
though he cannot but see that he is truly
standing on his feet.
This, as a painful sensation, will of course
have a tendency to
associate itself with him who occasions it; even as
persons, who have been by
painful means restored from derangement, are
known to feel an
involuntary dislike towards their physician.
[19] Without however the
apprehensions attributed to the Pagan
reformer of the poetic republic.
If we may judge from the preface to
the recent collection of
his poems, Mr. W. would have answered with
Xanthias--
su d' ouk edeisas ton huophon ton rhaematon,
kai tas apeilas; XAN, ou ma Di', oud'
ephrontisa.--Ranae, 492-3.
And here let me hint to
the authors of the numerous parodies, and
pretended imitations of
Mr. Wordsworth's style, that at once to
conceal and convey wit and
wisdom in the semblance of folly and
dulness, as is done in the
Clowns and Fools, nay even in the Dogberry,
of our Shakespeare, is
doubtless a proof of genius, or at all events
of satiric talent; but
that the attempt to ridicule a silly and
childish poem, by writing
another still sillier and still more
childish, can only prove
(if it prove any thing at all) that the
parodist is a still
greater blockhead than the original writer, and,
what is far worse, a
malignant coxcomb to boot. The talent for mimicry
seems strongest where the
human race are most degraded. The poor,
naked half human savages
of New Holland were found excellent mimics:
and, in civilized society,
minds of the very lowest stamp alone
satirize by copying. At
least the difference which must blend with and
balance the likeness, in
order to constitute a just imitation,
existing here merely in
caricature, detracts from the libeller's
heart, without adding an
iota to the credit of his understanding.
[20] The Butterfly the
ancient Grecians made
The soul's fair emblem, and its only
name--
But of the soul, escaped the slavish trade
Of mortal life! For to this earthly frame
Ours is the reptile's lot, much toil, much
blame,
Manifold motions making little speed,
And to deform and kill the things whereon
we feed.
[21] Mr. Wordsworth, even
in his two earliest poems, The Evening Walk
and the Descriptive
Sketches, is more free from this latter defect
than most of the young
poets his contemporaries. It may however be
exemplified, together with
the harsh and obscure construction, in
which he more often offended,
in the following lines:--
"'Mid stormy vapours ever driving by,
Where ospreys, cormorants, and herons cry;
Where hardly given the hopeless waste to
cheer,
Denied the bread of life the foodful ear,
Dwindles the pear on autumn's latest
spray,
And apple sickens pale in summer's ray;
Ev'n here content has fixed her smiling
reign
With independence, child of high
disdain."
I hope, I need not say,
that I have quoted these lines for no other
purpose than to make my
meaning fully understood. It is to be
regretted that Mr.
Wordsworth has not republished these two poems
entire.
[22] This is effected
either by giving to the one word a general, and
to the other an exclusive
use; as "to put on the back" and "to
indorse;" or by an
actual distinction of meanings, as "naturalist,"
and "physician;"
or by difference of relation, as "I" and "Me" (each
of which the rustics of
our different provinces still use in all the
cases singular of the
first personal pronoun). Even the mere
difference, or corruption,
in the pronunciation of the same word, if
it have become general,
will produce a new word with a distinct
signification; thus
"property" and "propriety;" the latter of which,
even to the time of
Charles II was the written word for all the senses
of both. There is a sort
of minim immortal among the animalcula
infusoria, which has not
naturally either birth, or death, absolute
beginning, or absolute
end: for at a certain period a small point
appears on its back, which
deepens and lengthens till the creature
divides into two, and the
same process recommences in each of the
halves now become
integral. This may be a fanciful, but it is by no
means a bad emblem of the
formation of words, and may facilitate the
conception, how immense a
nomenclature may be organized from a few
simple sounds by rational
beings in a social state. For each new
application, or excitement
of the same sound, will call forth a
different sensation, which
cannot but affect the pronunciation. The
after recollections of the
sound, without the same vivid sensation,
will modify it still
further till at length all trace of the original
likeness is worn away.
[23] I ought to have
added, with the exception of a single sheet which
I accidentally met with at
the printer's. Even from this scanty
specimen, I found it
impossible to doubt the talent, or not to admire
the ingenuity, of the
author. That his distinctions were for the
greater part
unsatisfactory to my mind, proves nothing against their
accuracy; but it may
possibly be serviceable to him, in case of a
second edition, if I take
this opportunity of suggesting the query;
whether he may not have
been occasionally misled, by having assumed,
as to me he appears to
have done, the non-existence of any absolute
synonymes in our language?
Now I cannot but think, that there are many
which remain for our
posterity to distinguish and appropriate, and
which I regard as so much
reversionary wealth in our mother tongue.
When two distinct meanings
are confounded under one or more words,--
(and such must be the
case, as sure as our knowledge is progressive
and of course
imperfect)--erroneous consequences will be drawn, and
what is true in one sense
of the word will be affirmed as true in
toto. Men of research,
startled by the consequences, seek in the
things
themselves--(whether in or out of the mind)--for a knowledge of
the fact, and having
discovered the difference, remove the
equivocation either by the
substitution of a new word, or by the
appropriation of one of
the two or more words, which had before been
used promiscuously. When
this distinction has been so naturalized and
of such general currency
that the language does as it were think for
us--(like the sliding rule
which is the mechanic's safe substitute for
arithmetical
knowledge)--we then say, that it is evident to common
sense. Common sense,
therefore, differs in different ages. What was
born and christened in the
Schools passes by degrees into the world at
large, and becomes the
property of the market and the tea-table. At
least I can discover no
other meaning of the term, common sense, if it
is to convey any specific
difference from sense and judgment in
genere, and where it is
not used scholastically for the universal
reason. Thus in the reign
of Charles II the philosophic world was
called to arms by the
moral sophisms of Hobbes, and the ablest writers
exerted themselves in the
detection of an error, which a school-boy
would now be able to
confute by the mere recollection, that compulsion
and obligation conveyed
two ideas perfectly disparate, and that what
appertained to the one,
had been falsely transferred to the other by a
mere confusion of terms.
[24] I here use the word
idea in Mr. Hume's sense on account of its
general currency amongst
the English metaphysicians; though against my
own judgment, for I
believe that the vague use of this word has been
the cause of much error
and more confusion. The word, idea, in its
original sense as used by
Pindar, Aristophanes, and in the Gospel of
St. Matthew, represented
the visual abstraction of a distant object,
when we see the whole
without distinguishing its parts. Plato adopted
it as a technical term,
and as the antithesis to eidolon, or sensuous
image; the transient and
perishable emblem, or mental word, of the
idea. Ideas themselves he
considered as mysterious powers, living,
seminal, formative, and
exempt from time. In this sense the word Idea
became the property of the
Platonic school; and it seldom occurs in
Aristotle, without some
such phrase annexed to it, as according to
Plato, or as Plato says.
Our English writers to the end of the reign
of Charles II or somewhat
later, employed it either in the original
sense, or Platonically, or
in a sense nearly correspondent to our
present use of the
substantive, Ideal; always however opposing it,
more or less to image,
whether of present or absent objects. The
reader will not be
displeased with the following interesting
exemplification from Bishop
Jeremy Taylor. "St. Lewis the King sent
Ivo Bishop of Chartres on
an embassy, and he told, that he met a grave
and stately matron on the
way with a censer of fire in one band, and a
vessel of water in the
other; and observing her to have a melancholy,
religious, and phantastic
deportment and look, he asked her what those
symbols meant, and what
she meant to do with her fire and water; she
answered, My purpose is
with the fire to burn paradise, and with my
water to quench the flames
of hell, that men may serve God purely for
the love of God. But we
rarely meet with such spirits which love
virtue so metaphysically
as to abstract her from all sensible
compositions, and love the
purity of the idea." Des Cartes having
introduced into his
philosophy the fanciful hypothesis of material
ideas, or certain
configurations of the brain, which were as so many
moulds to the influxes of
the external world,--Locke adopted the term,
but extended its
signification to whatever is the immediate object of
the mind's attention or
consciousness. Hume, distinguishing those
representations which are
accompanied with a sense of a present object
from those reproduced by
the mind itself, designated the former by
impressions, and confined
the word idea to the latter.
[25] I am aware, that this
word occurs neither in Johnson's Dictionary
nor in any classical
writer. But the word, to intend, which Newton and
others before him employ
in this sense, is now so completely
appropriated to another
meaning, that I could not use it without
ambiguity: while to
paraphrase the sense, as by render intense, would
often break up the
sentence and destroy that harmony of the position
of the words with the
logical position of the thoughts, which is a
beauty in all composition,
and more especially desirable in a close
philosophical
investigation. I have therefore hazarded the word,
intensify: though, I
confess, it sounds uncouth to my own ear.
[26] And Coxcombs vanquish
Berkeley by a grin.
[27] Videlicet; Quantity,
Quality, Relation, and Mode, each consisting
of three subdivisions. See
Kritik der reinen Vernunft. See too the
judicious remarks on Locke
and Hume.
[28] St. Luke x. 21.
[29] An American Indian
with little variety of images, and a still
scantier stock of
language, is obliged to turn his few words to many
purposes, by likenesses so
clear and analogies so remote as to give
his language the semblance
and character of lyric poetry interspersed
with grotesques. Something
not unlike this was the case of such men as
Behmen and Fox with regard
to the Bible. It was their sole armoury of
expressions, their only
organ of thought.
[30] The following
burlesque on the Fichtean Egoisnsus may, perhaps,
be amusing to the few who
have studied the system, and to those who
are unacquainted with it,
may convey as tolerable a likeness of
Fichte's idealism as can
be expected from an avowed caricature.
The Categorical
Imperative, or the annunciation of the new Teutonic
God, EGOENKAIPAN: a
dithyrambic ode, by QUERKOPF VON KLUBSTICK,
Grammarian, and Subrector
in Gymmasic.
Eu! Dei vices gerens, ipse Divus,
(Speak English, Friend!) the God Imperativus,
Here on this market-cross aloud I cry:
I, I, I! I itself I!
The form and the substance, the what and the
why,
The when and the where, and the low and the
high,
The inside and outside, the earth and the sky,
I, you and he, and he, you and I,
All souls and all bodies are I itself I!
All I itself I!
(Fools! a truce
with this starting!)
All my I! all my I!
He's a heretic dog who but adds Betty Martin!
Thus cried the God with high imperial tone;
In robe of stiffest state, that scoffed at
beauty,
A pronoun-verb imperative he shone--
Then substantive and plural-singular grown
He thus spake on! Behold in I alone
(For ethics boast a syntax of their own)
Or if in ye, yet as I doth depute ye,
In O! I, you, the vocative of duty!
I of the world's whole Lexicon the root!
Of the whole universe of touch, sound, sight
The genitive and ablative to boot:
The accusative of wrong, the nominative of
right,
And in all cases the case absolute!
Self-construed, I all other moods decline:
Imperative, from nothing we derive us;
Yet as a super-postulate of mine,
Unconstrued antecedence I assign
To X, Y, Z, the God Infinitivus!
[31] It would be an act of
high and almost criminal injustice to pass
over in silence the name
of Mr. Richard Saumarez, a gentleman equally
well known as a medical
man and as a philanthropist, but who demands
notice on the present
occasion as the author of "A new System of
Physiology" in two
volumes octavo, published 1797; and in 1812 of "An
Examination of the natural
and artificial Systems of Philosophy which
now prevail" in one
volume octavo, entitled, "The Principles of
physiological and physical
Science." The latter work is not quite
equal to the former in
style or arrangement; and there is a greater
necessity of
distinguishing the principles of the author's philosophy
from his conjectures
concerning colour, the atmospheric matter,
comets, etc. which,
whether just or erroneous, are by no means
necessary consequences of
that philosophy. Yet even in this department
of this volume, which I
regard as comparatively the inferior work, the
reasonings by which Mr.
Saumarez invalidates the immanence of an
infinite power in any
finite substance are the offspring of no common
mind; and the experiment
on the expansibility of the air is at least
plausible and highly
ingenious. But the merit, which will secure both
to the book and to the
writer a high and honourable name with
posterity, consists in the
masterly force of reasoning, and the
copiousness of induction,
with which he has assailed, and (in my
opinion) subverted the
tyranny of the mechanic system in physiology;
established not only the
existence of final causes, but their
necessity and efficiency
to every system that merits the name of
philosophical; and,
substituting life and progressive power for the
contradictory inert force,
has a right to be known and remembered as
the first instaurator of
the dynamic philosophy in England. The
author's views, as far as
concerns himself, are unborrowed and
completely his own, as he
neither possessed nor do his writings
discover, the least
acquaintance with the works of Kant, in which the
germs of the philosophy
exist: and his volumes were published many
years before the full
development of these germs by Schelling. Mr.
Saumarez's detection of
the Braunonian system was no light or ordinary
service at the time; and I
scarcely remember in any work on any
subject a confutation so
thoroughly satisfactory. It is sufficient at
this time to have stated
the fact; as in the preface to the work,
which I have already
announced on the Logos, I have exhibited in
detail the merits of this
writer, and genuine philosopher, who needed
only have taken his
foundation somewhat deeper and wider to have
superseded a considerable
part of my labours.
[32] But for sundry notes
on Shakespeare, and other pieces which have
fallen in my way, I should
have deemed it unnecessary to observe; that
discourse here, or
elsewhere does not mean what we now call
discoursing; but the
discursion of the mind, the processes of
generalization and
subsumption, of deduction and conclusion. Thus,
Philosophy has hitherto
been discursive; while Geometry is always and
essentially intuitive.
[33] Revelation xx. 3.
[34] See Laing's History
of Scotland.--Walter Scott's bards, ballads,
etc.
[35] Thus organization,
and motion are regarded as from God, not in
God.
[36] Job, chap. xxviii.
[37] Wherever A=B, and A
is not=B, are equally demonstrable, the
premise in each
undeniable, the induction evident, and the conclusion
legitimate--the result
must be, either that contraries can both be
true, (which is absurd,)
or that the faculty and forms of reasoning
employed are inapplicable
to the subject--i.e. that there is a
metabasis eis allo genos.
Thus, the attributes of Space and time
applied to Spirit are
heterogeneous--and the proof of this is, that by
admitting them explicite
or implicite contraries may be demonstrated
true--i.e. that the same,
taken in the same sense, is true and not
true.--That the world had
a beginning in Time and a bound in Space;
and That the world had not
a beginning and has no limit;--That a self
originating act is, and is
not possible, are instances.
[38] To those, who design
to acquire the language of a country in the
country itself, it may be
useful, if I mention the incalculable
advantage which I derived
from learning all the words, that could
possibly be so learned,
with the objects before me, and without the
intermediation of the
English terms. It was a regular part of my
morning studies for the
first six weeks of my residence at Ratzeburg,
to accompany the good and
kind old pastor, with whom I lived, from the
cellar to the roof,
through gardens, farmyard, etc. and to call every,
the minutest, thing by its
German name. Advertisements, farces, jest
books, and the
conversation of children while I was at play with them,
contributed their share to
a more home-like acquaintance with the
language than I could have
acquired from works of polite literature
alone, or even from polite
society. There is a passage of hearty sound
sense in Luther's German
Letter on interpretation, to the translation
of which I shall prefix,
for the sake of those who read the German,
yet are not likely to have
dipped often in the massive folios of this
heroic reformer, the
simple, sinewy, idiomatic words of the original.
"Denn man muss nicht
die Buchstaben in der Lateinischen Sprache fragen
wie man soll Deutsch
reden: sondern man muss die Mutter in Hause, die
Kinder auf den Gassen, den
gemeinen Mann auf dem Markte, darum fragen:
und denselbigen auf das
Maul sehen wie sie reden, und darnach
dolmetschen. So verstehen
sie es denn, und merken dass man Deutsch mit
ihnen redet."
TRANSLATION.
For one must not ask the
letters in the Latin tongue, how one ought to
speak German; but one must
ask the mother in the house, the children
in the lanes and alleys,
the common man in the market, concerning
this; yea, and look at the
moves of their mouths while they are
talking, and thereafter
interpret. They understand you then, and mark
that one talks German with
them.
[39] This paraphrase,
written about the time of Charlemagne, is by no
means deficient in
occasional passages of considerable poetic merit.
There is a flow, and a
tender enthusiasm in the following lines (at
the conclusion of Chapter
XI.) which, even in the translation will
not, I flatter myself,
fail to interest the reader. Ottfried is
describing the
circumstances immediately following the birth of our
Lord.
She gave with joy her virgin breast;
She hid it not, she bared the breast,
Which suckled that divinest babe!
Blessed, blessed were the breasts
Which the Saviour infant kiss'd;
And blessed, blessed was the mother
Who wrapp'd his limbs in swaddling clothes,
Singing placed him on her lap,
Hung o'er him with her looks of love,
And sooth'd him with a lulling motion.
Blessed; for she shelter'd him
From the damp and chilling air;
Blessed, blessed! for she lay
With such a babe in one blest bed,
Close as babes and mothers lie!
Blessed, blessed evermore,
With her virgin lips she kiss'd,
With her arms, and to her breast
She embraced the babe divine,
Her babe divine the virgin mother!
There lives not on this ring of earth
A mortal, that can sing her praise.
Mighty mother, virgin pure,
In the darkness and the night
For us she bore the heavenly Lord!
Most interesting is it to
consider the effect, when the feelings are
wrought above the natural
pitch by the belief of something mysterious,
while all the images are
purely natural. Then it is, that religion and
poetry strike deepest.
[40] Lord Grenville has
lately re-asserted (in the House of Lords) the
imminent danger of a
revolution in the earlier part of the war against
France. I doubt not, that
his Lordship is sincere; and it must be
flattering to his feelings
to believe it. But where are the evidences
of the danger, to which a
future historian can appeal? Or must he rest
on an assertion? Let me be
permitted to extract a passage on the
subject from The Friend.
"I have said that to withstand the arguments
of the lawless, the
anti-Jacobins proposed to suspend the law, and by
the interposition of a
particular statute to eclipse the blessed light
of the universal sun, that
spies and informers might tyrannize and
escape in the ominous
darkness. Oh! if these mistaken men, intoxicated
with alarm and bewildered
by that panic of property, which they
themselves were the chief
agents in exciting, had ever lived in a
country where there really
existed a general disposition to change and
rebellion! Had they ever
travelled through Sicily; or through France
at the first coming on of
the revolution; or even alas! through too
many of the provinces of a
sister island; they could not but have
shrunk from their own
declarations concerning the state of feeling and
opinion at that time
predominant throughout Great Britain. There was a
time--(Heaven grant that
that time may have passed by!)--when by
crossing a narrow strait,
they might have learned the true symptoms of
approaching danger, and
have secured themselves from mistaking the
meetings and idle rant of
such sedition, as shrank appalled from the
sight of a constable, for
the dire murmuring and strange consternation
which precedes the storm
or earthquake of national discord. Not only
in coffee-houses and
public theatres, but even at the tables of the
wealthy, they would have
heard the advocates of existing Government
defend their cause in the
language and with the tone of men, who are
conscious that they are in
a minority. But in England, when the alarm
was at its highest, there
was not a city, no, not a town or village,
in which a man suspected
of holding democratic principles could move
abroad without receiving
some unpleasant proof of the hatred in which
his supposed opinions were
held by the great majority of the people;
and the only instances of
popular excess and indignation were on the
side of the government and
the established church. But why need I
appeal to these invidious
facts? Turn over the pages of history and
seek for a single instance
of a revolution having been effected
without the concurrence of
either the nobles, or the ecclesiastics, or
the monied classes, in any
country, in which the influences of
property had ever been
predominant, and where the interests of the
proprietors were
interlinked! Examine the revolution of the Belgic
provinces under Philip II;
the civil wars of France in the preceding
generation; the history of
the American revolution, or the yet more
recent events in Sweden
and in Spain; and it will be scarcely possible
not to perceive that in
England from 1791 to the peace of Amiens there
were neither tendencies to
confederacy nor actual confederacies,
against which the existing
laws had not provided both sufficient
safeguards and an ample
punishment. But alas! the panic of property
had been struck in the
first instance for party purposes; and when it
became general, its
propagators caught it themselves and ended in
believing their own lie;
even as our bulls to Borrowdale sometimes run
mad with the echo of their
own bellowing. The consequences were most
injurious. Our attention
was concentrated on a monster, which could
not survive the
convulsions, in which it had been brought forth,--even
the enlightened Burke
himself too often talking and reasoning, as if a
perpetual and organized
anarchy had been a possible thing! Thus while
we were warring against
French doctrines, we took little heed whether
the means by which we
attempted to overthrow them, were not likely to
aid and augment the far
more formidable evil of French ambition. Like
children we ran away from
the yelping of a cur, and took shelter at
the heels of a vicious war
horse." (Vol. II. Essay i. p. 21, 4th edit.)
[41] I seldom think of the
murder of this illustrious Prince without
recollecting the lines of
Valerius Flaccus:
------super ipsius ingens
Instat fama viri, virtusque haud laeta tyranno;
Ergo anteire metus, juvenemque exstinguere
pergit.
Argonaut, I. 29.
[42] Theara de kai ton
chaena kai taen dorkada,
Kai
ton lagoon, kai to ton tauron genos.
Manuel Phile, De Animal. Proprietat. sect. I. i. 12.
[43] Paradise Regained.
Book IV. I. 261.
[44] Vita e Costumi di
Dante.
[45] TRANSLATION.
"With the greatest
possible solicitude avoid authorship. Too early or
immoderately employed, it
makes the head waste and the heart empty;
even were there no other
worse consequences. A person, who reads only
to print, to all
probability reads amiss; and he, who sends away
through the pen and the press
every thought, the moment it occurs to
him, will in a short time
have sent all away, and will become a mere
journeyman of the
printing-office, a compositor."
To which I may add from
myself, that what medical physiologists affirm
of certain secretions
applies equally to our thoughts; they. too must
be taken up again into the
circulation, and be again and again re-
secreted to order to
ensure a healthful vigour, both to the mind and
to its intellectual
offspring.
[46] This distinction
between transcendental and transcendent is
observed by our elder
divines and philosophers, whenever they express
themselves scholastically.
Dr. Johnson indeed has confounded the two
words; but his own
authorities do not bear him out. Of this celebrated
dictionary I will venture
to remark once for all, that I should
suspect the man of a
morose disposition who should speak of it without
respect and gratitude as a
most instructive and entertaining book, and
hitherto, unfortunately,
an indispensable book; but I confess, that I
should be surprised at
hearing from a philosophic and thorough scholar
any but very qualified
praises of it, as a dictionary. I am not now
alluding to the number of
genuine words omitted; for this is (and
perhaps to a greater
extent) true, as Mr. Wakefield has noticed, of
our best Greek Lexicons,
and this too after the successive labours of
so many giants in
learning. I refer at present both to omissions and
commissions of a more
important nature. What these are, me saltem
judice, will be stated at
full in The Friend, re-published and
completed.
I had never heard of the
correspondence between Wakefield and Fox till
I saw the account of it
this morning (16th September 1815) in the
Monthly Review. I was not
a little gratified at finding, that Mr.
Wakefield had proposed to
himself nearly the same plan for a Greek and
English Dictionary, which
I had formed, and began to execute, now ten
years ago. But far, far
more grieved am I, that he did not live to
complete it. I cannot but think
it a subject of most serious regret,
that the same heavy
expenditure, which is now employing in the
republication of STEPHANUS
augmented, had not been applied to a new
Lexicon on a more
philosophical plan, with the English, German, and
French synonymes as well
as the Latin. In almost every instance the
precise individual meaning
might be given in an English or German
word; whereas in Latin we
must too often be contented with a mere
general and inclusive
term. How indeed can it be otherwise, when we
attempt to render the most
copious language of the world, the most
admirable for the fineness
of its distinctions, into one of the
poorest and most vague
languages? Especially when we reflect on the
comparative number of the
works, still extant, written while the Greek
and Latin were living
languages. Were I asked what I deemed the
greatest and most unmixed
benefit, which a wealthy individual, or an
association of wealthy
individuals could bestow on their country and
on mankind, I should not
hesitate to answer, "a philosophical English
dictionary; with the
Greek, Latin, German, French, Spanish, and
Italian synonymes, and
with correspondent indexes." That the learned
languages might thereby be
acquired, better, in half the time, is but
a part, and not the most
important part, of the advantages which would
accrue from such a work.
O! if it should be permitted by Providence,
that without detriment to
freedom and independence our government
might be enabled to become
more than a committee for war and revenue!
There was a time, when
every thing was to be done by Government. Have
we not flown off to the
contrary extreme?
[47] April, 1825. If I did
not see it with my own eyes, I should not
believe that I had been
guilty of so many hydrostatic Bulls as bellow
in this unhappy allegory
or string of metaphors! How a river was to
travel up hill from a vale
far inward, over the intervening mountains,
Morpheus, the Dream
weaver, can alone unriddle. I am ashamed and
humbled. S. T. Coleridge.
[48] Ennead, III. 8. 3.
The force of the Greek sunienai is imperfectly
expressed by
"understand;" our own idiomatic phrase "to go along with
me" comes nearest to
it. The passage, that follows, full of profound
sense, appears to me
evidently corrupt; and in fact no writer more
wants, better deserves, or
is less likely to obtain, a new and more
correct edition-ti oun
sunienai; oti to genomenon esti theama emon,
siopaesis (mallem, theama,
emon sioposaes,) kai physei genomenon
theoraema, kai moi
genomenae ek theorias taes odi, taen physin echein
philotheamona uparkei.
(mallem, kai moi hae genomenae ek theorias
autaes odis). "What
then are we to understand? That whatever is
produced is an intuition,
I silent; and that, which is thus generated,
is by its nature a
theorem, or form of contemplation; and the birth;
which results to me from
this contemplation, attains to have a
contemplative
nature." So Synesius:
'Odis hiera
'Arraeta gona
The after comparison of
the process of the natura naturans with that
of the geometrician is
drawn from the very heart of philosophy.
[49] This is happily
effected in three lines by Synesius, in his THIRD
HYMN:
'En kai Pan'ta--(taken by itself) is Spinozism.
'En d' 'Apan'ton--a mere Anima Mundi.
'En te pro panton--is mechanical Theism.
But unite all three, and
the result is the Theism of Saint Paul and
Christianity. Synesius was
censured for his doctrine of the pre-
existence of the soul; but
never, that I can find, arraigned or deemed
heretical for his
Pantheism, though neither Giordano Bruno, nor Jacob
Behmen ever avowed it more
broadly.
Mystas de Noos,
Ta te kai ta legei,
Buthon arraeton
Amphichoreuon.
Su to tikton ephus,
Su to tiktomenon;
Su to photizon,
Su to lampomenon;
Su to phainomenon,
Su to kryptomenon
Idiais augais.
'En kai panta,
'En kath' heauto,
Kai dia panton.
Pantheism is therefore not
necessarily irreligious or heretical;
though it may be taught
atheistically. Thus Spinoza would agree with
Synesius in calling God
Physis en Noerois, the Nature in
Intelligences; but he
could not subscribe to the preceding Nous kai
noeros, i.e. Himself
Intelligence and intelligent.
In this biographical
sketch of my literary life I may be excused, if I
mention here, that I had
translated the eight Hymns of Synesius from
the Greek into English
Anacreontics before my fifteenth year.
[50] See Schell. Abhandl.
zur Erlaeuter. des Id. der
Wissenschafslehre.
[51] Des Cartes, Diss. de
Methodo.
[52] The impossibility of
an absolute thing (substantia unica) as
neither genus, species,
nor individuum: as well as its utter unfitness
for the fundamental
position of a philosophic system, will be
demonstrated in the
critique on Spinozism in the fifth treatise of my
Logosophia.
[53] It is most worthy of
notice, that in the first revelation of
himself, not confined to
individuals; indeed in the very first
revelation of his absolute
being, Jehovah at the same time revealed
the fundamental truth of
all philosophy, which must either commence
with the absolute, or have
no fixed commencement; that is, cease to be
philosophy. I cannot but
express my regret, that in the equivocal use
of the word that, for in
that, or because, our admirable version has
rendered the passage
susceptible of a degraded interpretation in the
mind of common readers or
hearers, as if it were a mere reproof to an
impertinent question, I am
what I am, which might be equally affirmed
of himself by any existent
being.
The Cartesian Cogito ergo
sum is objectionable, because either the
Cogito is used extra
gradum, and then it is involved to the sum and is
tautological; or it is
taken as a particular mode or dignity, and then
it is subordinated to the
sum as the species to the genus, or rather
as a particular
modification to the subject modified; and not pre-
ordinated as the arguments
seem to require. For Cogito is Sum
Cogitans. This is clear by
the inevidence of the converse. Cogitat,
ergo est is true, because
it is a mere application of the logical
rule: Quicquid in genere
est, est et in specie. Est (cogitans), ergo
est. It is a cherry tree;
therefore it is a tree. But, est ergo
cogitat, is illogical: for
quod est in specie, non NBCESSARIO in
genere est. It may be
true. I hold it to be true, that quicquid vere
est, est per veram sui
affirmationem; but it is a derivative, not an
immediate truth. Here then
we have, by anticipation, the distinction
between the conditional
finite! (which, as known in distinct
consciousness by occasion
of experience, is called by Kant's followers
the empirical!) and the
absolute I AM, and likewise the dependence or
rather the inherence of
the former in the latter; in whom "we live,
and move, and have our
being," as St. Paul divinely asserts, differing
widely from the Theists of
the mechanic school (as Sir J. Newton,
Locke, and others) who
must say from whom we had our being, and with
it life and the powers of
life.
[54] TRANSLATION.
"Hence it is clear,
from what cause many reject the notion of the
continuous and the
infinite. They take, namely, the words
irrepresentable and
impossible in one and the same meaning; and,
according to the forms of
sensuous evidence, the notion of the
continuous and the
infinite is doubtless impossible. I am not now
pleading the cause of
these laws, which not a few schools have thought
proper to explode,
especially the former (the law of continuity). But
it is of the highest
importance to admonish the reader, that those,
who adopt so perverted a
mode of reasoning, are under a grievous
error. Whatever opposes
the formal principles of the understanding and
the reason is confessedly
impossible; but not therefore that, which is
therefore not amenable to
the forms of sensuous evidence, because it
is exclusively an object
of pure intellect. For this non-coincidence
of the sensuous and the
intellectual (the nature of which I shall
presently lay open) proves
nothing more, but that the mind cannot
always adequately
represent to the concrete, and transform into
distinct images, abstract
notions derived from the pure intellect. But
this contradiction, which
is in itself merely subjective (i.e. an
incapacity in the nature
of man), too often passes for an incongruity
or impossibility in the
object (i.e. the notions themselves), and
seduces the incautious to
mistake the limitations of the human
faculties for the limits
of things, as they really exist."
I take this occasion to
observe, that here and elsewhere Kant uses the
term intuition, and the
verb active (intueri Germanice anschauen) for
which we have
unfortunately no correspondent word, exclusively for
that which can be
represented in space and time. He therefore
consistently and rightly
denies the possibility of intellectual
intuitions. But as I see
no adequate reason for this exclusive sense
of the term, I have
reverted to its wider signification, authorized by
our elder theologians and
metaphysicians, according to whom the term
comprehends all truths
known to us without a medium.
From Kant's Treatise De
mundi sensibilis et intelligibilis forma et
principiis. 1770.
[55] Franc. Baconis de
Verulam, NOVUM ORGANUM.
[56] This phrase, a
priori, is in common, most grossly misunderstood,
and as absurdity burdened
on it, which it does not deserve. By
knowledge a priori, we do
not mean, that we can know anything
previously to experience,
which would be a contradiction in terms; but
that having once known it
by occasion of experience (that is,
something acting upon us
from without) we then know, that it must have
existed, or the experience
itself would have been impossible. By
experience only now, that
I have eyes; but then my reason convinces
me, that I must have had
eyes in order to the experience.
[57] Jer. Taylor's Via
Pacis.
[58] Par. Lost. Book V. I.
469.
[59] Leibnitz. Op. T. II.
P. II. p. 53.--T. III. p. 321.
[60] Synesii Episcop.
Hymn. III. I. 231
[61] 'Anaer morionous, a
phrase which I have borrowed from a Greek
monk, who applies it to a
Patriarch of Constantinople. I might have
said, that I have
reclaimed, rather than borrowed, it: for it seems to
belong to Shakespeare, de
jure singulari, et ex privilegio naturae.
[62] First published in
1803.
[63] These thoughts were
suggested to me during the perusal of the
Madrigals of Giovambatista
Strozzi published in Florence in May, 1593,
by his sons Lorenzo and
Filippo Strozzi, with a dedication to their
paternal uncle, Signor
Leone Strozzi, Generale delle battaglie di
Santa Chiesa. As I do not
remember to have seen either the poems or
their author mentioned in
any English work, or to have found them in
any of the common
collections of Italian poetry; and as the little
work is of rare
occurrence; I will transcribe a few specimens. I have
seldom met with
compositions that possessed, to my feelings, more of
that satisfying
entireness, that complete adequateness of the manner
to the matter which so
charms us in Anacreon, joined with the
tenderness, and more than
the delicacy of Catullus. Trifles as they
are, they were probably
elaborated with great care; yet to the perusal
we refer them to a
spontaneous energy rather than to voluntary effort.
To a cultivated taste
there is a delight in perfection for its own
sake, independently of the
material in which it is manifested, that
none but a cultivated
taste can understand or appreciate.
After what I have
advanced, it would appear presumption to offer a
translation; even if the
attempt were not discouraged by the different
genius of the English mind
and language, which demands a denser body
of thought as the
condition of a high polish, than the Italian. I
cannot but deem it
likewise an advantage in the Italian tongue, in
many other respects
inferior to our own, that the language of poetry
is more distinct from that
of prose than with us. From the earlier
appearance and established
primacy of the Tuscan. poets, concurring
with the number of
independent states, and the diversity of written
dialects, the Italians
have gained a poetic idiom, as the Greeks
before them had obtained
from the same causes with greater and more
various discriminations,
for example, the Ionic for their heroic
verses; the Attic for
their iambic; and the two modes of the Doric for
the lyric or sacerdotal,
and the pastoral, the distinctions of which
were doubtless more
obvious to the Greeks themselves than they are to
us.
I will venture to add one
other observation before I proceed to the
transcription. I am aware
that the sentiments which I have avowed
concerning the points of
difference between the poetry of the present
age, and that of the
period between 1500 and 1650, are the reverse of
the opinion commonly
entertained. I was conversing on this subject
with a friend, when the
servant, a worthy and sensible woman, coming
in, I placed before her
two engravings, the one a pinky-coloured plate
of the day, the other a
masterly etching by Salvator Rosa from one of
his own pictures. On
pressing her to tell us, which she preferred,
after a little blushing
and flutter of feeling, she replied "Why,
that, Sir, to be sure!
(pointing to the ware from the Fleet-street
print shops);--it's so
neat and elegant. T'other is such a scratchy
slovenly thing." An
artist, whose writings are scarcely less valuable
than his pictures, and to
whose authority more deference will be
willingly paid, than I
could even wish should be shown to mine, has
told us, and from his own
experience too, that good taste must be
acquired, and like all other
good things, is the result of thought and
the submissive study of
the best models. If it be asked, "But what
shall I deem
such?"--the answer is; presume those to be the best, the
reputation of which has
been matured into fame by the consent of ages.
For wisdom always has a
final majority, if not by conviction, yet by
acquiescence. In addition
to Sir J. Reynolds I may mention Harris of
Salisbury; who in one of
his philosophical disquisitions has written
on the means of acquiring
a just taste with the precision of
Aristotle, and the
elegance of Quinctilian.
MADRIGALI.
Gelido suo ruscel chiaro, e tranquillo
M'insegno Amor di state a mezzo'l giorno;
Ardean le solve, ardean le piagge, e i colli.
Ond' io, ch' al piu gran gielo ardo e sfavillo,
Subito corsi; ma si puro adorno
Girsene il vidi, che turbar no'l volli:
Sol mi specchiava, e'n dolce ombrosa sponda
Mi stava intento al mormorar dell' onda.
Aure dell' angoscioso viver mio
Refrigerio soave,
E dolce si, che piu non mi par grave
Ne'l ardor, ne'l morir, anz' il desio;
Deh voil ghiaccio, e le nubi, e'l tempo rio
Discacciatene omai, che londa chiara,
E l'ombra non men cara
A scherzare, a cantar per suoi boschetti,
E prati festa et allegrezza alletti.
Pacifiche, ma spesso in amorosa
Guerra co'fiori, e l'erba
Alla stagione acerba
Verdi insegne del giglio e della rosa,
Movete, Aure, pian pian; che tregua o posa,
Se non pace, io ritrove;
E so ben dove:--Oh vago, a mansueto
Sguardo, oh labbra d'ambrosia, oh rider, lieto!
Hor come un scoglio stassi,
Hor come un rio se'n fugge,
Ed hor crud' orsa rugge,
Hor canta angelo pio: ma che non fassi!
E che non fammi, O sassi,
O rivi, o belue, o Dii, questa mia vaga
Non so, se ninfa, o magna,
Non so, se donna, o Dea,
Non so, se dolce o rea?
Piangendo mi baciaste,
E ridendo il negaste:
In doglia hebbivi pin,
In festa hebbivi ria:
Nacque gioia di pianti,
Dolor di riso: O amanti
Miseri, habbiate insieme
Ognor paura e speme.
Bel Fior, tu mi rimembri
La rugiadosa guancia del bet viso;
E si vera l'assembri,
Che'n te sovente, come in lei m'affiso:
Et hor del vago riso,
Hor del serene sguardo
Io pur cieco riguardo. Ma qual fugge,
O Rosa, il mattin lieve!
E chi te, come neve,
E'l mio cor teco, e la mia vita strugge!
Anna mia, Anna dolce, oh sempre nuovo
E piu chiaro concento,
Quanta dolcezza sento
In sol Anna dicendo? Io mi pur pruovo,
Ne qui tra noi ritruovo,
Ne tra cieli armonia,
Che del bel nome suo piu dolce sia:
Altro il Cielo, altro Amore,
Altro non suona l'Ecco del mio core.
Hor che'l prato, e la selva si scoiora,
Al tuo serena ombroso
Muovine, alto Riposo,
Deh ch'io riposi una sol notte, un hora:
Han le fere, e git augelli, ognun talora
Ha qualche pace; io quando,
Lasso! non vonne errando,
E non piango, e non grido? e qual pur forte?
Ma poiche, non sent' egli, odine, Morte.
Risi e piansi d'Amor; ne pero mai
Se non in fiamma, o'n onda, o'n vento scrissi
Spesso msrce trovai
Crudel; sempre in me morto, in altri vissi:
Hor da' piu scuri Abissi al ciel m'aizai,
Hor ne pur caddi giuso;
Stance al fin qui son chiuso.
[64] "I've measured
it from side to side;
'Tis three feet long, and two feet
wide."
[65] "Nay, rack your
brain--'tis all in vain,
I'll tell you every thing I know;
But to the Thorn, and to the Pond
Which is a little step beyond,
I wish that you would go:
Perhaps, when you are at the place,
You something of her tale may trace.
I'll give you the best help I can
Before you up the mountain go,
Up to the dreary mountain-top,
I'll tell you all I know.
'Tis now some two-and-twenty years
Since she (her name is Martha Ray)
Gave, with a maiden's true good
will,
Her company to Stephen Hill;
And she was blithe and gay,
And she was happy, happy still
Whene'er she thought of Stephen
Hill.
And they had fixed the wedding-day,
The morning that must wed them both
But Stephen to another maid
Had sworn another oath;
And, with this other maid, to church
Unthinking Stephen went--
Poor Martha! on that woeful day
A pang of pitiless dismay
Into her soul was sent;
A fire was kindled in her breast,
Which might not burn itself to rest.
They say, full six months after
this,
While yet the summer leaves were
green,
She to the mountain-top would go,
And there was often seen;
'Tis said a child was in her womb,
As now to any eye was plain;
She was with child, and she was mad;
Yet often she was sober sad
From her exceeding pain.
Oh me! ten thousand times I'd rather
That he had died, that cruel father!
* * * * *
* * * * *
* * * * *
* * * * *
Last Christmas when they talked of
this,
Old Farmer Simpson did maintain,
That in her womb the infant wrought
About its mother's heart, and
brought
Her senses back again:
And, when at last her time drew
near,
Her looks were calm, her senses
clear.
No more I know, I wish I did,
And I would tell it all to you
For what became of this poor child
There's none that ever knew
And if a child was born or no,
There's no one that could ever tell;
And if 'twas born alive or dead,
There's no one knows, as I have
said:
But some remember well,
That Martha Ray about this time
Would up the mountain often
climb."
[66] It is no less an
error in teachers, than a torment to the poor
children, to enforce the
necessity of reading as they would talk. In
order to cure them of
singing as it is called, that is, of too great a
difference, the child is
made to repeat the words with his eyes from
off the book; and then,
indeed, his tones resemble talking, as far as
his fears, tears and
trembling will permit. But as soon as the eye is
again directed to the
printed page, the spell begins anew; for an
instinctive sense tells
the child's feelings, that to utter its own
momentary thoughts, and to
recite the written thoughts of another, as
of another, and a far
wiser than himself, are two widely different
things; and as the two
acts are accompanied with widely different
feelings, so must they
justify different modes of enunciation. Joseph
Lancaster, among his other
sophistications of the excellent Dr. Bell's
invaluable system, cures
this fault of singing, by hanging fetters and
chains on the child, to
the music of which one of his school-fellows,
who walks before,
dolefully chants out the child's last speech and
confession, birth,
parentage, and education. And this soul-benumbing
ignominy, this unholy and
heart-hardening burlesque on the last
fearful infliction of
outraged law, in pronouncing the sentence to
which the stern and
familiarized judge not seldom bursts into tears,
has been extolled as a
happy and ingenious method of remedying--what?
and how?--why, one extreme
in order to introduce another, scarce less
distant from good sense,
and certainly likely to have worse moral
effects, by enforcing a
semblance of petulant ease and self-
sufficiency, in repression
and possible after-perversion of the
natural feelings. I have
to beg Dr. Bell's pardon for this connection
of the two names, but he
knows that contrast is no less powerful a
cause of association than
likeness.
[67] Altered from the
description of Night-Mair in the REMORSE.
"Oh Heaven! 'twas frightful! Now ran down
and stared at
By hideous shapes that cannot be
remembered;
Now seeing nothing and imagining nothing;
But only being afraid--stifled with fear!
While every goodly or familiar form
Had a strange power of spreading terror
round me!"
N.B.--Though Shakespeare
has, for his own all justifying purposes,
introduced the Night-Mare
with her own foals, yet Mair means a Sister,
or perhaps a Hag.
[68] But still more by the
mechanical system of philosophy which has
needlessly infected our
theological opinions, and teaching us to
consider the world in its
relation to god, as of a building to its
mason, leaves the idea of
omnipresence a mere abstract notion in the
stateroom of our reason.
[69] As the ingenious
gentleman under the influence of the Tragic Muse
contrived to dislocate,
"I wish you a good morning, Sir! Thank you,
Sir, and I wish you the
same," into two blank-verse heroics:--
To you a morning good, good Sir! I wish.
You, Sir! I thank: to you the same wish I.
In those parts of Mr.
Wordsworth's works which I have thoroughly
studied, I find fewer
instances in which this would be practicable
than I have met to many
poems, where an approximation of prose has
been sedulously and on
system guarded against. Indeed excepting the
stanzas already quoted
from THE SAILOR'S MOTHER, I can recollect but
one instance: that is to
say, a short passage of four or five lines in
THE BROTHERS, that model
of English pastoral, which I never yet read
with unclouded
eye.--"James, pointing to its summit, over which they
had all purposed to return
together, informed them that he would wait
for them there. They parted,
and his comrades passed that way some two
hours after, but they did
not find him at the appointed place, _a
circumstance of which they
took no heed:_ but one of them, going by
chance into the house,
which at this time was James's house, learnt
_there,_ that nobody had
seen him all that day." The only change which
has been made is in the
position of the little word there in two
instances, the position in
the original being clearly such as is not
adopted in ordinary
conversation. The other words printed in italics
were so marked because,
though good and genuine English, they are not
the phraseology of common
conversation either in the word put in
apposition, or in the
connection by the genitive pronoun. Men in
general would have said,
"but that was a circumstance they paid no
attention to, or took no
notice of;" and the language is, on the
theory of the preface,
justified only by the narrator's being the
Vicar. Yet if any ear
could suspect, that these sentences were ever
printed as metre, on those
very words alone could the suspicion have
been grounded.
[70] I had in my mind the
striking but untranslatable epithet, which
the celebrated Mendelssohn
applied to the great founder of the
Critical Philosophy
"Der alleszermalmende KANT," that is, the all-
becrushing, or rather the
all-to-nothing-crushing Kant. In the
facility and force of
compound epithets, the German from the number of
its cases and inflections
approaches to the Greek, that language so
"Bless'd in the happy marriage of sweet
words."
It is in the woful
harshness of its sounds alone that the German need
shrink from the
comparison.
[71] Sammlung einiger
Abhandlungen von Christian Garve.
[72] Sonnet IX.
[73] Mr. Wordsworth's
having judiciously adopted "concourse wild" in
this passage for "a
wild scene" as it stood to the former edition,
encourages me to hazard a
remark, which I certainly should not have
made in the works of a
poet less austerely accurate in the use of
words, than he is, to his
own great honour. It respects the propriety
of the word,
"scene," even in the sentence in which it is retained.
Dryden, and he only in his
more careless verses, was the first, as far
as my researches have
discovered, who for the convenience of rhyme
used this word in the
vague sense, which has been since too current
even in our best writers,
and which (unfortunately, I think) is given
as its first explanation
in Dr. Johnson's Dictionary and therefore
would be taken by an
incautious reader as its proper sense. In
Shakespeare and Milton the
word is never used without some clear
reference, proper or
metaphorical, to the theatre. Thus Milton:
"Cedar, and pine, and fir, and branching
palm
A sylvan scene; and, as the ranks ascend
Shade above shade, a woody theatre
Of stateliest view."
I object to any extension
of its meaning, because the word is already
more equivocal than might
be wished; inasmuch as to the limited use,
which I recommend, it may
still signify two different things; namely,
the scenery, and the
characters and actions presented on the stage
during the presence of
particular scenes. It can therefore be
preserved from obscurity
only by keeping the original signification
full in the mind. Thus
Milton again,
------"Prepare thee for another
scene."
[74] Which Copland scarce
had spoke, but quickly every hill,
Upon her verge that stands, the
neighbouring vallies fill;
Helvillon from his height, it through the
mountains threw,
From whom as soon again, the sound
Dunbalrase drew,
From whose stone-trophied head, it on the
Windross went,
Which tow'rds the sea again, resounded it
to Dent.
That Brodwater, therewith within her banks
astound,
In sailing to the sea, told it to
Egremound,
Whose buildings, walks, and streets, with
echoes loud and long,
Did mightily commend old Copland for her
song.
Drayton's POLYOLBION: Song XXX.
[75] Translation. It
behoves me to side with my friends, but only as
far as the gods.
[76] "Slender. I bruised my shin with playing with
sword and dagger
for a dish of stewed
prunes, and by my troth I cannot abide the smell
of hot meat
since."--So again, Evans.
"I will make an end of my
dinner: there's pippins
and cheese to come."
[77] This was accidentally
confirmed to me by an old German gentleman
at Helmstadt, who had been
Klopstock's school and bed-fellow. Among
other boyish anecdotes, he
related that the young poet set a
particular value on a translation
of the PARADISE LOST, and always
slept with it under his
pillow.
[78] Klopstock's
observation was partly true and partly erroneous. In
the literal sense of his
words, and, if we confine the comparison to
the average of space
required for the expression of the same thought
in the two languages, it
is erroneous. I have translated some German
hexameters into English
hexameter; and find, that on the average
three English lines will
express four lines German. The reason is
evident: our language
abounds in monosyllables and dissyllables. The
German, not less than the
Greek, is a polysyllable language. But in
another point of view the
remark was not without foundation. For the
German possessing the same
unlimited privilege of forming compounds,
both with prepositions and
with epithets, as the Greek, it can express
the richest single Greek
word in a single German one, and is thus
freed from the necessity
of weak or ungraceful paraphrases. I will
content myself with one at
present, viz. the use of the prefixed
participles ver, zer, ent,
and weg: thus reissen to rend, verreissen
to rend away, zerreissen
to rend to pieces, entreissen to rend off or
out of a thing, in the
active sense: or schmelzen to melt--ver, zer,
ent, schmelzen--and in
like manner through all the verbs neuter and
active. If you consider
only how much we should feel the loss of the
prefix be, as in bedropt,
besprinkle, besot, especially in our
poetical language, and
then think that this same mode of composition
is carved through all
their simple and compound prepositions, and many
of their adverbs; and that
with most of these the Germans have the
same privilege as we have
of dividing them from the verb and placing
them at the end of the
sentence; you will have no difficulty in
comprehending the reality
and the cause of this superior power in the
German of condensing
meaning, in which its great poet exulted. It is
impossible to read half a
dozen pages of Wieland without perceiving
that in this respect the
German has no rival but the Greek. And yet I
feel, that concentration
or condensation is not the happiest mode of
expressing this
excellence, which seems to consist not so much in the
less time required for
conveying an impression, as in the unity and
simultaneousness with
which the impression is conveyed. It tends to
make their language more
picturesque: it depictures images better. We
have obtained this power
in part by our compound verbs derived from
the Latin: and the sense
of its great effect no doubt induced our
Milton both to the use and
the abuse of Latin derivatives. But still
these prefixed particles,
conveying no separate or separable meaning
to the mere English
reader, cannot possibly act on the mind with the
force or liveliness of an
original and homogeneous language such as
the German is, and besides
are confined to certain words.
[79] Praecludere
calumniam, in the original.
[80] Better thus: Forma
specifica per formam individualem translucens:
or better yet--Species
individualisata, sive Individuum cuilibet
Speciei determinatae in
omni parte correspondens et quasi versione
quadam eam interpretans et
repetens.
[81] ------"The big
round tears
Cours'd one another down his innocent nose
In piteous chase,"
says Shakespeare of a
wounded stag hanging its head over a stream:
naturally, from the
position of the head, and most beautifully, from
the association of the
preceding image, of the chase, in which "the
poor sequester'd stag from
the hunter's aim had ta'en a hurt." In the
supposed position of
Bertram, the metaphor, if not false, loses all
the propriety of the
original.
[82] Among a number of
other instances of words chosen without reason,
Imogine in the first act
declares, that thunder-storms were not able
to intercept her prayers
for "the desperate man, in desperate ways who
dealt"----
"Yea, when the launched bolt did sear her
sense,
Her soul's deep orisons were breathed for
him;"
that is, when a red-hot
bolt, launched at her from a thunder-cloud,
had cauterized her sense,
to plain English, burnt her eyes out of her
head, she kept still
praying on.
"Was not this love? Yea, thus doth woman
love!"
[83] This sort of
repetition is one of this writers peculiarities, and
there is scarce a page
which does not furnish one or more instances--
Ex. gr. in the first page
or two. Act I, line 7th, "and deemed that I
might sleep."--Line
10, "Did rock and quiver in the bickering glare."
--Lines 14, 15, 16,
"But by the momently gleams of sheeted blue, Did
the pale marbles dare so
sternly on me, I almost deemed they lived."--
Line 37, "The glare
of Hell."--Line 35, "O holy Prior, this is no
earthly storm."--Line
38, "This is no earthly storm."--Line 42,
"Dealing with
us."--Line 43, "Deal thus sternly:"--Line 44, "Speak!
thou hast something
seen?"--"A fearful sight!"--Line 45, "What hast
thou seen! A piteous,
fearful sight."--Line 48, "quivering gleams."--
Line 50, "In the
hollow pauses of the storm."--Line 61, "The pauses of
the storm, etc."
[84] The child is an
important personage, for I see not by what
possible means the author
could have ended the second and third acts
but for its timely
appearance. How ungrateful then not further to
notice its fate!
[85] Classically too, as
far as consists with the allegorizing fancy
of the modern, that still
striving to project the inward,
contradistinguishes itself
from the seeming ease with which the poetry
of the ancients reflects
the world without. Casimir affords, perhaps,
the most striking instance
of this characteristic difference.--For his
style and diction are
really classical: while Cowley, who resembles
Casimir in many respects,
completely barbarizes his Latinity, and even
his metre, by the
heterogeneous nature of his thoughts. That Dr.
Johnson should have passed
a contrary judgment, and have even
preferred Cowley's Latin
Poems to Milton's, is a caprice that has, if I
mistake not, excited the
surprise of all scholars. I was much amused
last summer with the
laughable affright, with which an Italian poet
perused a page of Cowley's
Davideis, contrasted with the enthusiasm
with which he first ran
through, and then read aloud, Milton's Mansus
and Ad Patrem.
[86] Flectit, or if the
metre had allowed, premit would have supported
the metaphor better.
[87] Poor unlucky
Metaphysicks! and what are they? A single sentence
expresses the object and
thereby the contents of this science. Gnothi
seauton:
Nosce te ipsum,
Tuque Deum, quantum licet, inque Deo omnia
noscas.
Know thyself: and so shalt
thou know God, as far as is permitted to a
creature, and in God all
things.--Surely, there is a strange--nay,
rather too
natural--aversion to many to know themselves.